summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/69235-0.txt8925
-rw-r--r--old/69235-0.zipbin169017 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h.zipbin1772828 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/69235-h.htm11136
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/images/cover.jpgbin1252676 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/images/coversmall.jpgbin261472 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/images/i_306.jpgbin29256 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpgbin71114 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/images/i_ii.jpgbin20363 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/images/i_title.jpgbin48030 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69235-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpgbin26539 -> 0 bytes
14 files changed, 17 insertions, 20061 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d1cc03a
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #69235 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/69235)
diff --git a/old/69235-0.txt b/old/69235-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index ad28c4d..0000000
--- a/old/69235-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,8925 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of Children's book of patriotic stories,
-by Asa Don Dickinson
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: Children's book of patriotic stories
- The spirit of '76
-
-Editors: Asa Don Dickinson
- Helen Winslow Dickinson
-
-Release Date: October 25, 2022 [eBook #69235]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed
- Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was
- produced from images generously made available by The
- Internet Archive/American Libraries.)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHILDREN'S BOOK OF PATRIOTIC
-STORIES ***
-
-
-
-
-
- CHILDREN’S BOOK OF
- PATRIOTIC STORIES
-
-
-
-
- _In the Same Series_
-
- [Illustration]
-
-
- CHILDREN’S BOOK OF CHRISTMAS STORIES
- Edited by ASA DON DICKINSON and ADA M. SKINNER
-
- CHILDREN’S BOOK OF THANKSGIVING STORIES
- Edited by ASA DON DICKINSON
-
-
- [Illustration: THE SPIRIT OF ’76]
-
-
-
-
- CHILDREN’S BOOK OF
- PATRIOTIC STORIES
-
- _The Spirit of ’76_
-
- EDITED BY
- ASA DON DICKINSON
- AND
- HELEN WINSLOW DICKINSON
-
- [Illustration]
-
- _Frontispiece_
-
- GARDEN CITY NEW YORK
- DOUBLEDAY, PAGE & COMPANY
- 1918
-
-
-
-
- _Copyright, 1917, by_
- DOUBLEDAY, PAGE & COMPANY
-
- _All rights reserved, including that of
- translation into foreign languages,
- including the Scandinavian_
-
-
-
-
-ACKNOWLEDGMENT
-
-
-The Publishers desire to acknowledge the kindness of G. P. Putnam’s
-Sons, the Houghton Mifflin Company, Harper & Brothers, the Perry Mason
-Company, the Lothrop, Lee & Shepard Company, Little, Brown & Company,
-George W. Jacobs & Company, Silver, Burdett & Company, and others,
-who have granted permission to reproduce herein selections from works
-bearing their copyright.
-
-
-
-
-PREFACE
-
-
-Here is a book of Patriotic Stories for children, to stand beside the
-similar collections of Christmas Stories and Thanksgiving Stories,
-which have already been welcomed by many parents, librarians, and
-teachers. Those seeking material appropriate to Washington’s Birthday
-and the Fourth of July will find here a goodly store, ready to their
-hands. The brief descriptive note at the head of each story will help
-the reader to choose one well suited to his audience. And the Table of
-Contents, as in the previous collections, indicates which tales will
-best please older, and which younger children.
-
-The Editors hope that a book of stirring tales like these--not history,
-but stories such as children love, that yet ring true in spirit--will
-serve to help, though ever so little, the Cause of Liberty and will aid
-in keeping aglow in the hearts of our young people the ardent spark
-which inspired our forefathers--the Spirit of ’76.
-
-
-
-
- _Napoleon was great, I know,
- And Julius Cæsar, and all the rest,
- But they didn’t belong to us, and so
- I like George Washington the best._
-
- --ANONYMOUS.
-
-
-
-
-CONTENTS
-
-(_Note._--The stories marked with a star (*) will be most enjoyed by
-younger children; those marked with a dagger(†) are better suited to
-older children.)
-
- PAGE
-
- Jabez Rockwell’s Powder-horn. _By Ralph D. Paine_ 3
-
- The Little Lord of the Manor. _By Elbridge S. Brooks_ 19
-
- †Old Esther Dudley. _By Nathaniel Hawthorne_ 40
-
- *Betty’s Ride. _By Henry S. Canby_ 55
-
- The First Blow for American Liberty. _By Emma W. Demeritt_ 64
-
- †The Battle of Bunker’s Hill. _By Washington Irving_ 79
-
- *Her Punishment. _By Elizabeth Gibson_ 91
-
- Famous Words at Great Moments 95
-
- *The Little Fifer. _By Helen M. Winslow_ 102
-
- †Ethan Allen and the Green Mountain Boys. _By Washington Irving_ 111
-
- The Capture of the Hennepin Gun. _By Margaret Emma Ditto_ 117
-
- Paul Revere’s Ride. _By Henry Wadsworth Longfellow_ 132
-
- *Tony’s Birthday and George Washington’s. _By Agnes Repplier_ 138
-
- A Venture in 1777. _By S. Weir Mitchell_ 145
-
- A Tempest in a Big Tea-pot. _By Samuel Adams Drake_ 189
-
- †How the Warning Was Given. _By Mabel Nelson Thurston_ 192
-
- †Susan Tongs. _By Ethel Parton_ 206
-
- *The Little Minute-man. _By H. G. Paine_ 217
-
- *General Gage and the Boston Boys. _By Samuel Adams Drake_ 225
-
- †Washington and the Spy. _By James Fenimore Cooper_ 227
-
- *Three Washington Anecdotes. _Adapted from M. L. Weems_ 236
-
- “When George the Third Was King.” _By Elbridge S. Brooks_ 241
-
- *Their Flag Day. _By Herbert O. McCrillis_ 256
-
- A True Story of the Revolution. _By Everett T. Tomlinson_ 260
-
- †Polly Callendar: Tory. _By Margaret Fenderson_ 270
-
- Neil Davidson in Disguise. _By Mary Tracy Earle_ 279
-
- †John Paul Jones. _By Rupert S. Holland_ 295
-
-
-
-
- CHILDREN’S BOOK OF
- PATRIOTIC STORIES
-
-
-
-
-CHILDREN’S BOOK OF PATRIOTIC STORIES
-
-
-
-
-JABEZ ROCKWELL’S POWDER-HORN[A]
-
-By RALPH D. PAINE
-
-A story of the “Powder-horn rebellion” at Valley Forge, and of how
-gallant young Jabez Rockwell rallied a retreating regiment at the
-battle of Monmouth.
-
-
-“Pooh, you are not tall enough to carry a musket. Go with the drums,
-and tootle on that fife you blew at the Battle of Saratoga. Away with
-you, little Jabez, crying for a powder-horn, when grown men like me
-have not a pouch amongst them for a single charge of powder!”
-
-A tall, gaunt Vermonter, whose uniform was a woolen bedcover draped to
-his knees, laughed loudly from the doorway of his log hut as he flung
-these taunts at the stripling soldier.
-
-A little way down the snowy street of these rude cabins a group of
-ragged comrades was crowding at the heels of a man who hugged a leather
-apron to his chest with both arms. Jabez Rockwell was in hot haste to
-join the chase; nevertheless he halted to cry back at his critic:
-
-“It’s a lie! I put my fife in my pocket at Saratoga, and I fought with
-a musket as long and ugly as yourself. And a redcoat shot me through
-the arm. If the camp butcher has powder-horns to give away, I deserve
-one more than those raw militia recruits, so wait until you are a
-veteran of the Connecticut line before you laugh at us old soldiers.”
-
-The youngster stooped to tighten the clumsy wrappings of rags which
-served him for shoes, and hurried on after the little shouting mob
-which had followed the butcher down to the steep hillside of Valley
-Forge, where he stood at bay with his back to the cliff.
-
-“There are thirty of you desperate villains,” puffed the fat fugitive,
-“and I have only ten horns, which have been saved from the choicest of
-all the cattle I’ve killed these two months gone. I would I had my maul
-and skinning-knife here to defend myself. Take me to headquarters, if
-there is no other way to end this riot. I want no pay for the horns.
-They are my gift to the troops, but, Heaven help me! who is to decide
-how to divide them amongst so many!”
-
-“Stand him on his bald head, and loose the horns from the apron. As
-they fall, he who finds keeps!” roared one of the boisterous party.
-
-“Toss them all in the air and let us fight for them,” was another
-suggestion.
-
-The hapless butcher glared round him with growing dismay. At this rate
-half the American army would soon be clamoring round him, drawn by the
-chance to add to their poor equipment.
-
-By this time Jabez Rockwell had wriggled under the arms of the shouting
-soldiers, twisting like an uncommonly active eel, until he was close to
-the red-faced butcher. With ready wit the youngster piped up a plan for
-breaking the deadlock:
-
-“There are thirty of us, you say, that put you to rout, Master Ritter.
-Let us divide the ten horns by lot. Then you can return to your
-cow-pens with a whole skin and a clear conscience.”
-
-“There is more sense in that little carcass of yours than in all those
-big, hulking troopers that could spit you on a bayonet like a sparrow!”
-rumbled Master Ritter. “How shall the lots be drawn?”
-
-“Away with your lottery!” cried a burly rifleman, whose long
-hunting-shirt whipped in the bitter wind. “The road up the valley is
-well beaten down. The old forge is half a mile away. Do you mark a
-line, old beef-killing Jack, and we will run for our lives. The first
-ten to touch the stone wall of the smithy will take the ten prizes.”
-
-Some yelled approval, others fiercely opposed, and the wrangling was
-louder than before. Master Ritter, who had plucked up heart, began to
-steal warily from the hillside, hoping to escape in the confusion.
-A dozen hands clutched his collar and leather apron, and jerked him
-headlong back into the argument.
-
-Young Jabez scrambled to the top of the nearest boulder, and ruffled
-with importance like a turkey-cock as he waved his arms to command
-attention.
-
-“The guard will be turned out and we shall end this fray by cooling
-our heels in the prison huts on the hill,” he declaimed. “If we run
-a foot-race, who is to say which of us first reaches the forge?
-Again--and I say I never served with such thick-witted troops, when I
-fought under General Arnold at Saratoga--those with shoes to their feet
-have the advantage over those that are bound up in bits of cloth and
-clumsy patches of hide. Draw lots, I say, before the picket is down
-upon us!”
-
-The good-natured crowd cheered the boy orator, and hauled him from his
-perch with such hearty thumps that he feared they would break him in
-two.
-
-Suddenly the noise was hushed as if the wranglers had been stricken
-dumb. Fur-capped heads turned to face down the winding valley, and
-without need of an order the company spread itself along the roadside
-in a rude, uneven line. Every man stood at attention, his head up, his
-shoulders thrown back, hands at his sides. Thus they stood while they
-watched a little group of horsemen trot toward them.
-
-In front rode a commanding figure in buff and blue. The tall, lithe
-frame sat the saddle with the graceful ease of the hard-riding Virginia
-fox-hunter. The stern, smooth-shaven face, reddened and roughened by
-exposure to all weathers, lighted with an amiable curiosity at sight
-of this motley and expectant party, the central figure of which was the
-butcher, Master Ritter, who had dropped to his knees as if praying for
-his life.
-
-General Washington turned to a sprightly looking, red-haired youth who
-rode at his side, as if calling his attention to this singular tableau.
-The Marquis de Lafayette shrugged his shoulders after the French
-manner, and said, laughingly:
-
-“It ees vat you t’ink? Vill they make ready to kill ’im? Vat they do?”
-
-Just behind them pounded General Mühlenberg, the clergyman who had
-doffed his gown for the uniform of a brigadier, stalwart, swarthy,
-laughter in his piercing eyes as he commented:
-
-“To the rescue! The victim is a worthy member of my old Pennsylvania
-flock. This doth savor of a soldier’s court-martial for honest Jacob
-Ritter.”
-
-The cavalcade halted, and the soldiers saluted, tongue-tied and
-embarrassed, scuffling, and prodding one another’s ribs in an attempt
-to urge a spokesman forward, while General Washington gazed down at
-them as if demanding an explanation.
-
-The butcher was about to make a stammering attempt when the string of
-his apron parted, and the ten cow-horns were scattered in the snow. He
-dived in pursuit of them, and his speech was never made.
-
-Because Jabez Rockwell was too light and slender to make much
-resistance, he was first to be pushed into the foreground, and found
-himself nearest the commander-in-chief. He made the best of a bad
-matter, and his frank young face flushed hotly as he doffed his
-battered cap and bowed low.
-
-“May it please the general, we were in a good-natured dispute touching
-the matter of those ten cow-horns which the butcher brought amongst us
-to his peril. There are more muskets than pouches in our street, and we
-are debating a fair way to divide them. It is--it is exceedingly bold,
-sir, but dare we ask you to suggest a way out of the trouble which
-preys sorely on the butcher’s mind and body?”
-
-A fleeting frown troubled the noble face of the chief, and his mouth
-twitched, not with anger but in pain, for the incident brought home
-to him anew that his soldiers, these brave, cheerful, half-clothed,
-freezing followers, were without even the simplest tools of warfare.
-
-The cloud cleared and he smiled, such a proud, affectionate smile as
-a father shows to sons of his who have deemed no sacrifice too great
-for duty’s sake. His eyes softened as he looked down at the straight
-stripling at his bridle-rein, and replied:
-
-“You have asked my advice as a third party, and it is meet that I share
-in the distribution. Follow me to the nearest hut.”
-
-His officers wheeled and rode after him, while the bewildered soldiers
-trailed behind, two and two, down the narrow road, greatly wondering
-whether reward or punishment was to be their lot.
-
-As for Jabez Rockwell, he strode proudly in the van as guide to the
-log cabin, and felt his heart flutter as he jumped to the head of the
-charger, while the general dismounted with the agility of a boy.
-
-Turning to the soldiers, who hung abashed in the road, Washington
-called:
-
-“Come in, as many of you as can find room!”
-
-The company filled the hut, and made room for those behind by climbing
-into the tiers of bunks filled with boughs to soften the rough-hewn
-planks.
-
-In one corner a wood-fire smoldered in a rough stone fireplace, whose
-smoke made even the general cough and sneeze. He stood behind a bench
-of barked logs, and took from his pocket a folded document. Then he
-picked up from the hearth a bit of charcoal, and announced:
-
-“I will write down a number between fifteen hundred and two thousand,
-and the ten that guess nearest this number shall be declared the
-winners of the ten horns.”
-
-He carefully tore the document into strips, and then into small
-squares, which were passed among the delighted audience. There was a
-busy whispering and scratching of heads. Over in one corner, jammed
-against the wall until he gasped for breath, Jabez Rockwell said to
-himself:
-
-“I must guess shrewdly. Methinks he will choose a number halfway
-between fifteen hundred and two thousand. I will write down seventeen
-hundred and fifty. But, stay! Seventeen seventy-six may come first into
-his mind, the glorious year when the independence of the colonies was
-declared. But he will surely take it that we, too, are thinking of that
-number, wherefore I will pass it by.”
-
-As if reading his thoughts, a comrade curled up in a bunk at Rockwell’s
-elbow muttered:
-
-“Seventeen seventy-six, I haven’t a doubt of it!”
-
-Alas for the cunning surmise of Jabez, the chief did write down
-Independence year, “1776,” and when this verdict was read aloud, the
-boy felt deep disappointment. This was turned to joy, however, when
-his guess of “1750” was found to be among the ten nearest the fateful
-choice, and one of the powder-horns fell to him.
-
-The soldiers pressed back to make way for General Washington as he went
-out of the hut, stooping low that his head might escape the roof-beams.
-Before the party mounted, the boyish Lafayette swung his hat round his
-head and shouted:
-
-“A huzza for ze wise general!”
-
-The soldiers cheered lustily, and General Mühlenberg followed with:
-
-“Now a cheer for the Declaration of Independence and for the soldier
-who wrote down ‘Seventeen seventy-six.’”
-
-General Washington bowed in his saddle, and the shouting followed his
-clattering train up the valley on his daily tour of inspection. He left
-behind him a new-fledged hero in the person of Jabez Rockwell whose
-bold tactics had won him a powder-horn and given his comrades the
-rarest hour of the dreary winter at Valley Forge.
-
-In his leisure time he scraped and polished the horn, fitted it with
-a wooden stopper and cord, and with greatest care and labor scratched
-upon its gleaming surface these words:
-
- _Jabez Rockwell, Ridgeway, Conn.--His Horn.
- Made in Camp at Valley Forge_
-
-Thin and pale, but with unbroken spirit, this sixteen-year-old veteran
-drilled and marched and braved picket duty in zero weather, often
-without a scrap of meat to brace his ration for a week on end; but
-he survived with no worse damage than sundry frostbites. In early
-spring he was assigned to duty as a sentinel of the company which
-guarded the path that led up the hill to the headquarters of the
-commander-in-chief. Here he learned much to make the condition of his
-comrades seem more hopeless and forlorn than ever.
-
-Hard-riding scouting parties came into camp with reports of forays as
-far as the suburbs of Philadelphia, twenty miles away. Spies disguised
-as farmers returned with stories of visits into the heart of the
-capital city held by the enemy. This gossip and information, which
-the young sentinel picked up bit by bit, he pieced together to make a
-picture of an invincible, veteran British army, waiting to fall upon
-the huddled mob of “rebels” at Valley Forge, and sweep them away like
-chaff. He heard it over and over again, that the Hessians, with their
-tall and gleaming brass hats and fierce moustaches, “were dreadful to
-look upon,” that the British Grenadiers, who tramped the Philadelphia
-streets in legions, “were like moving ranks of stone wall.”
-
-Then Jabez would look out across the valley, and perhaps see an
-American regiment at drill, without uniforms, ranks half-filled,
-looking like an array of scarecrows. His heart would sink, despite
-his memories of Saratoga; and in such dark hours he could not believe
-it possible even for General Washington to win a battle in the coming
-summer campaign.
-
-It was on a bright day of June that Capt. Allan McLane, the leader of
-scouts, galloped past the huts of the sentinels, and shouted as he rode:
-
-“The British have marched out of Philadelphia! I have just cut my way
-through their skirmishers over in New Jersey!”
-
-A little later orderlies were buzzing out of the old stone house at
-headquarters like bees from a hive, with orders for the troops to be
-ready to march. As Jabez Rockwell hurried to rejoin his regiment, men
-were shouting the glad news along the green valley, with songs and
-cheers and laughter. They fell in as a fighting army, and left behind
-them the tragic story of their winter at Valley Forge, as the trailing
-columns swept beyond the Schuylkill into the wide and smiling farm
-lands of Pennsylvania.
-
-Summer heat now blistered the dusty faces that had been for so long
-blue and pinched with hunger and cold. A week of glad marching and
-full rations carried Washington’s awakened army into New Jersey, by
-which time the troops knew their chief was leading them to block the
-British retreat from Philadelphia.
-
-Jabez Rockwell, marching with the Connecticut Brigade, had forgotten
-his fears of the brass-capped Hessians and the stone-wall Grenadiers.
-One night they camped near Monmouth village, and scouts brought in the
-tidings that the British were within sight. In the long summer twilight
-Jabez climbed a little knoll hard by, and caught a glimpse of the white
-tents of the Queen’s Rangers, hardly beyond musketshot. Before daybreak
-a rattle of firing woke him and he scrambled out, to find that the
-pickets were already exchanging shots.
-
-He picked up his old musket, and chewing a hunk of dry bread for
-breakfast, joined his company drawn up in a pasture. Knapsacks were
-piled near Freehold Meeting-house, and the troops marched ahead, not
-knowing where they were sent.
-
-Across the wooded fields Jabez saw the lines of red splotches which
-gleamed in the early sunlight and he knew these were British troops.
-The rattling musket-fire became a grinding roar, and the deeper note
-of artillery boomed into the tumult. A battle had begun, yet the
-Connecticut Brigade was stewing in the heat hour after hour, impatient,
-troubled, wondering why they had no part to play. As the forenoon
-dragged along the men became sullen and weary.
-
-When at last an order came it was not to advance, but to retreat.
-Falling back, they found themselves near their camping-place. Valley
-Forge had not quenched the faith of Jabez Rockwell in General
-Washington’s power to conquer any odds, but now he felt such dismay as
-brought hot tears to his eyes. On both sides of his regiment American
-troops were streaming to the rear, their columns broken and straggling.
-It seemed as if the whole army was fleeing from the veterans of Clinton
-and Cornwallis.
-
-Jabez flung himself into a cornfield, and hid his face in his arms.
-Round him his comrades were muttering their anger and despair. He
-fumbled for his canteen, and his fingers closed round his powder-horn.
-“General Washington did not give you to me to run away with,” he
-whispered; and then his parched lips moved in a little prayer:
-
-“Dear Lord, help us to beat the British this day, and give me a chance
-to empty my powder-horn before night. Thou hast been with General
-Washington and me ever since last year. Please don’t desert us now.”
-
-Nor was he surprised when, as if in direct answer to his petition,
-he rose to see the chief riding through the troop lines, but such a
-chief as he had never before known. The kindly face was aflame with
-anger, and streaked with dust and sweat. The powerful horse he rode was
-lathered, and its heaving flanks were scarred from hard-driven spurs.
-
-As the commander passed the regiment, his staff in a whirlwind at his
-heels, Jabez heard him shout in a great voice vibrant with rage and
-grief:
-
-“I cannot believe the army is retreating. I ordered a general advance.
-Who dared to give such an order! Advance those lines----”
-
-“It was General Lee’s order to retreat,” Jabez heard an officer stammer
-in reply.
-
-Washington vanished in a moment, with a storm of cheers in his wake.
-Jabez was content to wait for orders now. He believed the Battle of
-Monmouth as good as won.
-
-His recollection of the next few hours was jumbled and hazy. He knew
-that the regiment went forward, and then the white smoke of musket-fire
-closed down before him. Now and then the summer breeze made rifts in
-this stifling cloud, and he saw it streaked with spouting fire. He
-aimed his old musket at that other foggy line beyond the rail fence,
-whose top was lined with men in coats of red and green and black.
-
-Suddenly his officers began running to and fro, and a shout ran down
-the thin line:
-
-“Stand steady, Connecticut! Save your fire! Aim low! Here comes a
-charge!”
-
-A tidal wave of red and brass broke through the gaps in the rail fence,
-and the sunlight rippled along a wavering line of British bayonets.
-They crept nearer, nearer, until Jabez could see the grim ferocity, the
-bared teeth, the staring eyes of the dreaded Grenadiers.
-
-At the command to fire he pulled trigger, and the kick of his musket
-made him grunt with pain. Pulling the stopper from his powder-horn with
-his teeth, Jabez poured in a charge, and was ramming the bullet home
-when he felt his right leg double under him and burn as if red-hot iron
-had seared it.
-
-Then the charging tide of Grenadiers swept over him. He felt their
-hobnailed heels bite into his back; then his head felt queer, and he
-closed his eyes. When he found himself trying to rise, he saw, as
-through a mist, his regiment falling back, driven from their ground
-by the first shock of the charge. He groaned in agony of spirit. What
-would General Washington say?
-
-Jabez was now behind the headlong British column, which heeded him
-not. He was in a little part of the field cleared of fighting, for the
-moment, except for the wounded, who dotted the trampled grass. The
-smoke had drifted away, for the swaying lines in front of him were
-locked in the frightful embrace of cold steel.
-
-The boy staggered to his feet, with his musket as a crutch, and his
-wound was forgotten. He was given strength to his need by the spirit of
-a great purpose.
-
-Alone he stood and reeled, while he beckoned, passionately,
-imploringly, his arm outstretched toward his broken regiment. The
-lull in the firing made a moment of strange quiet, broken only by
-groans, and the hard, gasping curses of men locked in the death-grip.
-Therefore, the shrill young voice carried far, as he shouted:
-
-“Come back, Connecticut! I’m waiting for you!”
-
-His captain heard the boy, and waved his sword with hoarse cries to his
-men. They caught sight of the lonely little figure in the background,
-and his cry went to their hearts, and a great wave of rage and shame
-swept the line like a prairie fire. Like a landslide the men of
-Connecticut swept forward to recapture the ground they had yielded.
-Back fell the British before a countercharge they could not withstand,
-back beyond the rail fence. Nor was there refuge even there, for,
-shattered and spent, they were smashed to fragments in a flank attack
-driven home in the nick of time by the American reserves.
-
-From a low hill to the right of this action General Washington had
-paused to view the charge just when his line gave way. He sent an
-officer in hot haste for reserves, and waited for them where he was.
-
-Thus it happened that his eye swept the littered field from which Jabez
-Rockwell rose, as one from the dead, to rally his comrades, alone,
-undaunted, pathetic beyond words. A little later two privates were
-carrying to the rear the wounded lad, who had been picked up alive and
-conscious. They halted to salute their commander-in-chief, and laid
-their burden down as the general drew rein and said:
-
-“Take this man to my quarters, and see to it that he has every possible
-attention. I saw him save a regiment and retake a position.”
-
-The limp figure on the litter of boughs raised itself on an elbow, and
-said very feebly:
-
-“I didn’t want to see that powder-horn disgraced, sir.”
-
-With a smile of recognition General Washington responded:
-
-“The powder-horn? I remember. _You_ are the lad who led the powder-horn
-rebellion at Valley Forge. And I wrote down ‘Seventeen seventy-six.’
-You have used it well, my boy. I will not forget.”
-
-When Jabez Rockwell was able to rejoin his company, he scratched upon
-the powder-horn this addition to the legend he had carved at Valley
-Forge:
-
- _First used at Monmouth, June 28, 1778._
-
-A hundred years later the grandson of Jabez Rockwell hung the
-powder-horn in the old stone house at Valley Forge which had been
-General Washington’s headquarters. And if you should chance to see it
-there you will find that the young soldier added one more line to the
-rough inscription:
-
- _Last used at Yorktown, 1781._
-
-
-
-
-THE LITTLE LORD OF THE MANOR[B]
-
-By E. S. BROOKS
-
- A picture of Evacuation Day in New York, in 1783, when the British
- troops hauled down their flag and sailed away from free America.
- A little lost lord, his distracted Tory grandfather, and some
- kind-hearted American children are the principal characters. And we
- are told how little Mistress Dolly Duane “won the distinguished honor
- of being kissed by both Commanders-in-Chief on the same eventful day.”
-
-
-It was the 25th of November, 1783--a brilliant day, clear, crisp, and
-invigorating, with just enough of frosty air to flush the eager cheeks
-and nip the inquisitive noses of every boy and girl in the excited
-crowd that filled the Bowery lane from Harlem to the barriers, and
-pressed fast upon the heels of General Knox’s advance detachment of
-Continental troops marching to the position assigned them, near the
-“tea-water pump.” In the Duane mansion a fire was blazing brightly and
-Mistress Dolly’s pet cat was purring comfortably in the cheerful light.
-But Mistress Dolly herself cared just now for neither cat nor comfort.
-She, too, was on the highway watching for the exciting events that were
-to make this Evacuation Day in New York one of the most memorable
-occasions in the history of the chief American city.
-
-At some points the crowd was especially pushing and persistent, and
-Mistress Dolly Duane was decidedly uncomfortable. For little Dolly
-detested crowds, as, in fact, she detested everything that interfered
-with the comfort of a certain dainty little maiden of thirteen. And
-she was just on the point of expressing to her cousin, young Edward
-Livingston, her regret that they had not stayed to witness the
-procession from the tumbledown gateway of the Duane country-house, near
-the King’s Bridge road, when, out from the crowd, came the sound of a
-child’s voice, shrill and complaining.
-
-“Keep off, you big, bad man!” it said; “keep off and let me pass! How
-dare you crowd me so, you wicked rebels?”
-
-“Rebels, hey?” a harsh and mocking voice exclaimed. “Rebels! Heard ye
-that, mates? Well crowed, my little cockerel. Let’s have a look at
-you,” and a burly arm rudely parted the pushing crowd and dragged out
-of the press a slight, dark-haired little fellow of seven or eight,
-clad in velvet and ruffles.
-
-“Put me down! Put me down, I say!” screamed the boy, his small face
-flushed with passion. “Put me down, I tell you, or I’ll bid Angevine
-horsewhip you!”
-
-“Hark to the little Tory,” growled his captor. “A rare young bird, now,
-isn’t he? Horsewhip _us_, d’ye say--us, free American citizens? And who
-may you be, my little beggar?”
-
-“I am no beggar, you bad man,” cried the child angrily. “I am the
-little lord of the manor.”
-
-“Lord of the manor! Ho, ho, ho!” laughed the big fellow. “Give us
-grace, your worship,” he said, with mock humility. “Lord of the manor!
-Look at him, mates,” and he held the struggling little lad toward
-the laughing crowd. “Why, there are no lords nor manors now in free
-America, my bantam.”
-
-“But I am, I tell you!” protested the boy. “That’s what my grandfather
-calls me--oh, where is he? Take me to him, please: he calls me the
-little lord of the manor.”
-
-“Who’s your grandfather?” demanded the man.
-
-“Who? Why, don’t you know?” the “little lord” asked incredulously.
-“Everybody knows my grandfather, I thought. He is Colonel Phillipse,
-Baron of Phillipsbourg, and lord of the manor; and he’ll kill you if
-you hurt me,” he added defiantly.
-
-“Phillipse, the king of Yonckers! Phillipse, the fat old Tory of West
-Chester! A prize, a prize, mates!” shouted the bully. “What say you?
-Shall we hold this young bantling hostage for the tainted Tory, his
-grandfather, and when once we get the old fellow serve him as we did
-the refugee at Wall-kill t’ other day?”
-
-“What did you do?” the crowd asked.
-
-“Faith, we tarred and feathered him well, put a hog-yoke on his neck
-and a cow-bell, too, and then rode him on a rail till he cheered for
-the Congress.”
-
-“Treat my grandfather like that--my good grandfather? You shall not!
-you dare not!” cried the small Phillipse, with a flood of angry tears,
-as he struggled and fought in his captor’s clutch.
-
-Dolly Duane’s kindly heart was filled with pity at the rough usage of
-the “little lord.”
-
-“Oh, sir,” she said, as she pushed through the crowd and laid her hand
-on the big bully’s arm, “let the child go. ’Tis unmannerly to treat him
-as you do, and you’re very, very cruel.”
-
-The fellow turned roughly around and looked down into Dolly’s disturbed
-and protesting face.
-
-“What, another of ’em?” he said surlily. “Why, the place is full of
-little Tories.”
-
-“No, no; no Tory I!” said indignant Dolly. “My father is Mr. Duane, and
-he is no Tory.”
-
-“Mr. Duane, of the Congress?” “Give up the lad to the maid.” “Why harm
-the child?” came mingled voices from the crowd.
-
-“What care I for Duane!” said the bully contemptuously. “One man’s as
-good as another now in free America--isn’t he? Bah! you’re all cowards;
-but I know when I’ve got a good thing. You don’t bag a Phillipse every
-day, I’ll warrant you.”
-
-“No; but we bag other game once in a while,” said Dolly’s cousin, young
-Edward Livingston, pushing his way to her side. “We bag turncoats, and
-thieves, and murthering runagates sometimes, even in ‘free America’;
-and we know what to do with them when we do bag them. Friends,” he
-cried, turning to the crowd, “do you know this fellow? He’s a greater
-prize than the little Phillipse. ’Tis Big Jake of the Saw-mill--a
-‘skinner’ one day and a ‘cow-boy’ next, as it suits his fancy and as
-it brings him booty. I know him, and so does the water-guard. I am
-Livingston, of Clermont Manor. Let down the lad, man, or we’ll turn you
-over to the town-major. He’d like rarely to have a chance at you.”
-
-The crowd uttered a cry of rage as it closed excitedly around the burly
-member of the lawless gang that had preyed upon the defenceless people
-of the lower Hudson during the years of war and raid. The bully paled
-at the sound, and loosed his hold upon the little Phillipse. Without
-waiting to see the issue, young Livingston dragged the “little lord”
-from the throng, while his companion, Master Clinton, hurried Dolly
-along, and they were soon free from the crowd that was dealing roughly
-enough with Big Jake of the Saw-mill.
-
-“Now, Dolly, let us go back to the farm before we get into further
-trouble,” said Cousin Ned, a pleasant young fellow of eighteen, who
-looked upon himself as the lawful protector of “the children.”
-
-“But what shall we do with our little lord of the manor, Cousin Ned?”
-asked Dolly.
-
-“The safest plan is to take him with us,” he replied.
-
-“Oh, no, sir; no,” pleaded the little boy. “We sail to-day with Sir
-Guy Carleton, and what will grandfather do without me?” And then he
-told them how, early that morning, he had slipped away from Angevine,
-Colonel Phillipse’s body-servant, passed through the barriers and
-strolled up the Bowery lane to see the “rebel soldiers”; how he had
-lost his way in the crowd, and was in sore distress and danger until
-Dolly interfered; and how he thanked them “over and over again” for
-protecting him. But “Oh, please, I must go back to my grandfather,” he
-added.
-
-Little Mistress Dolly had a mind of her own, and she warmly championed
-the cause of the “lost little lord,” as she called him.
-
-“Cousin Ned,” she said, “of course he must go to his grandfather, and
-of course we must take him. Think how I should feel if they tried to
-keep me from my father!” and Dolly’s sympathetic eyes filled at the
-dreadful thought.
-
-“But how can we take him?” asked Cousin Ned. “How can we get past the
-barriers?”
-
-A hundred years ago New York City proper extended northward only as
-far as the present post-office, and during the Revolution a line of
-earthworks was thrown across the island at that point to defend it
-against assault from the north. The British sentinels at these barriers
-were not to give up their posts to the Americans until one o’clock on
-this eventful Evacuation Day, and Cousin Ned, therefore, could not well
-see how they could pass the sentries.
-
-But young Master Clinton, a bright, curly-haired boy of thirteen, said
-confidently: “Oh, that’s easily done.” And then, with a knowledge of
-the highways and byways which many rambles through the dear old town
-had given him, he unfolded his plan. “See here,” he said; “we’ll turn
-down the Monument lane, just below us, cut across through General
-Mortier’s woods to Mr. Nicholas Bayard’s, and so on to the Ranelagh
-Gardens. From there we can easily get over to the Broad Way and the
-Murray Street barrier before General Knox gets to the Fresh Water,
-where he has been ordered to halt until one o’clock. When the guard at
-the barrier knows that we have the little Baron of Phillipsbourg with
-us, and has handled the two York sixpences you will give him, of course
-he’ll let us pass. So, don’t you see, we can fix this little boy all
-right, and, better yet, can see King George’s men go out and our troops
-come in, and make just a splendid day of it.”
-
-Dolly, fully alive to these glorious possibilities, clapped her hands
-delightedly.
-
-“What a brain the boy has!” said young Livingston. “Keep on, my son,”
-he said patronizingly, “and you’ll make a great man yet.”
-
-“So I mean to be,” said De Witt Clinton cheerily, and then, heading the
-little group, he followed out the route he had proposed. Ere long the
-barriers were safely passed, Cousin Ned was two York sixpences out of
-pocket, and the young people stood within the British lines.
-
-“And now, where may we find your grandfather, little one?” Cousin Ned
-inquired, as they halted on the Broad Way beneath one of the tall
-poplars that lined that old-time street.
-
-The little Phillipse could not well reply. The noise and confusion
-that filled the city had well-nigh turned his head. For what with the
-departing English troops, the disconsolate loyalist refugees hurrying
-for transportation to distant English ports, and the zealous citizens
-who were making great preparations to welcome the incoming soldiers
-of the Congress, the streets of the little city were full of bustle
-and excitement. The boy said his grandfather might be at the fort; he
-might be at the King’s Arms Tavern, near Stone Street; he might be--he
-_would_ be--hunting for him.
-
-So Master Clinton suggested: “Let’s go down to Mr. Day’s tavern here in
-Murray Street. He knows me, and, if he can, will find Colonel Phillipse
-for us.” Down into Murray Street therefore they turned, and, near the
-road to Greenwich, saw the tavern--a long, low-roofed house, gable end
-to the street--around which an excited crowd surged and shouted.
-
-“Why, look there,” Master Clinton cried; “look there; and the king’s
-men not yet gone!” and, following the direction of his finger, they
-saw with surprise the stars and stripes, the flag of the new republic,
-floating from the pole before the tavern.
-
-“Huzza!” they shouted with the rest, but the “little lord” said,
-somewhat contemptuously, “Why, ’tis the rebel flag--or so my
-grandfather calls it.”
-
-“Rebel no longer, little one,” said Cousin Ned, “as even your good
-grandfather must now admit. But surely,” he added anxiously, “Mr. Day
-will get himself in trouble by raising his flag before our troops come
-in.”
-
-An angry shout now rose from the throng around the flag-staff, and as
-the fringe of small boys scattered and ran in haste, young Livingston
-caught one of them by the arm. “What’s the trouble, lad?” he asked.
-
-“Let go!” said the boy, struggling to free himself. “You’d better
-scatter, too, or Cunningham will catch you. He’s ordered down Day’s
-flag and says he’ll clear the crowd.”
-
-They all knew who Cunningham was--the cruel and vindictive British
-provost-marshal; the starver of American prisoners and the terror of
-American children. “Come away, quick,” said Cousin Ned. But though they
-drew off at first, curiosity was too strong, and they were soon in the
-crowd again.
-
-Cunningham, the marshal, stood at the foot of the flag-pole. “Come,
-you rebel cur,” he said to Mr. Day. “I give you two minutes to haul
-down that rag--two minutes, d’ye hear, or into the Provost you go. Your
-beggarly troops are not in possession here yet, and I’ll have no such
-striped rag as that flying in the faces of His Majesty’s forces!”
-
-“There it is, and there it shall stay,” said Day, quietly but firmly.
-
-Cunningham turned to his guard.
-
-“Arrest that man,” he ordered. “And as for this thing here, I’ll haul
-it down myself,” and seizing the halyards, he began to lower the flag.
-The crowd broke out into fierce murmurs, uncertain what to do. But in
-the midst of the tumult the door of the tavern flew open, and forth
-sallied Mrs. Day, “fair, fat, and forty,” armed with her trusty broom.
-
-“Hands off that flag, you villain, and drop my husband!” she cried,
-and before the astonished Cunningham could realize the situation, the
-broom came down thwack! thwack! upon his powdered wig. Old men still
-lived, not thirty years ago, who were boys in that excited crowd, and
-remembered how the powder flew from the stiff white wig and how, amidst
-jeers and laughter, the defeated provost-marshal withdrew from the
-unequal contest, and fled before the resistless sweep of Mrs. Day’s
-all-conquering broom. And the flag did not come down.
-
-From the vantage-ground of a projecting “stoop” our young friends had
-indulged in irreverent laughter, and the marshal’s quick ears caught
-the sound.
-
-Fuming with rage and seeking some one to vent his anger on, he rushed
-up the “stoop” and bade his guard drag down the culprits.
-
-“What pestilent young rebels have we here?” he growled. “Who are you?”
-He started as they gave their names. “Livingston? Clinton? Duane?” he
-repeated. “Well, well--a rare lot this of the rebel brood! And who is
-yon young bantling in velvet and ruffles?”
-
-“You must not stop us, sir,” said the boy, facing the angry marshal.
-“I am the little lord of the manor, and my grandfather is Colonel
-Phillipse. Sir Guy Carleton is waiting for me.”
-
-“Well, well,” exclaimed the surprised marshal; “here’s a fine to-do!
-A Phillipse in this rebel lot! What does it mean? Have ye kidnapped
-the lad? Here may be some treachery. Bring them along!” and with as
-much importance as if he had captured a whole corps of Washington’s
-dragoons, instead of a few harmless children, the young prisoners were
-hurried off, followed by an indignant crowd. Dolly was considerably
-frightened, and dark visions of the stocks, the whipping-post, and the
-ducking-stool by the Collect pond rose before her eyes. But Cousin Ned
-whispered: “Don’t be afraid, Dolly--’twill all be right”; and Master
-Clinton even sought to argue with the marshal.
-
-“There are no rebels now, sir,” he said, “since your king has given up
-the fight. You yourselves are rebels, rather, if you restrain us of our
-freedom. I know your king’s proclamation word for word. It says: ‘We do
-hereby strictly charge and command all our officers, both at sea and
-land, and all other our subjects whatsoever, to forbear all acts of
-hostility, either by sea or land, against the United States of America,
-their vassals or subjects, under the penalty of incurring our highest
-displeasure.’ Wherefore, Sir,” concluded this wise young pleader, “if
-you keep us in unlawful custody, you do brave your king’s displeasure.”
-
-“You impudent young rebel----” began Cunningham; but the “little lord”
-interrupted him with: “You shall not take us to jail, sir, I will tell
-my grandfather, and he will make Sir Guy punish you.” And upon this the
-provost-marshal, whose wrath had somewhat cooled, began to fear that he
-might, perhaps, have exceeded his authority, and ere long, with a sour
-look and a surly word, he set the young people free.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Sir Guy Carleton, K. C. B., commander-in-chief of all His Majesty’s
-forces in the colonies, stood at the foot of the flag-staff on the
-northern bastion of Fort George. Before him filed the departing troops
-of his king, evacuating the pleasant little city they had occupied
-for more than seven years. “There might be seen,” says one of the
-old records, “the Hessian, with his towering, brass-fronted cap,
-moustache colored with the same blacking which colored his shoes, his
-hair plastered with tallow and flour, and reaching in whip-form to
-his waist. His uniform was a blue coat, yellow vest and breeches, and
-black gaiters. The Highlander, with his low checked bonnet, his tartan
-or plaid, short red coat, his kilt above his knees, and they exposed,
-his hose short and parti-colored. There were also the grenadiers
-of Anspach, with towering yellow caps; the gaudy Waldeckers, with
-their cocked hats edged with yellow scallops; the German yägers, and
-the various corps of English in glittering and gallant pomp.” The
-white-capped waves of the beautiful bay sparkled in the sunlight,
-while the whale-boats, barges, gigs, and launches sped over the water,
-bearing troops and refugees to the transports, or to the temporary
-camp on Staten Island. The last act of the evacuation was almost
-completed. But Sir Guy Carleton looked troubled. His eye wandered from
-the departing troops at Whitehall slip to the gate at Bowling Green,
-and then across the parade to the Governor’s gardens and the town
-beyond.
-
-“Well, sir, what word from Colonel Phillipse?” he inquired, as an aide
-hurried to his side.
-
-“He bids you go without him, General,” the aide reported. “The boy is
-not yet found, but the Colonel says he will risk seizure rather than
-leave the lad behind.”
-
-“It cannot well be helped,” said the British commander. “I will myself
-dispatch a line to General Washington, requesting due courtesy and safe
-conduct for Colonel Phillipse and his missing heir. But see--whom have
-we here?” he asked, as across the parade came a rumbling coach, while
-behind it a covered cariole came tearing through the gateway. Ere the
-bastion on which the General stood was reached the cariole drew up with
-sudden stop. Angevine, the black body-servant, sprang to the horses’
-heads, and a very large man hatless, though richly dressed, descended
-hastily and flung open the door of the coach just as Mistress Dolly was
-preparing to descend, and as he helped her out he caught in his ample
-arms the little fellow who followed close at her heels.
-
-“Good; the lost is found!” exclaimed Sir Guy, who had been an
-interested spectator of the pantomime.
-
-“All is well, General,” Colonel Phillipse cried joyfully, as the
-commander came down from the bastion and welcomed the new-comers. “My
-little lord of the manor is found; and, faith, his loss troubled me
-more than all the attainder and forfeiture the rebel Congress can crowd
-upon me.”
-
-“But how got he here?” Sir Guy asked.
-
-“This fair little lady is both his rescuer and protector,” replied the
-grandfather.
-
-“And who may you be, little mistress?” asked the commander-in-chief.
-
-Dolly made a neat little curtsy, for those were the days of good
-manners, and she was a proper little damsel. “I am Dolly Duane, your
-Excellency,” she said, “daughter of Mr. James Duane of the Congress.”
-
-“Duane!” exclaimed the Colonel; “Well, well, little one, I did not
-think a Phillipse would ever acknowledge himself debtor to a Duane,
-but now do I gladly do it. Bear my compliments to your father,
-sweet Mistress Dolly, and tell him that his old enemy, Phillipse,
-of Phillipsbourg, will never forget the kindly aid of his gentle
-little daughter, who has this day restored a lost lad to a sorrowing
-grandfather. And let me thus show my gratitude for your love and
-service,” and the very large man, stooping in all courtesy before the
-little girl, laid his hand in blessing on her head, and kissed her fair
-young face.
-
-“A rare little maiden, truly,” said gallant Sir Guy: “and though I
-have small cause to favor so hot an enemy of the king as is Mr. James
-Duane, I admire his dutiful little daughter; and thus would I, too,
-render her love and service,” and the gleaming scarlet and gold-laced
-arms of the courtly old commander encircled fair Mistress Dolly, and
-a hearty kiss fell upon her blushing cheeks. But she was equal to the
-occasion. Raising herself on tiptoe, she dropped a dainty kiss upon the
-General’s smiling face, and said, “Let this, sir, be America’s good-bye
-kiss to your Excellency.”
-
-“A right royal salute,” said Sir Guy. “Mr. De Lancy, bid the
-band-master give us the farewell march,” and to the strains of
-appropriate music the commander-in-chief and his staff passed down to
-the boats and the little lord of Phillipse Manor waved Mistress Dolly a
-last farewell.
-
-Then the Red Cross of St. George, England’s royal flag, came
-fluttering down from its high staff on the north bastion, and the
-last of the rear-guard wheeled toward the slip. But Cunningham, the
-provost-marshal, still angered by the thought of his discomfiture
-at Day’s tavern, declared roundly that no rebel flag should go up
-that staff in sight of King George’s men. “Come lively now, you
-blue jackets,” he shouted, turning to some of the sailors from the
-fleet. “Unreeve the halyards, quick; slush down the pole; knock off
-the stepping-cleats! Then let them run their rag up if they can.”
-His orders were quickly obeyed. The halyards were speedily cut, the
-stepping-cleats knocked from the staff, and the tall pole covered
-with grease, so that none might climb it. And with this final act
-of unsoldierly discourtesy, the memory of which has lived through a
-hundred busy years, the provost-marshal left the now liberated city.
-
-Even Sir Guy’s gallant kiss could not rid Dolly of her fear of
-Cunningham’s frown; but as she scampered off she heard his final order,
-and, hot with indignation, told the news to Cousin Ned and Master
-Clinton, who were in waiting for her on the Bowling Green. The younger
-lad was for stirring up the people to instant action, but just then
-they heard the roll of drums, and, standing near the ruins of King
-George’s statue, watched the advance-guard of the Continental troops as
-they filed in to take possession of the fort. Beneath the high gateway
-and straight toward the north bastion marched the detachment--a troop
-of horse, a regiment of infantry, and a company of artillery. The
-batteries, the parapets, and the ramparts were thronged with cheering
-people, and Colonel Jackson, halting before the flag-staff, ordered up
-the stars and stripes.
-
-“The halyards are cut, Colonel,” reported the color-sergeant; “the
-cleats are gone, and the pole is slushed.”
-
-“A mean trick, indeed,” exclaimed the indignant Colonel. “Hallo there,
-lads, will you be outwitted by such a scurvy trick! Look where they
-wait in their boats to give us the laugh. Will you let tainted Tories
-and buttermilk Whigs thus shame us? A gold jacobus to him who will
-climb the staff and reeve the halyards for the stars and stripes.”
-
-Dolly’s quick ear caught the ringing words. “Oh, Cousin Ned,” she
-cried, “I saw Jacky Van Arsdale on the Bowling Green. Don’t you
-remember how he climbed the greased pole at Clermont, in the May
-merrying?” and with that she sped across the parade and through the
-gateway, returning soon with a stout sailor-boy of fifteen. “Now tell
-the Colonel you’ll try it, Jacky.”
-
-“Go it, Jack!” shouted Cousin Ned. “I’ll make the gold jacobus two if
-you but reeve the halyards.”
-
-“I want no money for the job, Master Livingston,” said the sailor-lad.
-“I’ll do it if I can for Mistress Dolly’s sake.”
-
-Jack was an expert climber, but if any of my boy readers think it
-a simple thing to “shin up” a greased pole, just let them try it
-once--and fail.
-
-Jack Van Arsdale tried it manfully once, twice, thrice, and each time
-came slipping down covered with slush and shame. And all the watchers
-in the boats off-shore joined in a chorus of laughs and jeers. Jack
-shook his fist at them angrily. “I’ll fix ’em yet,” he said. “If ye’ll
-but saw me up some cleats, and give me hammer and nails, I’ll run that
-flag to the top in spite of all the Tories from ’Sopus to Sandy Hook!”
-
-Ready hands and willing feet came to the assistance of the plucky
-lad. Some ran swiftly to Mr. Goelet’s, “the iron-monger’s” in Hanover
-Square, and brought quickly back “a hand-saw, hatchet, hammer, gimlets,
-and nails”; others drew a long board to the bastion, and while one
-sawed the board into lengths, another split the strips into cleats,
-others bored the nail-holes, and soon young Jack had material enough.
-
-Then, tying the halyards around his waist, and filling his jacket
-pockets with cleats and nails, he worked his way up the flag-pole,
-nailing and climbing as he went. And now he reaches the top, now the
-halyards are reeved, and as the beautiful flag goes fluttering up the
-staff a mighty cheer is heard, and a round of thirteen guns salutes the
-stars and stripes and the brave sailor-boy who did the gallant deed!
-
-From the city streets came the roll and rumble of distant drums, and
-Dolly and her two companions, following the excited crowd, hastened
-across Hanover Square, and from an excellent outlook in the Fly Market
-watched the whole grand procession as it wound down Queen (now Pearl)
-Street, making its triumphal entry into the welcoming city. First came
-a corps of dragoons, then followed the advance-guard of light infantry
-and a corps of artillery, then more light infantry, a battalion of
-Massachusetts troops, and the rear-guard. As the veterans, with their
-soiled and faded uniforms, filed past, Dolly could not help contrasting
-them with the brilliant appearance of the British troops she had seen
-in the fort. “Their clothes _do_ look worn and rusty,” she said. “But
-then,” she added, with beaming eyes, “they are _our_ soldiers, and that
-is everything.”
-
-And now she hears “a great hozaing all down the Fly,” as one record
-queerly puts it, and as the shouts increase, she sees a throng of
-horsemen, where, escorted by Captain Delavan’s “West Chester Light
-Horse,” ride the heroes of that happy hour, General George Washington
-and Governor George Clinton. Dolly added her clear little treble to
-the loud huzzas as the famous commander-in-chief rode down the echoing
-street. Behind their excellencies came other officials, dignitaries,
-army officers, and files of citizens, on horseback and afoot, many of
-the latter returning to dismantled and ruined homes after nearly eight
-years of exile.
-
-But Dolly did not wait to see the whole procession. She had spied her
-father in the line of mounted citizens and flying across Queen Street,
-and around by Golden Hill (near Maiden Lane), where the first blood of
-the Revolution was spilled, she hurried down the Broad Way, so as to
-reach Mr. Cape’s tavern before their excellencies arrived.
-
-Soon she was in her father’s arms relating her adventures, and as she
-received his chidings for mingling in such “unseemly crowds,” and his
-praise for her championship and protection of the little Phillipse,
-a kindly hand was laid upon her fair young head, and a voice whose
-tones she could never forget said: “So may our children be angels of
-peace, Mr. Duane. Few have suffered more, or deserved better from their
-country, sir, than you; but the possession of so rare a little daughter
-is a fairer recompense than aught your country can bestow. Heaven has
-given me no children, sir; but had I thus been blessed, I could have
-wished for no gentler or truer-hearted little daughter than this maid
-of yours.” And with the stately courtesy that marked the time, General
-Washington bent down and kissed little Dolly as she sat on her father’s
-knee. Touched by his kindly words, Dolly forgot all her awe of the
-great man. Flinging two winsome arms about his neck, she kissed him in
-return, and said softly: “If Mr. Duane were not my father, sir, I would
-rather it should be you than any one else.”
-
-In all her after-life, though she retained pleasant memories of Sir
-Guy Carleton, and thought him a grand and gallant gentleman, Dolly
-Duane held still more firmly to her reverence and affection for General
-Washington, whom she described as “looking more grand and noble than
-any human being she had ever seen.”
-
-Next to General Washington, I think she held the fireworks that were
-set off in the Bowling Green in honor of the Peace to have been the
-grandest thing she had ever seen. The rockets, and the wheels, and the
-tourbillions, and the batteries, and the stars were all so wonderful to
-her, that General Knox said Dolly’s “ohs” and “ahs” were “as good as a
-play”; and staid Master Clinton and jolly Cousin Ned threatened to send
-to the Ferry stairs for an anchor to hold her down. Both these young
-gentlemen grew to be famous Americans in after years, and witnessed
-many anniversaries of this glorious Evacuation Day. But they never
-enjoyed any of them quite as much as they did the exciting original,
-nor could they ever forget, amidst all the throng of memories, how
-sweet Mistress Dolly Duane championed and protected the lost “little
-lord of the manor,” and won the distinguished honor of being kissed by
-both the commanders-in-chief on the same eventful day.
-
-
-
-
-OLD ESTHER DUDLEY[C]
-
-BY NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE
-
- The Province House in Boston was the home of the Royal Governors of
- Massachusetts. This is the story of how the stately, spectre-haunted
- old Housekeeper, even after the departure of the last Royal Governor
- and the triumph of the Colonies, remained “faithful unto death” to
- her Sovereign Lord King George.
-
-
-The hour had come--the hour of defeat and humiliation--when Sir William
-Howe was to pass over the threshold of the Province House, and embark,
-with no such triumphal ceremonies as he once promised himself, on board
-the British fleet. He bade his servants and military attendants go
-before him, and lingered a moment in the loneliness of the mansion,
-to quell the fierce emotions that struggled in his bosom as with a
-death-throb. Preferable, then, would he have deemed his fate had a
-warrior’s death left him a claim to the narrow territory of a grave
-within the soil which the king had given him to defend. With an ominous
-perception that, as his departing footsteps echoed adown the staircase,
-the sway of Britain was passing forever from New England, he smote his
-clinched hand on his brow, and cursed the destiny that had flung the
-shame of a dismembered empire upon him.
-
-“Would to God,” cried he, hardly repressing his tears of rage, “that
-the rebels were even now at the doorstep! A bloodstain upon the floor
-should then bear testimony that the last British ruler was faithful to
-his trust.”
-
-The tremulous voice of a woman replied to his exclamation.
-
-“Heaven’s cause and the King’s are one,” it said. “Go forth, Sir
-William Howe, and trust in Heaven to bring back a royal governor in
-triumph.”
-
-Subduing at once the passion to which he had yielded only in the faith
-that it was unwitnessed, Sir William Howe became conscious that an aged
-woman, leaning on a gold-headed staff, was standing betwixt him and the
-door. It was old Esther Dudley, who had dwelt almost immemorial years
-in this mansion, until her presence seemed as inseparable from it as
-the recollections of its history. She was the daughter of an ancient
-and once eminent family, which had fallen into poverty and decay, and
-left its last descendant no resource save the bounty of the king, nor
-any shelter except within the walls of the Province House. An office
-in the household, with merely nominal duties, had been assigned to her
-as a pretext for the payment of a small pension, the greater part of
-which she expended in adorning herself with an antique magnificence of
-attire. The claims of Esther Dudley’s gentle blood were acknowledged
-by all the successive governors; and they treated her with the
-punctilious courtesy which it was her foible to demand, not always
-with success, from a neglectful world. The only actual share which
-she assumed in the business of the mansion was to glide through its
-passages and public chambers, late at night, to see that the servants
-had dropped no fire from their flaring torches, nor left embers
-crackling and blazing on the hearths. Perhaps it was this invariable
-custom of walking her rounds in the hush of midnight that caused the
-superstition of the times to invest the old woman with attributes
-of awe and mystery; fabling that she had entered the portal of the
-Province House, none knew whence, in the train of the first royal
-governor, and that it was her fate to dwell there till the last should
-have departed. But Sir William Howe, if he ever heard this legend, had
-forgotten it.
-
-“Mistress Dudley, why are you loitering here?” asked he, with some
-severity of tone. “It is my pleasure to be the last in this mansion of
-the king.”
-
-“Not so, if it please your Excellency,” answered the time-stricken
-woman. “This roof has sheltered me long. I will not pass from it until
-they bear me to the tomb of my forefathers. What other shelter is there
-for old Esther Dudley save the Province House or the grave?”
-
-“Now Heaven forgive me!” said Sir William Howe to himself. “I was
-about to leave this wretched old creature to starve or beg. Take this,
-good Mistress Dudley,” he added, putting a purse into her hands.
-“King George’s head on these golden guineas is sterling yet, and will
-continue so, I warrant you, even should the rebels crown John Hancock
-their king. That purse will buy a better shelter than the Province
-House can now afford.”
-
-“While the burden of life remains upon me, I will have no other shelter
-than this roof,” persisted Esther Dudley, striking her staff upon the
-floor with a gesture that expressed immovable resolve. “And when your
-Excellency returns in triumph, I will totter into the porch to welcome
-you.”
-
-“My poor old friend!” answered the British General; and all his manly
-and martial pride could no longer restrain a gush of bitter tears.
-“This is an evil hour for you and me. The province which the king
-intrusted to my charge is lost. I go hence in misfortune--perchance
-in disgrace--to return no more. And you, whose present being is
-incorporated with the past--who have seen governor after governor, in
-stately pageantry, ascend these steps--whose whole life has been an
-observance of majestic ceremonies, and a worship of the king--how will
-you endure the change? Come with us! Bid farewell to a land that has
-shaken off its allegiance, and live still under a royal government, at
-Halifax.”
-
-“Never, never!” said the pertinacious old dame. “Here will I abide;
-and King George shall still have one true subject in his disloyal
-province.”
-
-“Beshrew the old fool!” muttered Sir William Howe, growing impatient
-of her obstinacy, and ashamed of the emotion into which he had been
-betrayed. “She is the very moral of old-fashioned prejudice, and could
-exist nowhere but in this musty edifice. Well, then, Mistress Dudley,
-since you will needs tarry, I give the Province House in charge to
-you. Take this key, and keep it safe until myself, or some other royal
-governor, shall demand it of you.”
-
-Smiling bitterly at himself and her, he took the heavy key of the
-Province House, and, delivering it into the old lady’s hands, drew his
-cloak around him for departure. As the General glanced back at Esther
-Dudley’s antique figure, he deemed her well fitted for such a charge,
-as being so perfect a representative of the decayed past--of an age
-gone by, with its manners, opinions, faith, and feelings all fallen
-into oblivion or scorn--of what had once been a reality, but was now
-merely a vision of faded magnificence. Then Sir William Howe strode
-forth, smiting his clenched hands together in the fierce anguish of
-his spirit; and old Esther Dudley was left to keep watch in the lonely
-Province House, dwelling there with memory; and if Hope ever seemed to
-flit around her, still it was Memory in disguise.
-
-The total change of affairs that ensued on the departure of the British
-troops did not drive the venerable lady from her stronghold. There was
-not, for many years afterward, a governor of Massachusetts; and the
-magistrates, who had charge of such matters, saw no objection to Esther
-Dudley’s residence in the Province House, especially as they must
-otherwise have paid a hireling for taking care of the premises, which
-with her was a labor of love. And so they left her, the undisturbed
-mistress of the old historic edifice. Many and strange were the fables
-which the gossips whispered about her, in all the chimney-corners of
-the town. Among the time-worn articles of furniture that had been left
-in the mansion there was a tall, antique mirror, which was well worthy
-of a tale by itself, and perhaps may hereafter be the theme of one.
-The gold of its heavily wrought frame was tarnished, and its surface
-so blurred that the old woman’s figure, whenever she paused before
-it, looked indistinct and ghostlike. But it was the general belief
-that Esther could cause the governors of the overthrown dynasty, with
-the beautiful ladies who had once adorned their festivals, the Indian
-chiefs who had come up to the Province House to hold council or swear
-allegiance, the grim, provincial warriors, the severe clergymen--in
-short, all the pageantry of gone days--all the figures that ever
-swept across the broad plate of glass in former times--she could
-cause the whole to reappear, and people the inner world of the mirror
-with shadows of old life. Such legends as these, together with the
-singularity of her isolated existence, her age, and the infirmity
-that each added winter flung upon her, made Mistress Dudley the
-object both of fear and pity; and it was partly the result of either
-sentiment that, amid all the angry license of the times, neither wrong
-nor insult ever fell upon her unprotected head. Indeed, there was so
-much haughtiness in her demeanor toward intruders, among whom she
-reckoned all persons acting under the new authorities, that it was
-really an affair of no small nerve to look her in the face. And to do
-the people justice, stern republicans as they had now become, they
-were well content that the old gentlewoman, in her hoop petticoat and
-faded embroidery, should still haunt the palace of ruined pride and
-overthrown power, the symbol of a departed system, embodying a history
-in her person. So Esther Dudley dwelt, year after year, in the Province
-House, still reverencing all that others had flung aside, still
-faithful to her king, who, so long as the venerable dame yet held her
-post, might be said to retain one true subject in New England, and one
-spot of the empire that had been wrested from him.
-
-And did she dwell there in utter loneliness? Rumor said, not so.
-Whenever her chill and withered heart desired warmth, she was wont to
-summon a black slave of Governor Shirley’s from the blurred mirror, and
-send him in search of guests who had long ago been familiar in those
-deserted chambers. Forth went the sable messenger, with the starlight
-or the moonshine gleaming through him, and did his errand in the
-burial-ground, knocking at the iron doors of tombs, or upon the marble
-slabs that covered them, and whispering to those within, “My mistress,
-old Esther Dudley, bids you to the Province House at midnight.” And
-punctually as the clock of the Old South told twelve came the shadows
-of the Olivers, the Hutchinsons, the Dudleys, all the grandees of a
-bygone generation, gliding beneath the portal into the well-known
-mansion, where Esther mingled with them as if she likewise were a
-shade. Without vouching for the truth of such traditions, it is certain
-that Mistress Dudley sometimes assembled a few of the stanch though
-crestfallen old Tories who had lingered in the rebel town during those
-days of wrath and tribulation. Out of a cobwebbed bottle, containing
-liquor that a royal governor might have smacked his lips over, they
-quaffed healths to the king, and babbled treason to the Republic,
-feeling as if the protecting shadow of the throne were still flung
-around them. But, draining the last drops of their liquor, they stole
-timorously homeward, and answered not again if the rude mob reviled
-them in the street.
-
-Yet Esther Dudley’s most frequent and favored guests were the children
-of the town. Toward them she was never stern. A kindly and loving
-nature, hindered elsewhere from its free course by a thousand rocky
-prejudices, lavished itself upon these little ones. By bribes of
-gingerbread of her own making, stamped with a royal crown, she tempted
-their sunny sportiveness beneath the gloomy portal of the Province
-House, and would often beguile them to spend a whole play-day there,
-sitting in a circle round the verge of her hoop petticoat, greedily
-attentive to her stories of a dead world. And when these little boys
-and girls stole forth again from the dark, mysterious mansion, they
-went bewildered, full of old feelings that graver people had long ago
-forgotten, rubbing their eyes at the world around them as if they had
-gone astray into ancient times, and become children of the past. At
-home, when their parents asked where they had loitered such a weary
-while, and with whom they had been at play, the children would talk
-of all the departed worthies of the province, as far back as Governor
-Belcher, and the haughty dame of Sir William Phipps. It would seem as
-though they had been sitting on the knees of these famous personages,
-whom the grave had hidden for half a century, and had toyed with the
-embroidery of their rich waistcoats, or roguishly pulled the long
-curls of their flowing wigs. “But Governor Belcher has been dead this
-many a year,” would the mother say to her little boy. “And did you
-really see him at the Province House?” “Oh, yes, dear mother! Yes!”
-the half-dreaming child would answer. “But when old Esther had done
-speaking about him he faded away out of his chair.” Thus, without
-affrighting her little guests, she led them by the hand into the
-chambers of her own desolate heart, and made childhood’s fancy discern
-the ghosts that haunted there.
-
-Living so continually in her own circle of ideas, and never regulating
-her mind by a proper reference to present things, Esther Dudley
-appears to have grown partially crazed. It was found that she had no
-right sense of the progress and true state of the Revolutionary War,
-but held a constant faith that the armies of Britain were victorious
-on every field, and destined to be ultimately triumphant. Whenever the
-town rejoiced for a battle won by Washington, or Gates, or Morgan, or
-Greene, the news, in passing through the door of the Province House, as
-through the ivory gate of dreams, became metamorphosed into a strange
-tale of the prowess of Howe, Clinton, or Cornwallis. Sooner or later,
-it was her invincible belief, the colonies would be prostrate at the
-footstool of the king. Sometimes she seemed to take for granted that
-such was already the case. On one occasion she startled the townspeople
-by a brilliant illumination of the Province House, with candles at
-every pane of glass, and a transparency of the king’s initials and a
-crown of light in the great balcony window. The figure of the aged
-woman, in the most gorgeous of her mildewed velvets and brocades, was
-seen passing from casement to casement, until she paused before the
-balcony, and flourished a huge key above her head. Her wrinkled visage
-actually gleamed with triumph, as if the soul within her were a festal
-lamp.
-
-“What means this blaze of light? What does old Esther’s joy portend?”
-whispered a spectator. “It is frightful to see her gliding about the
-chambers, and rejoicing there without a soul to bear her company.”
-
-“It is as if she were making merry in a tomb,” said another.
-
-“Pshaw! It is no such mystery,” observed an old man, after some brief
-exercise of memory. “Mistress Dudley is keeping jubilee for the King
-of England’s birthday.” Then the people laughed aloud, and would
-have thrown mud against the blazing transparency of the king’s crown
-and initials, only that they pitied the poor old dame, who was so
-dismally triumphant amid the wreck and ruin of the system to which she
-appertained.
-
-Oftentimes it was her custom to climb the weary staircase that wound
-upward to the cupola, and thence strain her dimmed eyesight seaward
-and countryward, watching for a British fleet, or for the march of
-a grand procession, with the king’s banner floating over it. The
-passengers in the street below would discern her anxious visage, and
-send up a shout, “When the golden Indian on the Province House shall
-shoot his arrow, and when the cock on the Old South spire shall crow,
-then look for a royal governor again!”--for this had grown a byword
-through the town. And at last, after long, long years, old Esther
-Dudley knew, or perchance she only dreamed, that a royal governor was
-on the eve of returning to the Province House, to receive the heavy
-key which Sir William Howe had committed to her charge. Now it was the
-fact that intelligence bearing some faint analogy to Esther’s version
-of it was current among the townspeople. She set the mansion in the
-best order that her means allowed, and, arraying herself in silks and
-tarnished gold, stood long before the blurred mirror to admire her own
-magnificence. As she gazed, the gray and withered lady moved her ashen
-lips, murmuring half aloud, talking to shapes that she saw within the
-mirror, to shadows of her own fantasies, to the household friends of
-memory, and bidding them rejoice with her, and come forth to meet the
-governor. And, while absorbed in this communion, Mistress Dudley heard
-the tramp of many footsteps in the street, and, looking out at the
-window, beheld what she construed as the royal governor’s arrival.
-
-“O happy day! O blessed, blessed hour!” she exclaimed. “Let me but bid
-him welcome within the portal, and my task in the Province House, and
-on earth, is done!”
-
-Then with tottering feet, which age and tremulous joy caused to tread
-amiss, she hurried down the grand staircase, her silks sweeping and
-rustling as she went, so that the sound was as if a train of spectral
-courtiers were thronging from the dim mirror. And Esther Dudley fancied
-that, as soon as the wide door should be flung open, all the pomp and
-splendor of bygone times would pace majestically into the Province
-House, and the gilded tapestry of the past would be brightened by the
-sunshine of the present. She turned the key, withdrew it from the
-lock, unclosed the door, and stepped across the threshold. Advancing
-up the courtyard appeared a person of most dignified mien, with
-tokens, as Esther interpreted them, of gentle blood, high rank, and
-long-accustomed authority, even in his walk and every gesture. He was
-richly dressed, but wore a gouty shoe, which, however, did not lessen
-the stateliness of his gait. Around and behind him were people in
-plain civic dresses, and two or three war-worn veterans, evidently
-officers of rank, arrayed in a uniform of blue and buff. But Esther
-Dudley, firm in the belief that had fastened its roots about her heart,
-beheld only the principal personage, and never doubted that this was
-the long-looked-for governor, to whom she was to surrender up her
-charge. As he approached, she involuntarily sank down on her knees, and
-tremblingly held forth the heavy key.
-
-“Receive my trust! take it quickly!” cried she; “for methinks Death is
-striving to snatch away my triumph. But he comes too late. Thank Heaven
-for this blessed hour! God save King George!”
-
-“That, madam, is a strange prayer to be offered up at such a moment,”
-replied the unknown guest of the Province House, and, courteously
-removing his hat, he offered his arm to raise the aged woman. “Yet, in
-reverence for your gray hairs and long-kept faith, Heaven forbid that
-any here should say you nay. Over the realms which still acknowledge
-his sceptre, God save King George!”
-
-Esther Dudley started to her feet, and, hastily clutching back the
-key, gazed with fearful earnestness at the stranger; and dimly and
-doubtfully, as if suddenly awakened from a dream, her bewildered eyes
-half recognized his face. Years ago she had known him among the gentry
-of the province. But the ban of the king had fallen upon him! How,
-then, came the doomed victim here? Proscribed, excluded from mercy, the
-monarch’s most dreaded and hated foe, this New England merchant had
-stood triumphantly against a kingdom’s strength; and his foot now trod
-upon humbled royalty as he ascended the steps of the Province House,
-the people’s chosen governor of Massachusetts.
-
-“Wretch, wretch that I am!” muttered the old woman, with such a
-heart-broken expression that the tears gushed from the stranger’s eyes.
-“Have I bidden a traitor welcome? Come, Death! come quickly!”
-
-“Alas, venerable lady!” said Governor Hancock, lending her his support
-with all the reverence that a courtier would have shown to a queen.
-“Your life has been prolonged until the world has changed around
-you. You have treasured up all that time has rendered worthless--the
-principles, feelings, manners, modes of being and acting, which another
-generation has flung aside--and you are a symbol of the past. And I,
-and these around me--we represent a new race of men--living no longer
-in the past, scarcely in the present--but projecting our lives forward
-into the future. Ceasing to model ourselves on ancestral superstitions,
-it is our faith and principle to press onward, onward! Yet,” continued
-he, turning to his attendants, “let us reverence, for the last time,
-the stately and gorgeous prejudices of the tottering Past!”
-
-While the republican governor spoke he had continued to support the
-helpless form of Esther Dudley; her weight grew heavier against his
-arm; but at last, with a sudden effort to free herself, the ancient
-woman sank down beside one of the pillars of the portal. The key of the
-Province House fell from her grasp, and clanked against the stone.
-
-“I have been faithful unto death,” murmured she. “God save the king!”
-
-“She hath done her office!” said Hancock solemnly. “We will follow her
-reverently to the tomb of her ancestors; and then, my fellow-citizens,
-onward, onward! We are no longer children of the Past!”
-
-
-
-
-BETTY’S RIDE: A TALE OF THE REVOLUTION[D]
-
-By HENRY S. CANBY
-
- The story of a brave little Quaker girl’s perilous ride. How she
- saved the lives of many hard-pressed patriots, and won praise from
- the lips of General Washington, himself.
-
-
-The sun was just rising and showering his first rays on the gambrel
-roof and solid stone walls of a house surrounded by a magnificent grove
-of walnuts, and overlooking one of the beautiful valleys so common
-in southeastern Pennsylvania. Close by the house, and shaded by the
-same great trees, stood a low building of the most severe type, whose
-time-stained bricks and timbers green with moss told its age without
-the aid of the half-obliterated inscription over the door, which read,
-“Built A. D. 1720.” One familiar with the country would have pronounced
-it without hesitation a Quaker meeting-house, dating back almost to the
-time of William Penn.
-
-When Ezra Dale had become the leader of the little band of Quakers
-which gathered here every First Day, he had built the house under the
-walnut trees, and had taken his wife Ann and his little daughter Betty
-to live there. That was in 1770, seven years earlier, and before war
-had wrought sorrow and desolation throughout the country.
-
-The sun rose higher, and just as his beams touched the broad stone step
-in front of the house, the door opened, and Ann Dale, a sweet-faced
-woman in the plain Quaker garb, came out, followed by Betty, a little
-blue-eyed Quakeress of twelve years, with a gleam of spirit in her face
-which ill became her plain dress.
-
-“Betty,” said her mother, as they walked out toward the great horse
-block by the roadside, “thee must keep house to-day. Friend Robert
-has just sent thy father word that the redcoats have not crossed the
-Brandywine since Third Day last, and thy father and I will ride to
-Chester to-day, that there may be other than corn-cakes and bacon for
-the friends who come to us after monthly meeting. Mind thee keeps near
-the house and finishes thy sampler.”
-
-“Yes, mother,” said Betty; “but will thee not come home early? I shall
-miss thee sadly.”
-
-Just then Ezra appeared, wearing his collarless Quaker coat, and
-leading a horse saddled with a great pillion, into which Ann
-laboriously climbed after her husband, and with a final warning and
-“farewell” to Betty, clasped him tightly around the waist lest she
-should be jolted off as they jogged down the rough and winding lane
-into the broad Chester highway.
-
-Friend Ann had many reasons for fearing to leave Betty alone for a
-whole day, and she looked back anxiously at her waving “farewell” with
-her little bonnet.
-
-It was a troublous time.
-
-The Revolution was at its height, and the British, who had a short time
-before disembarked their army near Elkton, Maryland, were now encamped
-near White Clay Creek, while Washington occupied the country bordering
-on the Brandywine. His force, however, was small compared to the extent
-of the country to be guarded, and bands of the British sometimes
-crossed the Brandywine and foraged in the fertile counties of Delaware
-and Chester. As Betty’s father, although a Quaker and a non-combatant,
-was known to be a patriot, he had to suffer the fortunes of war with
-his neighbors.
-
-Thus it was with many forebodings that Betty’s mother watched the
-slight figure under the spreading branches of a great chestnut, which
-seemed to rustle its innumerable leaves as if to promise protection to
-the little maid. However, the sun shone brightly, the swallows chirped
-as they circled overhead, and nothing seemed farther off than battle
-and bloodshed.
-
-Betty skipped merrily into the house, and snatching up some broken
-corn-cake left from the morning meal, ran lightly out to the paddock
-where Daisy was kept, her own horse, which she had helped to raise from
-a colt.
-
-“Come thee here, Daisy,” she said, as she seated herself on the top
-rail of the mossy snake fence. “Come thee here, and thee shall have
-some of thy mistress’s corn-cake. Ah! I thought thee would like it. Now
-go and eat all thee can of this good grass, for if the wicked redcoats
-come again, thee will not have another chance, I can tell thee.”
-
-Daisy whinnied and trotted off, while Betty, feeding the few chickens
-(sadly reduced in numbers by numerous raids), returned to the house,
-and getting her sampler, sat down under a walnut tree to sew on the
-stint which her mother had given her.
-
-All was quiet save the chattering of the squirrels overhead and the
-drowsy hum of the bees, when from around the curve in the road she
-heard a shot; then another nearer, and then a voice shouting commands,
-and the thud of hoof-beats farther down the valley. She jumped up with
-a startled cry: “The redcoats! The redcoats! Oh, what shall I do!”
-
-Just then the foremost of a scattered band of soldiers, their
-buff and blue uniforms and ill-assorted arms showing them to be
-Americans, appeared in full flight around the curve in the road, and
-springing over the fence, dashed across the pasture straight for the
-meeting-house. Through the broad gateway they poured, and forcing open
-the door of the meeting-house, rushed within and began to barricade the
-windows.
-
-Their leader paused while his men passed in, and seeing Betty, came
-quickly toward her.
-
-“What do you here, child?” he said hurriedly. “Go quickly, before the
-British reach us, and tell your father, that, Quaker or no Quaker,
-he shall ride to Washington, on the Brandywine, and tell him that we,
-but one hundred men, are besieged by three hundred British cavalry in
-Chichester meeting-house, with but little powder left. Tell him to make
-all haste to us.”
-
-Turning, he hastened into the meeting-house, now converted into a fort,
-and as the doors closed behind him Betty saw a black muzzle protruding
-from every window.
-
-With trembling fingers the little maid picked up her sampler, and as
-the thud of horses’ hoofs grew louder and louder, she ran fearfully
-into the house, locked and bolted the massive door, and then flying up
-the broad stairs, she seated herself in a little window overlooking the
-meeting-house yard. She had gone into the house none too soon. Up the
-road, with their red coats gleaming and their harness jangling, was
-sweeping a detachment of British cavalry, never stopping until they
-reached the meeting-house--and then it was too late.
-
-A sheet of flame shot out from the wall before them, and half a dozen
-troopers fell lifeless to the ground, and half a dozen riderless horses
-galloped wildly down the road. The leader shouted a sharp command, and
-the whole troop retreated in confusion.
-
-Betty drew back shuddering, and when she brought herself to look again
-the troopers had dismounted, had surrounded the meeting-house, and were
-pouring volley after volley at its doors and windows. Then for the
-first time Betty thought of the officer’s message, and remembered that
-the safety of the Americans depended upon her alone, for her father was
-away, no neighbor within reach, and without powder she knew they could
-not resist long.
-
-Could she save them? All her stern Quaker blood rose at the thought,
-and stealing softly to the paddock behind the barn, she saddled Daisy
-and led her through the bars into the wood road, which opened into the
-highway just around the bend. Could she but pass the pickets without
-discovery there would be little danger of pursuit; then there would be
-only the long ride of eight miles ahead of her.
-
-Just before the narrow wood road joined the broader highway Betty
-mounted Daisy by means of a convenient stump, and starting off at a
-gallop, had just turned the corner when a voice shouted “Halt” and a
-shot whistled past her head. Betty screamed with terror, and bending
-over, brought down her riding whip with all her strength upon Daisy,
-then, turning for a moment, saw three troopers hurriedly mounting.
-
-Her heart sank within her, but, beginning to feel the excitement of the
-chase, she leaned over and patting Daisy on the neck, encouraged her to
-do her best. Onward they sped. Betty, her curly hair streaming in the
-wind, the color now mounting to, now retreating from, her cheeks, led
-by five hundred yards.
-
-But Daisy had not been used for weeks, and already felt the unusual
-strain. Now they thundered over Naaman’s Creek, now over Concord, with
-the nearest pursuer only four hundred yards behind; and now they raced
-beside the clear waters of Beaver Brook, and as Betty dashed through
-its shallow ford, the thud of horses’ hoofs seemed just over her
-shoulder.
-
-Betty, at first sure of success, now knew that unless in some way she
-could throw her pursuers off her track she was surely lost. Just then
-she saw ahead of her a fork in the road, the lower branch leading to
-the Brandywine, the upper to the Birmingham Meeting-house. Could she
-but get the troopers on the upper road while she took the lower, she
-would be safe; and, as if in answer to her wish, there flashed across
-her mind the remembrance of the old cross-road which, long disused, and
-with its entrance hidden by drooping boughs, led from a point in the
-upper road just out of sight of the fork down across the lower, and
-through the valley of the Brandywine. Could she gain this road unseen
-she still might reach Washington.
-
-Urging Daisy forward, she broke just in time through the dense growth
-which hid the entrance, and sat trembling, hidden behind a dense growth
-of tangled vines, while she heard the troopers thunder by. Then, riding
-through the rustling woods, she came at last into the open, and saw
-spread out beneath her the beautiful valley of the Brandywine dotted
-with the white tents of the Continental army.
-
-Starting off at a gallop, she dashed around a bend in the road into the
-midst of a group of officers riding slowly up from the valley.
-
-“Stop, little maiden, before you run us down,” said one, who seemed to
-be in command. “Where are you going in such hot haste?”
-
-“Oh, sir,” said Betty, reining in Daisy, “can thee tell me where I can
-find General Washington?”
-
-“Yes, little Quakeress,” said the officer, who had first spoken to her,
-“I am he. What do you wish?”
-
-Betty, too exhausted to be surprised, poured forth her story in a few
-broken sentences, and (hearing as if in a dream the hasty commands for
-the rescue of the soldiers in Chichester Meeting-house) fell forward in
-her saddle, and, for the first time in her life, fainted, worn out by
-her noble ride.
-
-A few days later, when recovering from the shock of her long and
-eventful ride, Betty, waking from a deep sleep, found her mother
-kneeling beside her little bed, while her father talked with General
-Washington himself beside the fireplace; and it was the proudest and
-happiest moment of her life when Washington, coming forward and taking
-her by the hand, said, “You are the bravest little maid in America, and
-an honor to your country.”
-
-Still the peaceful meeting-house and the gambrel-roofed home stand
-unchanged, save that their time-beaten timbers and crumbling bricks
-have taken on a more sombre tinge, and under the broad walnut tree
-another little Betty sits and sews.
-
-If you ask it, she will take down the great key from its nail, and
-swinging back the new doors of the meeting-house, will show you
-the old worm-eaten ones inside, which, pierced through and through
-with bullet-holes, once served as a rampart against the enemy.
-And she will tell you, in the quaint Friends’ language, how her
-great-great-grandmother carried, more than a hundred years ago, the
-news of the danger of her countrymen to Washington, on the Brandywine,
-and at the risk of her own life, saved theirs.
-
-
-
-
-THE FIRST BLOW FOR AMERICAN LIBERTY[E]
-
-(A STORY OF THE BUNKER HILL POWDER)
-
-By EMMA W. DEMERITT
-
- Two little New Hampshire boys play a part in the patriots’ capture
- of a quantity of King George’s powder, and this very same powder was
- afterward used to fight the redcoats at the Battle of Bunker Hill.
-
-
-Tony sat on a bench in the corner of the great stone fireplace watching
-the big logs as they sang and crackled and the flames leaped upward
-filling the room with a cheerful glow. Now and then he turned his head
-and glanced at a tall woman who was bustling about, getting supper
-ready.
-
-“Aunt Mercy?”
-
-No answer.
-
-“Aunt Mercy,” he said, a little louder.
-
-But his aunt did not reply. She probably did not hear the boy so
-occupied was she with her thoughts. Her usually pleasant face wore an
-anxious look and several times Tony fancied from the movements of her
-lips that she was speaking to herself.
-
-“Oh, dear!” he thought. “I wonder what it is that has made Aunt Mercy
-so sober for the last day or two! She doesn’t answer me when I speak.
-She hardly notices Larry and me, and it’s just the same with Uncle
-Eben. They whisper together, and some of the neighbors have been here,
-and they have all been shut up in a room together, and they all look
-so solemn! I only hope that dreadful war isn’t going to come that they
-talk about.”
-
-“Tony,” said his aunt, as she took two shining pewter platters from the
-dresser and placed them on the table, “have you or Larry come across my
-spectacles anywhere?”
-
-“No, ma’am.”
-
-“Well, perhaps I left them at meeting last Sunday. Never mind. I want
-you to go up garret and bring me that big bunch of herbs hanging by the
-east window.”
-
-Tony glanced toward the kitchen window and was relieved to find it
-was still quite light. He was always shy of the old, open garret even
-in the daytime. He never liked to play there as well as his brother
-Larry and the other boys. The long rows of cloaks and coats and gowns
-swinging from their pegs in the dimly lighted space under the rafters
-had a look that made him feel as if they might spring out at him as he
-passed.
-
-And there were certain other things there which helped to increase
-Tony’s dread of the garret. There were an old chest in the corner
-containing the uniform of Tony’s great uncle who had served as captain
-in the early French and Indian wars, and a rusty sword and tomahawk
-hanging from a nail in the huge beam overhead. The sword had two or
-three suggestive notches in the long blade, and on the wooden handle of
-the tomahawk which had once belonged to a ferocious Indian chief were
-several suspicious-looking brown stains. Larry liked to handle these
-relics, but the mere sight of them always sent shivers creeping down
-Tony’s back.
-
-“Make haste, Tony, and bring the herbs before it grows any darker,”
-continued his aunt. “I never like to go up garret with a light; it’s
-dangerous business. I am worried and nervous, and I want a bowl of hot
-herb tea.”
-
-Tony stopped, his thumb on the latch. “What is it that worries you so?”
-he asked in his sweet, sympathetic voice.
-
-“A thousand things, child, you wouldn’t understand if I told you--the
-dread of what’s coming--the loss of property and friends--life itself
-perhaps. But we’ll hope for the best. The king may yet repent and try
-to do what is right by us. But we don’t know--we don’t know.”
-
-It was the December of 1774, five months before Lexington, the first
-battle of the American Revolution. Throughout the colonies there was
-a growing feeling of uneasiness and indignation. The colonists were
-too much attached to the mother country to wish for war. Morning and
-night they prayed that God would show them some peaceful way out of
-the trouble. But the king had taken away so many of their rights and
-laid taxes so heavy and unjust upon them that it began to look as if
-the only thing to do was to fight him. The people of New Hampshire,
-where Larry and Tony lived, were especially excited and alarmed, for
-they were so near Boston that they sympathized heartily with that
-much-wronged city which seemed to have been singled out as a mark for
-special spite.
-
-Tony passed through the cold hall and upstairs, and opening the garret
-door stumbled hastily to the top step. As he reached the landing his
-heart gave a sudden thump. He fancied he heard a noise. He stood
-listening, but there was not a sound. “I guess it was the branches
-of the big elm scraping against the roof,” he thought. Mustering his
-courage he darted by the row of clothes and was just reaching up for
-the herbs when a figure suddenly stepped from behind the chimney.
-
-“Oh!” gasped the frightened boy, stumbling back over the big chest and
-bumping his head with a clatter against the dreaded sword and tomahawk.
-Larry’s arm raised him to his feet and Larry’s bright face bent over
-him.
-
-“Why, Tony! how little it takes to scare you! I was up here and heard
-some one coming and thought it one of the men and that I’d have some
-fun with him. See!” and Larry took down the rusty tomahawk and gave a
-whoop that made the rafters ring, and flourished the old relic in a
-way that caused Tony’s curly hair to stand on end. “This isn’t such a
-terrible thing, after all--it can’t hurt you.”
-
-He got the herbs for his young brother and as he did so, happened to
-look out of the window. “Whew!” he whistled softly, “there are two men
-going into the meeting-house. And how queerly they act, looking all
-around as if they were afraid some one would see them.”
-
-“Oh, Larry! can’t you run up and see if Aunt Mercy’s spectacles are in
-the pew? She thinks she left them there last Sunday.”
-
-“All right! you take the herbs downstairs and I will.”
-
-On his return to the kitchen Tony found that his aunt had left the
-room, and he sat down in the chimney corner to wait for supper. In
-a few moments the door opened, and Larry stood before him, his eyes
-flashing, his cheeks flushed.
-
-“Did you get the spectacles, Larry?”
-
-“Spectacles! I haven’t even thought of them. Listen, Tony! I have
-a secret--a _great_ secret. After I left you I hurried up to the
-meeting-house and as I stepped inside the entry I thought I heard a
-queer noise, as if some one were digging. So I opened the door softly
-and peeped in--and there--_as sure as you are alive, I saw two men
-digging a great, deep hole under the pulpit_. They were talking so low
-I couldn’t hear more than half they said. But I made out that uncle and
-Captain Sullivan and some others are going to meet there to-night and
-go off in boats on some wonderful expedition. And, Tony, I am going
-to find out what it is. We’ll go to our room as usual after supper,
-but instead of going to bed, we’ll creep downstairs and go up to the
-meeting-house and hide inside, and wait there.”
-
-“But will it be right to listen, Larry?” asked Tony gravely. “You know
-Aunt Mercy says ‘Eavesdroppers hear no good of themselves.’”
-
-“But this isn’t eavesdropping, Tony. Listening is a mean trick. But
-this is different. Uncle is going into danger of some sort and I
-_ought_ to learn what it is. I can’t believe _that_ is wrong.”
-
-Tony finally consented, thinking he would rather watch with Larry in
-the church than stay in his room at home alone in the dark.
-
-When Aunt Mercy returned, she filled the big iron pot with water, hung
-it on the crane and swung it over the blazing logs. “We are going to
-have pudding and milk for supper,” she said, “and we won’t wait for
-your uncle; he’s away, and may not be back until late into the night.”
-
-At these words Larry glanced significantly at Tony and gave a wise
-little nod.
-
- * * * * *
-
-With the going down of the sun the cold rapidly increased. The night
-was clear and frosty. In front of the little wooden meeting-house on
-Durham Hill stood the two brothers shivering with cold and excitement.
-“Whew!” exclaimed Larry, pulling his cap down over his ears, “it’s a
-sharp night, Tony. Come farther this way; the meeting-house will keep
-off the wind.”
-
-“Shall we have to wait long, Larry?” asked Tony.
-
-Larry glanced at the moon just rising above the treetops. “I think it’s
-past the time now. Oh, I wonder what it is they are going to do.”
-
-“P’raps they are going to cross the ocean and take the king prisoner. I
-don’t think he treats us very well nowadays,” said Tony plaintively.
-
-Larry laughed. “I guess they won’t go quite as far as that. Oh, Tony!
-if I were a man, they would take me. It’s so provoking to be only a
-boy. I’m just big enough to want to be of some use, but not old enough
-to be trusted.” He drew Tony back in the shelter of the church and
-waited with his eyes fixed on the flowing Piscataqua which swept around
-the base of the hill on which they stood, and at the next turn widened
-into the broad expanse known as “The Great Bay.”
-
-It was upon the banks of this river that some of the bloodiest scenes
-of the early Indian wars had been enacted. Again and again had its
-shores resounded with warwhoops as the red men under cover of night
-rowed their canoes up to the infant settlements of New Hampshire and
-spared neither man, woman, nor child in the slaughter which followed.
-Across the river, in full view of the meeting-house, was a log fort
-known as the “Old Block House” which had served on many occasions as
-a refuge for the early settlers and enabled them to keep their savage
-foes at bay.
-
-“It’s cold--and--lonesome out here,” said Tony with a shiver, glancing
-involuntarily at the “Block House.”
-
-“You don’t mean to say you’re afraid of the Block House, Tony! Why, you
-are always glad of a chance to play there, afternoons.”
-
-“Yes--but that was in the daytime. Out here in the dark I don’t like to
-think of the people who have been killed there.”
-
-“Tony! If we come to blows with England you won’t make a very good
-soldier. Now I’d like no better fun than to be in the Block House with
-a lot of screeching Indians outside. But we mustn’t talk so loud--and
-remember--if we hear the least noise we are to scamper into the
-meeting-house and hide.”
-
-The moon climbed higher and higher in the heavens, and soon there came
-to the ears of the watchers by the church the plash of oars. Larry bent
-forward, and his keen eyes detected a small black speck on the surface
-of the river. At the same time the sound of rapid footsteps was heard,
-and the two boys hastily entered the church and stumbling through the
-dark entry felt their way along the aisle and crouched down in one of
-the pews.
-
-Meantime, a man closely wrapped in a military cloak had taken their
-place in front of the church and stood looking out on the water. He,
-too, saw the dark object. Raising his fingers to his lips he gave a
-shrill whistle, which was promptly answered from the river, and in a
-short time eleven men, armed with muskets, came creeping stealthily up
-the hill, single file.
-
-“We are late, Captain Sullivan,” called out a gay voice, “but His
-Majesty has several devoted subjects hereabouts, and we did not dare
-venture within range of their prying eyes until after dark.”
-
-“Peace, Scammel, or that merry voice of yours will be starting some
-of these same good folks from their firesides,” returned Sullivan.
-“My trusty men!” there was a triumphant ring in his voice as he
-greeted them each by name--“Captain Winborn Adams, Eleazer Bennett,
-Ebenezer Thompson, John Demeritt, Alpheus Chesley, Jonathan Chesley,
-John Spenser, Micah Davis, Isaac Small, Benjamin Small, Alexander
-Scammel--thank God! not one of you is missing. And now, is everything
-ready yonder?” He pointed to the church.
-
-“See for yourself, Captain,” answered one of the men; and opening the
-door he paused to light a lantern which stood in the little entry.
-The eleven men followed him, their heavy boots clattering on the bare
-floor--down the aisle, to the pulpit. Here he stopped, and held the
-lantern high above his head. By the dim light they saw the deep pit,
-the loosened boards, and the pile of earth standing ready for filling
-in again.
-
-“’Tis well planned,” said the Captain, nodding approvingly. “It is the
-last place the British will think of searching for their lost powder.
-When Paul Revere came riding in hot haste into Portsmouth town last
-night, bearing despatches from the Massachusetts Committee of Safety
-saying the king had ordered the seizure of all the powder and arms
-in the provinces, and that two of Gage’s regiments were on their way
-to garrison Portsmouth and Fort William and Mary here in Piscataqua
-harbor, I made up my mind that what was done must be done quickly. For
-if England forces us to fight--and it looks that way now--’twere well
-to have something to fight with.”
-
-“In good sooth, Captain Sullivan,” returned Scammel, “we should have to
-fight with the butt-end of our muskets, for powder and bullets are as
-scarce as roses at Christmas.”
-
-Sullivan continued: “I made up my mind that if I could get a few
-trusty men to join me I would make a dash for the fort on my own
-responsibility, for the possession of that powder means _everything_
-to us. But I do not want one of you to stir a foot unless you have
-counted the cost. This is a deliberate assault on a royal fortress, and
-it exposes every one of us to the penalty for high treason. If any man
-shrinks, let him turn back now before it is too late.”
-
-“We have counted the cost,” answered John Demeritt, “and we are ready.”
-
-“Follow me, then,” cried Sullivan, “and may God speed the right!”
-
-At that instant Tony, who was doubled up under the seat like a
-jackknife, had a cramp in his leg, and in trying to move his foot hit a
-wooden stool--and over it went with a loud crash, causing the utmost
-confusion. The men began searching the church while Larry’s uncle
-rushed around shouting savagely: “A spy! A spy! Seize him! Take him,
-dead or alive!”
-
-“It’s only us--Larry and me,” piped Tony, frightened almost out of his
-wits by his uncle’s fury. “We wanted to find out what was going on. And
-won’t you please take Larry with you? He is so brave and wants to fight
-so much.”
-
-“Go home, boys, and to bed, both of you!” ordered Larry’s uncle. “I’ll
-settle with you for this to-morrow. Do not look so disturbed, Captain
-Sullivan--I’ll answer for their secrecy.”
-
-“Oh, uncle! Oh, Captain Sullivan!” begged Larry in an eager, excited
-tone, “do let me go. I know I can help in some way. I want to be of
-some use, and I’m not afraid any more than you are.”
-
-Sullivan was touched by the boy’s earnestness. “We cannot take you,
-my boy. It would not be prudent--but you can help if you really wish
-it--there _is_ a way.” He turned and whispered with some of the men.
-“We may need a pair of oxen to cart the powder. We ought not to bury it
-all in one place.”
-
-“If the lad will have the oxen and some straw ready for us in yonder
-barn, I’ll cart the powder wherever you say,” said John Demeritt. “I’ll
-bury it in my own cellar if you can think of no better place.”
-
-Sullivan noted the disappointment in Larry’s answer. “We are trusting
-much to you, my boy,” he said gravely; “and remember, Larry, if you
-want to be a soldier you must first learn to _obey_. Now go take your
-little brother home, and then have the team ready for us by the time
-yonder bright star reaches that line of woods by the Block House.”
-
-When the boys left, the men quickened their pace almost to a run
-in order to keep up with the Captain as he strode down-hill to the
-“gondola.”
-
-“Gondola” was the name given by the colonists to the broad,
-flat-bottomed scows used on the Piscataqua in the transportation of
-stone and other heavy material.
-
-The members of the little party quietly took the places assigned them,
-and the scow swung off into the middle of the river and moved slowly
-down-stream. The only sounds to be heard were the moaning of the wind
-through the bare forests and the measured dip of oars. The trip was
-made for the most part in silence, the men bending eagerly over the
-oars too much engrossed with their thoughts to indulge in idle chat. As
-the scow approached Portsmouth and the lights of the town glimmered in
-the distance, Sullivan ordered the men to row slowly.
-
-“If discovered now,” said he, “all is lost.”
-
-In a few moments they rounded a little headland and found awaiting them
-in the cove beyond two gondolas and a small boat containing in all some
-eighteen men. These were under the leadership of Captain Pickering.
-
-“Let us be off!” exclaimed Sullivan impatiently. “We must cross
-Portsmouth harbor before the moon shows her face again.”
-
-They pulled out into the middle of the stream in the momentary
-darkness, and by the time the clouds had drifted away from the moon the
-little fleet was within a rod of the island on which stood Fort William
-and Mary. All was dark and still within, and the only sound outside
-was the wash of the waves on the narrow beach. After a whispered
-consultation the men disembarked at a signal from Sullivan. Wading
-through the icy water they arranged themselves in line at the rear of
-the fort, while Pickering with three others crept cautiously in the
-shadow of the wall and disappeared behind one of the bastions. In a
-moment more a sentinel’s challenge rang out sharp and clear: “Who goes
-there? Stand, and give the countersign!”
-
-Pickering seized the soldier’s gun and grasped him by the throat. “Not
-a word more or you are a dead man,” he whispered.
-
-The men then made their way to the commandant’s room. He looked up as
-Sullivan and Pickering entered, but his smile of recognition changed to
-a blank stare as the former said with much agitation: “Captain Cochran,
-you are our prisoner. Your little garrison has surrendered. You had
-better follow its example!”
-
-Cochran glanced at the resolute faces of his captors, then tendered his
-sword. He was left in charge of two of the men while the rest of the
-party proceeded to break open the magazine. In the course of an hour
-and a half the powder was safe in the gondolas and the little band
-left the fort and began the hard task of rowing up-stream. Absolute
-silence was maintained, and when they finally landed at the foot of
-meeting-house hill and found Larry with the oxen awaiting them, they
-took off their heavy, nailed shoes lest a spark from them should set
-fire to the powder.
-
-By dawn Larry was back in his room telling the wonderful story to Tony.
-One half of the king’s powder was buried deep beneath the pulpit of the
-meeting-house, and John Demeritt, with the other half snugly hidden
-under a load of straw, was on the road to Madbury driving along his
-oxen as unconcernedly as if nothing had happened.
-
-The next day Governor Wentworth issued a proclamation, declaring all
-those who took part in the capture of Fort William and Mary guilty of
-high treason. Four months later the news from Lexington and Concord
-spread from the White Hills of New Hampshire to the pine forests of the
-Carolinas arousing the people to a renewed determination to defend with
-their lives--their rights and liberties.
-
-Major Sullivan, accompanied by his faithful little band, started at
-once for the scene of action. Indeed the New Hampshire troops were
-among the earliest at the front, for Bancroft tells us “the ferries on
-the Merrimack were crowded with the men of New Hampshire,” and that
-“they finally paraded on Cambridge Common having _run_ rather than
-walked the entire distance.”
-
-Captain John Demeritt, after reserving a portion of the powder for the
-use of his own company, brought out the remainder from his cellar and
-once more concealing it beneath a load of straw carted it with his ox
-team all the way to the headquarters of the American Army at Cambridge.
-He arrived in time to have it sent out to the troops at Bunker
-Hill, and a local historian tells us that it was stated on the best
-authority, that had not the powder arrived at so opportune a moment the
-fate of the day would have been far different. It was with this powder
-that the New Hampshire troops with two regiments from Connecticut
-guarded the flank at Bunker Hill, twice driving back the British. And
-it was with the same powder that they held the enemy at bay until
-Prescott’s little band had left the redoubt and then they retreated in
-good order through a galling fire.
-
-
-
-
-THE BATTLE OF BUNKER’S HILL[F]
-
-By WASHINGTON IRVING
-
- “Don’t fire till you see the whites of their eyes” were the orders of
- “Old Put” to the Yankee farmers who first taught the enemy that they
- could and would stand and fight British regulars.
-
-
-The sound of drum and trumpet, the clatter of hoofs, the rattling of
-gun-carriages, and all the other military din and bustle in the streets
-of Boston, soon apprised the Americans on their rudely fortified
-height of an impending attack. They were ill-fitted to withstand
-it, being jaded by the night’s labor and want of sleep; hungry and
-thirsty, having brought but scanty supplies, and oppressed by the
-heat of the weather. Prescott sent repeated messages to General Ward,
-asking reinforcements and provisions. Putnam seconded the request in
-person, urging the exigencies of the case. Ward hesitated. He feared
-to weaken his main body at Cambridge, as his military stores were
-deposited there, and it might have to sustain the principal attack. At
-length, having taken advice of the council of safety, he issued orders
-for Colonels Stark and Read, then at Medford, to march to the relief
-of Prescott with their New Hampshire regiments. The orders reached
-Medford about eleven o’clock. Ammunition was distributed in all haste;
-two flints, a gill of powder, and fifteen balls to each man. The balls
-had to be suited to the different calibres of the guns; the powder to
-be carried in powder-horns, or loose in the pocket, for there were
-no cartridges prepared. It was the rude turn-out of yeoman soldiery
-destitute of regular accoutrements.
-
-In the meanwhile, the Americans on Breed’s Hill were sustaining the
-fire from the ships, and from the battery on Copp’s Hill, which opened
-upon them about ten o’clock. They returned an occasional shot from one
-corner of the redoubt, without much harm to the enemy, and continued
-strengthening their position until about eleven o’clock, when they
-ceased to work, piled their intrenching tools in the rear, and looked
-out anxiously and impatiently for the anticipated reinforcements and
-supplies.
-
-About this time General Putnam, who had been to headquarters, arrived
-at the redoubt on horseback. Some words passed between him and Prescott
-with regard to the intrenching tools, which have been variously
-reported. The most probable version is, that he urged to have them
-taken from their present place, where they might fall into the hands of
-the enemy, and carried to Bunker’s Hill, to be employed in throwing up
-a redoubt, which was part of the original plan, and which would be very
-important should the troops be obliged to retreat from Breed’s Hill.
-To this Prescott demurred that those employed to convey them, and
-who were already jaded with toil, might not return to his redoubt. A
-large part of the tools were ultimately carried to Bunker’s Hill, and a
-breastwork commenced by order of General Putnam. The importance of such
-a work was afterward made apparent.
-
-About noon the Americans descried twenty-eight barges crossing from
-Boston in parallel lines. They contained a large detachment of
-grenadiers, rangers, and light infantry, admirably equipped, and
-commanded by Major-general Howe. They made a splendid and formidable
-appearance with their scarlet uniforms, and the sun flashing upon
-muskets and bayonets, and brass fieldpieces. A heavy fire from the
-ships and batteries covered their advance, but no attempt was made to
-oppose them, and they landed about one o’clock at Moulton’s Point, a
-little to the north of Breed’s Hill.
-
-Here General Howe made a pause. On reconnoitering the works from
-this point, the Americans appeared to be much more strongly posted
-than he had imagined. He descried troops also hastening to their
-assistance. These were the New Hampshire troops, led on by Stark.
-Howe immediately sent over to General Gage for more forces, and a
-supply of cannon-balls; those brought by him being found, through
-some egregious oversight, too large for the ordnance. While awaiting
-their arrival, refreshments were served out to the troops, with “grog”
-by the bucketful; and tantalizing it was, to the hungry and thirsty
-provincials, to look down from their ramparts of earth, and see their
-invaders seated in groups upon the grass eating and drinking, and
-preparing themselves by a hearty meal for the coming encounter. Their
-only consolation was to take advantage of the delay, while the enemy
-were carousing, to strengthen their position. The breastwork on the
-left of the redoubt extended to what was called the Slough, but beyond
-this, the ridge of the hill, and the slope toward Mystic River, were
-undefended, leaving a pass by which the enemy might turn the left flank
-of the position and seize upon Bunker’s Hill. Putnam ordered his chosen
-officer, Captain Knowlton, to cover this pass with the Connecticut
-troops under his command. A novel kind of rampart, savoring of rural
-device, was suggested by the rustic general. About six hundred feet in
-the rear of the redoubt, and about one hundred feet to the left of the
-breastwork, was a post-and-rail fence, set in a low footwall of stone,
-and extending down to Mystic River. The posts and rails of another
-fence were hastily pulled up and set a few feet in behind this, and the
-intermediate space was filled up with new-mown hay from the adjacent
-meadows. This double fence, it will be found, proved an important
-protection to the redoubt, although there still remained an unprotected
-interval of about seven hundred feet.
-
-While Knowlton and his men were putting up this fence, Putnam proceeded
-with other of his troops to throw up the work on Bunker’s Hill,
-despatching his son, Captain Putnam, on horseback, to hurry up the
-remainder of his men from Cambridge. By this time his compeer in French
-and Indian warfare, the veteran Stark, made his appearance with the
-New Hampshire troops, five hundred strong. He had grown cool and wary
-with age, and his march from Medford, a distance of five or six miles,
-had been in character. He led his men at a moderate pace, to bring
-them into action fresh and vigorous. In crossing the Neck, which was
-enfiladed by the enemy’s ships and batteries, Captain Dearborn, who was
-by his side, suggested a quick step. The veteran shook his head: “One
-fresh man in action is worth ten tired ones,” replied he, and marched
-steadily on.
-
-Putnam detained some of Stark’s men to aid in throwing up the work on
-Bunker’s Hill, and directed him to reinforce Knowlton with the rest.
-Stark made a short speech to his men, now that they were likely to have
-warm work. He then pushed on, and did good service that day at the
-rustic bulwark.
-
-About two o’clock Warren arrived on the heights, ready to engage in
-their perilous defence, although he had opposed the scheme of their
-occupation. He had recently been elected a major-general, but had not
-received his commission; like Pomeroy, he came to serve in the ranks
-with a musket on his shoulder. Putnam offered him the command at the
-fence; he declined it, and merely asked where he could be of most
-service as a volunteer. Putnam pointed to the redoubt, observing that
-there he would be under cover. “Don’t think I seek a place of safety,”
-replied Warren quickly; “where will the attack be the hottest?” Putnam
-still pointed to the redoubt. “That is the enemy’s object; if that can
-be maintained, the day is ours.”
-
-Warren was cheered by the troops as he entered the redoubt. Colonel
-Prescott tendered him the command. He again declined. “I have come to
-serve only as a volunteer, and shall be happy to learn from a soldier
-of your experience.” Such were the noble spirits assembled on these
-perilous heights.
-
-The British now prepared for a general assault. An easy victory was
-anticipated; the main thought was, how to make it most effectual.
-The left wing, commanded by General Pigot, was to mount the hill and
-force the redoubt; while General Howe, with the right wing, was to
-push on between the fort and Mystic River, turn the left flank of the
-Americans, and cut off their retreat.
-
-General Pigot, accordingly, advanced up the hill under cover of a fire
-from fieldpieces and howitzers planted on a small height near the
-landing-place on Moulton’s Point. His troops commenced a discharge of
-musketry while yet at a long distance from the redoubts. The Americans
-within the works, obedient to strict command, retained their fire
-until the enemy were within thirty or forty paces, when they opened
-upon them with a tremendous volley. Being all marksmen, accustomed to
-take deliberate aim, the slaughter was immense, and especially fatal
-to officers. The assailants fell back in some confusion; but rallied
-on by their officers, advanced within pistol shot. Another volley,
-more effective than the first, made them again recoil. To add to their
-confusion, they were galled by a flanking fire from the handful of
-provincials posted in Charlestown. Shocked at the carnage, and seeing
-the confusion of his troops, General Pigot was urged to give the word
-for a retreat.
-
-In the meantime, General Howe, with the right wing, advanced along
-Mystic River toward the fence where Stark, Read, and Knowlton were
-stationed, thinking to carry this slight breastwork with ease, and so
-get in the rear of the fortress. His artillery proved of little avail,
-being stopped by a swampy piece of ground, while his columns suffered
-from two or three fieldpieces with which Putnam had fortified the
-fence. Howe’s men kept up a fire of musketry as they advanced; but,
-not taking aim, their shots passed over the heads of the Americans.
-The latter had received the same orders with those in the redoubt,
-not to fire until the enemy should be within thirty paces. Some few
-transgressed the command. Putnam rode up and swore he would cut down
-the next man that fired contrary to orders. When the British arrived
-within the stated distance a sheeted fire opened upon them from rifles,
-muskets, and fowling-pieces, all leveled with deadly aim. The carnage,
-as in the other instance, was horrible. The British were thrown into
-confusion and fell back; some even retreated to the boats.
-
-There was a general pause on the part of the British. The American
-officers availed themselves of it to prepare for another attack, which
-must soon be made. Prescott mingled among his men in the redoubt,
-who were all in high spirits at the severe check they had given “the
-regulars.” He praised them for their steadfastness in maintaining their
-post, and their good conduct in reserving their fire until the word of
-command, and exhorted them to do the same in the next attack.
-
-Putnam rode about Bunker’s Hill and its skirts, to rally and bring
-on reinforcements which had been checked or scattered in crossing
-Charlestown Neck by the raking fire from the ships and batteries.
-Before many could be brought to the scene of action the British had
-commenced their second attack. They again ascended the hill to storm
-the redoubt; their advance was covered as before by discharges of
-artillery. Charlestown, which had annoyed them on their first attack
-by a flanking fire, was in flames, by shells thrown from Copp’s Hill,
-and by marines from the ships. Being built of wood, the place was soon
-wrapped in a general conflagration. The thunder of artillery from
-batteries and ships; the bursting of bomb-shells; the sharp discharges
-of musketry; the shouts and yells of the combatants; the crash of
-burning buildings, and the dense volumes of smoke, which obscured
-the summer sun, all formed a tremendous spectacle. “Sure I am,” said
-Burgoyne in one of his letters--“Sure I am nothing ever has or ever
-can be more dreadfully terrible than what was to be seen or heard at
-this time. The most incessant discharge of guns that ever was heard by
-mortal ears.”
-
-The American troops, although unused to war, stood undismayed amidst a
-scene where it was bursting upon them with all its horrors. Reserving
-their fire, as before, until the enemy was close at hand, they again
-poured forth repeated volleys with the fatal aim of sharpshooters.
-The British stood the first shock, and continued to advance; but the
-incessant stream of fire staggered them. Their officers remonstrated,
-threatened, and even attempted to goad them on with their swords, but
-the havoc was too deadly; whole ranks were mowed down; many of the
-officers were either slain or wounded, and among them several of the
-staff of General Howe. The troops again gave way and retreated down the
-hill.
-
-All this passed under the eye of thousands of spectators of both sexes
-and all ages, watching from afar every turn of a battle in which the
-lives of those most dear to them were at hazard. The British soldiery
-in Boston gazed with astonishment and almost incredulity at the
-resolute and protracted stand of raw militia whom they had been taught
-to despise, and at the havoc made among their own veteran troops.
-Every convoy of wounded brought over to the town increased their
-consternation; and General Clinton, who had watched the action from
-Copp’s Hill, embarking in a boat, hurried over as a volunteer, taking
-with him reinforcements.
-
-A third attack was now determined on, though some of Howe’s officers
-remonstrated, declaring it would be downright butchery. A different
-plan was adopted. Instead of advancing in front of the redoubt, it was
-to be taken in flank on the left, where the open space between the
-breastwork and the fortified fence presented a weak point. It having
-been accidentally discovered that the ammunition of the Americans was
-nearly expended, preparations were made to carry the works at the point
-of the bayonet; and the soldiery threw off their knapsacks, and some
-even their coats, to be more light for action.
-
-General Howe, with the main body, now made a feint of attacking the
-fortified fence; but, while a part of his force was thus engaged, the
-rest brought some of the fieldpieces to enfilade the breastwork on the
-left of the redoubt. A raking fire soon drove the Americans out of this
-exposed place into the enclosure. Much damage, too, was done in the
-latter by balls which entered the sally-port.
-
-The troops were now led on to assail the works; those who flinched
-were, as before, goaded on by the swords of the officers. The Americans
-again reserved their fire until their assailants were close at hand,
-and then made a murderous volley, by which several officers were laid
-low, and General Howe himself was wounded in the foot. The British
-soldiery this time likewise reserved their fire and rushed on with
-fixed bayonet. Clinton and Pigot had reached the southern and eastern
-sides of the redoubt, and it was now assailed on three sides at once.
-Prescott ordered those who had no bayonets to retire to the back part
-of the redoubt and fire on the enemy as they showed themselves above
-the parapet. The first who mounted exclaimed in triumph, “The day is
-ours!” He was instantly shot down, and so were several others who
-mounted at the same time. The Americans, however, had fired their last
-round, their ammunition was exhausted; and now succeeded a desperate
-and deadly struggle, hand to hand, with bayonets, stones, and the
-stocks of their muskets. At length, as the British continued to pour
-in, Prescott gave the order to retreat. His men had to cut their way
-through two divisions of the enemy who were getting in rear of the
-redoubt, and they received a destructive volley from those who had
-formed on the captured works. By that volley fell the patriot Warren,
-who had distinguished himself throughout the action. He was among the
-last to leave the redoubt, and had scarce done so when he was shot
-through the head with a musket-ball, and fell dead on the spot.
-
-While the Americans were thus slowly dislodged from the redoubt, Stark,
-Read, and Knowlton maintained their ground at the fortified fence;
-which, indeed, had been nobly defended throughout the action. Pomeroy
-distinguished himself here by his sharp-shooting until his musket was
-shattered by a ball. The resistance at this hastily constructed work
-was kept up after the troops in the redoubt had given way, and until
-Colonel Prescott had left the hill; thus defeating General Howe’s
-design of cutting off the retreat of the main body, which would have
-produced a scene of direful confusion and slaughter. Having effected
-their purpose, the brave associates at the fence abandoned their weak
-outpost, retiring slowly, and disputing the ground inch by inch, with a
-regularity remarkable in troops many of whom had never before been in
-action.
-
-The main retreat was across Bunker’s Hill, where Putnam had endeavored
-to throw up a breastwork. The veteran, sword in hand, rode to the rear
-of the retreating troops, regardless of the balls whistling about him.
-His only thought was to rally them at the unfinished works. “Halt! make
-a stand here!” cried he, “we can check them yet. In God’s name form and
-give them one shot more.”
-
-Pomeroy, wielding his shattered musket as a truncheon, seconded him in
-his efforts to stay the torrent. It was impossible, however, to bring
-the troops to a stand. They continued on down the hill to the Neck,
-and across it to Cambridge, exposed to a raking fire from the ships
-and batteries, and only protected by a single piece of ordnance. The
-British were too exhausted to pursue them; they contented themselves
-with taking possession of Bunker’s Hill, were reinforced from Boston,
-and threw up additional works during the night.
-
-
-
-
-HER PUNISHMENT[G]
-
-By ELIZABETH GIBSON
-
- How a certain little girl prepared for General Washington the “best
- breakfast he had had in a month.”
-
-
-Long, long ago, when my mother was a little girl, there lived in her
-neighborhood an old lady whom all the children called “Aunt Prissy.”
-
-She was a quaint, funny little old lady, with her bobbing white curls,
-and always wore a small black lace cap, a black silk gown, a soft white
-kerchief, and fringed silk apron.
-
-The children loved to pay a visit to Aunt Prissy. After they were all
-carefully seated, each child with a small seed-cake, the eager little
-faces would turn toward her, and one of the children would say, “Now,
-Aunt Prissy, we won’t drop crumbs on the floor, and we are sitting up
-straight, and we haven’t got our knees crossed, so won’t you please
-tell us about the time you saw General Washington with your own eyes?”
-
-Aunt Prissy would count the stitches in her knitting, look up over her
-“specs,” and begin, “Well, well, children, it does seem to me you ought
-to know _that_ story by heart. But never mind; I s’pose you know which
-you like best.
-
-“Now let me see. It must have been in ’81, and I was nine years old,
-that our folks went to Salisbury to see General Washington.
-
-“I had been in disgrace for a whole day, and for punishment it was
-decided that I must stay at home.
-
-“My poor little heart almost broke, and I cried and made myself
-altogether disagreeable while the great lunch-baskets were being
-strapped behind the carriage, the huge bunches of roses to hurl at
-the general wrapped in wet cotton, and the family bundled into the
-carriages.
-
-“After they had gone I wandered disconsolately about house and garden.
-As I was swinging on the gate and wondering what I would do next, I
-heard a great clatter of horses’ feet up the road, and in a few minutes
-a party of men in uniform came in sight. I had seen enough soldiers to
-know that these were Continental officers, so I was not frightened, but
-waited until they came up.
-
-“A tall man on a white horse, with a cocked hat and plain uniform, rode
-forward, and with the kindest smile in the world, asked, ‘My little
-girl, can you give us a cup of coffee?’
-
-“Now I was very proud of being able to make coffee and batter-cakes, so
-I said I would try. The gentlemen rode into the yard, their servants
-came forward to take the horses, and I showed the party into the
-house. Mammy Dilsie had gone to the quarters on an errand, so I had
-things my own way.
-
-“A fire was blazing in the huge kitchen fireplace. We didn’t have
-cooking-stoves in those days, but did our baking in great round iron
-ovens, with lids to heap coals on, and our boiling in pots swung
-over the coals on cranes. I raked out a nice bed of coals, filled
-the big coffee-pot, and soon had it simmering, then put the pan for
-the batter-cakes on to heat, made them up, had them nicely browned
-in a trice, set out a cold ham, and then invited the gentlemen in to
-breakfast.
-
-“They came, laughing and talking, said the coffee was the best they
-had ever tasted, the cakes delicious. I poured the coffee, and the
-gentlemen laughed and joked me, and one of them asked how I happened to
-be at home all alone.
-
-“My eyes filled with tears and I could hardly speak, but managed
-to tell him that everybody had gone to Salisbury to see General
-Washington; and that I wanted to see him worst of all because in the
-picture of him in my red book one of his eyes was blue and the other
-brown, and I wanted to see if it was really true. The officers all
-laughed at this, but the leader raised his hand, and they did not say
-anything.
-
-“‘But why did you not go, little maid?’ he asked.
-
-“Then I hung my head, but at last blurted out, ‘Because I tried to bury
-John’s ten little biddies in the sand.’
-
-“The men roared again at this; but the tall one said, ‘Did you not
-know that it was very wrong to hurt the little chicks?’
-
-“I began to cry then, but the kind officer took me on his knee and
-kissed me.
-
-“‘And now, my little maid,’ he said, ‘you may tell your mother that you
-did see General Washington and gave him the best breakfast he has had
-in a month. And you see, his eyes are neither brown nor blue, but gray.’
-
-“And I looked into his kind face and saw that the red book was not even
-half right. Then Mammy Dilsie came in and courtesied to the floor when
-I told her who it was.
-
-“The gentlemen patted me on the head, General Washington kissed me
-again, and they rode away.”
-
-
-
-
-FAMOUS WORDS AT GREAT MOMENTS
-
-PATRICK HENRY
-
-
-Ten years and more before the Declaration of Independence there was
-great excitement in the Colonies over the new Stamp Act. Patrick Henry,
-a young member of the General Assembly of Virginia, had the temerity to
-offer a resolution which declared that in the General Assembly lay the
-sole right and power to lay taxes upon the Colony. An excited debate
-followed this resolution, in the course of which Patrick Henry arose
-and addressed the assembly. His speech closed with the words which have
-made him famous: _Cæsar had his Brutus, Charles the First his Cromwell,
-and George the Third_--The hall rang with cries of _Treason! Treason!_
-The patriot orator paused for an impressive moment, and then continued
-calmly;--_may profit by their example. If this be treason make the most
-of it!_
-
-(His resolution was carried.)
-
-A decade passed before the actual outbreak of the War in New England
-inspired Patrick Henry to the oration which concluded thus: _It is
-in vain, Sir, to extenuate the matter. Gentlemen may cry peace,
-peace--but there is no peace. The war has actually begun! The next
-gale that sweeps from the North will bring to our ears the clash of
-resounding arms. Our brethren are already in the field! Why stand we
-here idle? What is it that gentlemen wish? What would they have? Is
-life so dear, or peace so sweet, as to be purchased at the price of
-chains or slavery? Forbid it, Almighty God! I know not what course
-others may take; but as for me, give me liberty, or give me death!_
-
-
-BATTLE OF LEXINGTON
-
-Very early on the morning of April 19, 1775, Paul Revere, by his famous
-ride, had warned the men of Lexington of the coming of the redcoats.
-About half-past four the patriots’ drum beat to arms and the minute-men
-came hurrying from all directions, to receive the instructions of their
-stalwart Captain, John Parker. His orders were: _Stand your ground,
-don’t fire unless fired upon, but if they mean to have a war, let it
-begin here._ Then came Major Pitcairn’s insolent order, _Disperse,
-ye rebels, disperse!_ Actually, the first trigger was pulled by a
-hot-headed young American. His gun, however, failed to go off. A
-British soldier then discharged his piece--and the War began.
-
-
-BUNKER HILL
-
-Dr. Joseph Warren, who was slain at Bunker Hill, when urged by Elbridge
-Gerry not to go into the fight, replied quietly, and we know sincerely:
-_Dulce et decorum est pro patria mori_ (To die for one’s country is
-both agreeable and fitting). He had that very day been appointed a
-Major-General by Congress, but had not yet received his Commission.
-When he presented himself before Colonel Prescott, the latter naturally
-tendered him the command. But Warren replied with the modesty which so
-often characterizes the bravest of men, _I come as a volunteer with my
-musket to serve under you_.
-
-When the British General Gage heard of Warren’s death he is said to
-have remarked, _It is well; that one man was equal to five hundred
-ordinary soldiers_. It was probably General Israel Putnam--“Old
-Put”--commanding at the rail fence at Bunker Hill, who gave the famous
-order, _Don’t fire until you can see the whites of their eyes_. This
-was because the patriots’ powder was so pitifully short. Colonel
-Prescott’s injunction was, _Don’t waste a grain; make every shot tell_.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Washington was journeying to New England to take command of the army
-when the Battle of Bunker Hill was fought. On hearing of it he inquired
-anxiously, _Did they stand the fire of the regulars?_ _That they did_,
-was the response, and _held their own fire in reserve until the enemy
-was within eight rods_. _Then_, said Washington, _the liberties of the
-country are safe_.
-
-The Bunker Hill Monument, it will be remembered, inspired one of Daniel
-Webster’s greatest orations. This is its peroration: _When honored and
-decrepit age shall lean against the base of this monument, and troops
-of vigorous youths shall be gathered around it, and when the one shall
-speak to the other of its objects, the purposes of its construction,
-and the great and glorious events with which it was connected--then
-shall come from every youthful breast the ejaculation--Thank God!--I
-also--am an American!_
-
-
-NATHAN HALE
-
-After Washington’s retreat, following the battle of Long Island, he was
-most anxious to discover the intentions of the British in New York.
-Nathan Hale, a young Captain from Connecticut--he had formerly been a
-schoolmaster--volunteered to try and secure this information. He was
-detected, arrested, and summarily condemned by the British, however,
-and as he stood under the fatal noose awaiting the ignominious death of
-a spy, the brutal British officer, Cunningham, who was in charge of the
-execution shouted at him, _Give us your dying speech, you young rebel._
-And Hale replied in a calm, clear voice, _I only regret that I have but
-one life to lose for my country_.
-
-
-WILLIAM PITT
-
-Young people sometimes forget that the patriots’ cause had many friends
-among the wiser statesmen of England. William Pitt was brave enough to
-say: _We are told that the Americans are obstinate, that they are in
-almost open rebellion against us. I rejoice that America has resisted.
-I rejoice that they are not so dead to all feelings of liberty as to be
-willing to submit like slaves!_
-
-
-GEORGE WASHINGTON
-
-The winter at Valley Forge was a time of bitter discouragement for
-Washington and his cause. Tradition has preserved a touching picture of
-the great man in his lonely hour of trial.
-
-A Quaker farmer, Isaac Potts, one day returned home joyful and
-confident in the ultimate success of the Americans: _George Washington
-will succeed! George Washington will succeed!_ he told his wife. _What
-makes thee think so, Isaac?_ was her reply. _I have heard him pray,
-Hannah, alone out in the woods to-day. The Generals horse was tied
-to a sapling in a thicket. He himself was on his knees, praying most
-fervently. The Lord will surely hear his prayer. He will, Hannah; thee
-may rest assured, he will._
-
- * * * * *
-
-Washington’s soldiers were often exasperated by the pettiness and
-tedious delays of Congress. On one occasion a group of them proposed
-to improve matters by making their leader King. His downright reply to
-the man who finally summoned sufficient courage to broach the matter
-to him is too little known: _I am at a loss to conceive what part of
-my conduct could have given encouragement to an address which seems to
-me big with the greatest mischief that can befall any country.... Let
-me conjure you, if you have any regard for your country, concern for
-yourself or posterity, or respect for me, to banish these thoughts from
-your mind, and never communicate, as from yourself or any one else, a
-sentiment of the like nature!_
-
-
-ETHAN ALLEN
-
-When Ethan Allen, the Green Mountain Boy, broke into Fort Ticonderoga
-at the head of a handful of followers and demanded its surrender, its
-bewildered and still sleepy Commandant began to stutter out a very
-natural inquiry as to the authority in whose name Allen acted. History
-has recorded Allen’s grandiloquent reply: _In the name of the Great
-Jehovah and the Continental Congress!_ (But certain old Vermonters will
-have it that his actual words were, _Here, come out of that, you old
-rascal and give us the fort, quick, or we’ll smoke you out like rats!_)
-
-
-ANTHONY WAYNE
-
-Mad Anthony Wayne was wounded in the head by a musket-ball during
-his famous assault on Stony Point. He fell to the ground with blood
-streaming over his face, and for a moment supposed himself to be
-mortally wounded. His order to his aids was eminently characteristic,
-_Carry me into the fort and let me die at the head of the column_.
-
-
-JOHN STARK
-
-It was before the Battle of Bennington, fought and won in defiance of
-the orders of the too cautious Congress, that bold John Stark uttered
-his famous invocation to his men: _There they are, boys_, he shouted,
-waving his sword toward the enemy; _we’ll get ’em, or to-night Molly
-Stark’ll be a widow_.
-
-
-BENEDICT ARNOLD
-
-A pitiful story is told of the death in London, twenty years after the
-War, of Benedict Arnold, the traitor. His last request was for the old
-epaulettes and sword-knot given him by Washington. _Let me die_, said
-he, _in the old American uniform, in which I fought my battles. God
-forgive me for ever having put on any other!_
-
-
-GEORGE THE THIRD
-
-It is well to remember, in these days, that George Washington was in
-reality an Englishman who fought a German king whom chance had seated
-on the throne of England. And it is well to recall also that George the
-Third, though obstinate and wrong-headed enough, gave in at last with
-a better grace than might have been expected. To John Adams, our first
-minister to England, he said: _Sir, I will be very free with you. I was
-the last to consent to the separation, but the separation having been
-made ... I have always said and I say now, that I would be the first to
-meet the friendship of the United States as an independent power._
-
-
-
-
-THE LITTLE FIFER[H]
-
-By HELEN M. WINSLOW
-
- John Holden was lost. His mother’s faith that God would take care of
- her boy was rewarded, however, when it was discovered that John with
- his little fife was helping to drill the soldiers in Washington’s
- army.
-
-
-More than a hundred years ago there lived, in the town of Shirley,
-Mass., a bright, well-grown lad named John Holden. His father was a
-farmer, and the little fellow trudged about the farm, clad in home-spun
-and home-made clothing, feeding calves, driving cows, and doing
-whatever his hands found to do “with all his might.”
-
-One Saturday night John was early at the gate waiting for his father’s
-homecoming; for Saturday was the day when John Holden went to the
-village, and returned laden with packages and news from Boston--which
-to them was the centre of the world. A present was an unheard-of thing
-in little John’s life. What was his surprise, then, as his father rode
-up to the gate, to see him hand out a long black case, saying:
-
-“Here, my boy, see what I’ve brought you for a birthday present.”
-
-And imagine his greater astonishment, on opening the case, to see a
-beautiful fife of dark wood with silver trimmings!
-
-The boy could hardly believe his own eyes; and as he was passionately
-fond of music he lost no time in beginning to learn the use of his
-newly acquired instrument. He carried the fife with him everywhere and
-practised on it in every spare moment, and before many months he was
-able to greatly astonish the villagers and won many a compliment by his
-skillful playing.
-
-Just before the Revolutionary War the whole country, as every boy and
-girl ought to know, was in a state of ferment and dread. War seemed
-inevitable, and the oppressive rule of the English was the theme of
-conversation everywhere.
-
-Little John heard much of it, and longed to be a man that he might join
-the “rebellious colonists.” And one day he received a compliment which
-set him thinking of matters in a way the older members of his family
-never mistrusted.
-
-A visitor from Boston was at the farmhouse, and the talk, as usual,
-ran on the prospect of war in the colonies. During a pause in the
-conversation, Mr. Holden asked John to play something on the fife. When
-he had played a stirring march or two, the stranger exclaimed, “Upon my
-word! But the boy has the soul of music in him! He will be ready for
-the British bulls and lions when it is necessary.”
-
-John sat quite still for some time. But before he went to bed he went
-to his father and said, “Father, if the British do come, shall I go to
-war with my fife?”
-
-“To be sure,” answered his father laughingly. “They could not get along
-without you.”
-
-Long after his father had forgotten this incident, John Holden took his
-dog Zip, and his darling fife, and went to a favorite hill on the place
-to practise. At night the dog came back alone and going straight up to
-the boy’s chamber began to moan and cry, and would not leave John’s bed.
-
-The family were greatly alarmed, and instantly divined that something
-had happened to John.
-
-Soon the whole town was in commotion; for the news that John Holden was
-lost flew like wildfire. Bands of men were organized and went searching
-the woods in every direction.
-
-Indians had been traveling through the town recently. Had they carried
-off the boy or had they stolen the valuable fife and thrown the boy
-into the river? The woods were hunted through and through; the river
-was dragged; notices of the lost boy were sent in every direction; but
-weeks lengthened into months and no clew was obtained that threw the
-faintest glimmer of light on the strange disappearance.
-
-Everybody believed him to be dead, or with the cruel Indians. Everybody
-but one. The boy’s mother never lost faith in his being safe somewhere.
-
-“My boy is in God’s hands,” she would say. “In his good time John will
-come home.”
-
-And nothing could move her from this belief while two anxious years
-slipped by.
-
-In the meantime war had broken out, and Shirley had sent her full quota
-of men to fight for the country’s independence. It was through one
-of these that a rumor reached Mr. Holden that a boy of twelve was in
-General Washington’s army as fifer.
-
-Jonas Holden was impressed with the certainty that the boy in
-Washington’s army and his lost son were the same. He went home and
-told his wife the story, and she was certain of it. Accordingly Mr.
-Holden started for New York, where General Washington and his army were
-then stationed. There were no railroads or telegraphs then, remember;
-nothing but horses and stagecoaches. Mr. Holden chose the former, and
-the best he could do, by traveling on horseback, was to reach General
-Washington’s headquarters in seven days.
-
-When he finally drew rein at the outposts of the Continental Army, he
-made known his desire to see General Knox, who was with Washington at
-that time.
-
-General Knox received the Massachusetts farmer with a cordiality that
-put him at his ease in a moment; and Mr. Holden found no difficulty in
-stating his errand.
-
-“There is your boy, sir!” exclaimed the interested General, pointing
-to a young fellow in a soldier’s suit, gay with brass buttons, who
-was playing on a fife. “He is drilling some raw recruits. That boy is
-Captain-general of us all, sir. I have never known him to whimper or
-say ‘I can’t,’ although he is the youngest of us.”
-
-The fifer was sent for in the Colonel’s name. As he drew near, and
-lifting his cap, asked, “Did you send for me, sir?” his eye fell on his
-father sitting in a corner of the tent.
-
-In a moment the boy was in his father’s arms and sobbing like a baby.
-The father’s tears were mingled with the long-lost son’s and the
-redoubtable General was obliged to resort to his handkerchief as he
-withdrew, leaving father and son alone, with the remark:
-
-“I will see our Commander-in-chief.”
-
-“When did you come?” said John, when he could speak. “And how did you
-find me?”
-
-“Old Captain brought me,” was the reply, “and he can take us both home.”
-
-“And how is mother?” pursued the boy. “Oh! I have been so sorry for
-dear mother. I tell you, father, not a night have I camped down to
-sleep but I have thought of mother; and every time I thought of her the
-tears came. I thought perhaps she might die and I should never see her
-again.”
-
-“Your mother is well,” was the father’s answer. “And she has never
-for one moment lost faith in your being well and happy, and finally
-restored to us.”
-
-“Yes, I shall return, father,” said John. “But I want this war ended
-first.”
-
-After the boy had inquired for all the family, he said:
-
-“But why didn’t you bring Zip along, too?”
-
-“Poor Zip!” was the reply. “He mourned himself to death before you had
-been gone a week. He never touched another mouthful of food, and would
-only lie on your bed and moan.”
-
-General Knox soon returned with orders from the Commander-in-chief to
-conduct Mr. Holden and John to his headquarters--a summons that must be
-obeyed at once.
-
-General Washington received Mr. Holden very kindly and said smilingly:
-
-“I hear a story that sounds like a romance in the midst of war. Tell
-me, my little fifer, how you came to leave your parents without their
-knowledge, and to join my army at such a tender age?”
-
-John was somewhat abashed by this direct question from so dignified and
-august a personage; but the General added kindly:
-
-“You have the name of being one of my bravest boys. Tell me how it
-happened. You never ran away, did you?”
-
-“No, sir, never,” answered John with spirit. “I was playing with my
-dog Zip, on Sorrel Hill, when a big wagon, full of men, came along.
-They stopped when they saw me, and one of them called out, ‘Halloo, my
-little fifer! We are looking for you. Jump in.’ I asked them if the
-British bulls and lions were here, and they said ‘Yes, hurry up!’ I
-jumped in, sir, and that was the way it happened.”
-
-Mr. Holden then remembered, for the first time, what he had said long
-ago, when John asked him if he would be needed when the British bulls
-and lions appeared.
-
-John’s story was met by a burst of laughter quite unusual with
-Washington. Then patting the boy’s rosy cheeks, the General said,
-“After this you must give us some music, my lad.”
-
-And John, quite elated, rendered a stirring march.
-
-“I don’t see how we can part with this brave boy of yours,” said
-General Washington to Mr. Holden when the boy had finished playing;
-“but parents have the first claim.”
-
-John was just then ordered to go and dismiss the men he had been
-drilling, and he departed with a martial salute to his superiors, and
-“I will be back in five minutes,” to his father.
-
-Mr. Holden, left alone, told the story of the mother’s deep faith, and
-added, “John seems to be in his element here.”
-
-Then General Washington told the gratified parent an incident, showing
-the spirit of the lad.
-
-“When I, with a number of my suite, approached the vicinity of Monmouth
-Court House,” said he, “I was met by a little musician, who archly
-cried out, ‘They are all coming this way, your Honor!’”
-
-“‘Who are coming this way?’” said I.
-
-“‘Why, our boys, your Honor! Our boys! and the British are right after
-them!’”
-
-“‘Impossible!’ I cried; but spurring my horse, I found the boy’s words
-only too true.”
-
-“He is a good boy,” added General Knox, “and invaluable in training raw
-recruits. If they are homesick he talks kindly with them and cheers
-them wonderfully with his ardent patriotism.”
-
-The boy just then returned and General Knox added, “Well, what did your
-men say when you told them you were going home?”
-
-John blushed and answered, “I could not tell them that, your Honor.
-Father, let me stay another year. Then I shall be thirteen and able to
-help you more on the farm. You know mother is well, and the war will
-soon be over.”
-
-What father in Revolutionary times could resist such an appeal?
-
-Washington smiled, and Mr. Holden consented. And after a kind farewell
-from the Father of his Country, and a loving one from the young fifer,
-Jonas Holden rode away, saying to himself:
-
-“My boy could not hold a more honored position. I leave him safe in the
-hands of General Washington--and of God.”
-
-When, after seven more days of horseback riding, Jonas Golden arrived
-at his own door in Shirley, he was met by his maiden sister with the
-words:
-
-“Disappointed again! So it wasn’t our John at all? I tell you, you’ll
-never see that boy again.”
-
-But Mr. Holden held out his hand to the boy’s mother.
-
-“My dear,” he said, “John is the happiest boy in the Continental Army.”
-
-It took a long time to tell the story of the journey; of his reception
-at Washington’s headquarters; of his finding the boy; of his growth,
-improvement, and popularity; of his close adherence to the principles
-of right and truth which they had taught him; and of the great
-Commander’s praise of their son. But at last the father said:
-
-“Have I done right in leaving him there?”
-
-“Just right,” said the mother.
-
- * * * * *
-
-John Holden returned to his parents when the war was over and lived to
-a good old age. And his name may be seen, for the searching, even now,
-on the books at Washington, as a pensioner of 1776.
-
-
-
-
-ETHAN ALLEN AND THE GREEN MOUNTAIN BOYS[I]
-
-By WASHINGTON IRVING
-
- The story of the capture of Fort Ticonderoga by the Robin Hood of the
- New Hampshire Grants.
-
-
-As affairs were now drawing to a crisis, and war was considered
-inevitable, some bold spirits in Connecticut conceived a project for
-the outset. This was the surprisal of the old forts of Ticonderoga and
-Crown Point, already famous in the French war. Their situation on Lake
-Champlain gave them the command of the main route to Canada; so that
-the possession of them would be all-important in case of hostilities.
-They were feebly garrisoned and negligently guarded, and abundantly
-furnished with, artillery and military stores so much needed by the
-patriot army.
-
-This scheme was set on foot in the purlieus, as it were, of the
-provincial Legislature of Connecticut, then in session. It was not
-openly sanctioned by that body, but secretly favored, and money lent
-from the treasury to those engaged in it. A committee was appointed,
-also, to accompany them to the frontier, aid them in raising troops,
-and exercise over them a degree of superintendence and control.
-
-Sixteen men were thus enlisted in Connecticut, a greater number in
-Massachusetts, but the greatest accession of force was from what
-was called the “New Hampshire Grants.” This was a region having the
-Connecticut River on one side and Lake Champlain and the Hudson River
-on the other--being, in fact, the country forming the present State
-of Vermont. It had long been a disputed territory claimed by New York
-and New Hampshire. George II had decided in favor of New York; but
-the Governor of New Hampshire had made grants of between one and two
-hundred townships in it, whence it had acquired the name of the New
-Hampshire Grants. The settlers on those grants resisted the attempts
-of New York to eject them, and formed themselves into an association
-called “The Green Mountain Boys.” Resolute, strong-handed fellows
-they were, with Ethan Allen at their head, a native of Connecticut,
-but brought up among the Green Mountains. He and his lieutenants,
-Seth Warner and Remember Baker, were outlawed by the Legislature of
-New York, and rewards offered for their apprehension. They and their
-associates armed themselves, set New York at defiance, and swore they
-would be the death of any one who should attempt their arrest.
-
-Thus Ethan Allen was becoming a kind of Robin Hood among the mountains,
-when the present crisis changed the relative position of things as
-if by magic. Boundary feuds were forgotten amid the great questions
-of colonial rights. Ethan Allen at once stepped forward, a patriot,
-and volunteered with his Green Mountain Boys to serve in the popular
-cause. He was well fitted for the enterprise in question, by his
-experience as a frontier champion, his robustness of mind and body, and
-his fearless spirit. He had a kind of rough eloquence, also, that was
-very effective with his followers. “His style,” says one, who knew him
-personally, “was a singular compound of local barbarisms, Scriptural
-phrases, and oriental wildness; and though unclassic, and sometimes
-ungrammatical, was highly animated and forcible.” Washington, in one
-of his letters, says there was “an original something in him which
-commanded admiration.”
-
-Thus reinforced, the party, now two hundred and seventy strong, pushed
-forward to Castleton, a place within a few miles of the head of Lake
-Champlain. Here a council of war was held on the 2d of May. Ethan
-Allen was placed at the head of the expedition, with James Easton and
-Seth Warner as second and third in command. Detachments were sent
-off to Skenesborough (now Whitehall), and another place on the lake,
-with orders to seize all the boats they could find and bring them to
-Shoreham, opposite Ticonderoga, whither Allen prepared to proceed with
-the main body.
-
-At this juncture another adventurous spirit arrived at Castleton. This
-was Benedict Arnold, since so sadly renowned. He, too, had conceived
-the project of surprising Ticonderoga and Crown Point; or, perhaps, had
-caught the idea from its first agitators in Connecticut--in the militia
-of which province he held a captain’s commission. He had proposed the
-scheme to the Massachusetts committee of safety. It had met their
-approbation. They had given him a colonel’s commission, authorized him
-to raise a force in western Massachusetts not exceeding four hundred
-men, and furnished him with money and means. Arnold had enlisted but a
-few officers and men when he heard of the expedition from Connecticut
-being on the march. He instantly hurried on with one attendant to
-overtake it, leaving his few recruits to follow as best they could; in
-this way he reached Castleton just after the council of war.
-
-Producing the colonel’s commission received from the Massachusetts
-committee of safety, he now aspired to the supreme command. His claims
-were disregarded by the Green Mountain Boys; they would follow no
-leader but Ethan Allen. As they formed the majority of the party,
-Arnold was fain to acquiesce, and serve as a volunteer, with the rank,
-but not the command, of colonel.
-
-The party arrived at Shoreham, opposite Ticonderoga, on the night of
-the 9th of May. The detachment sent in quest of boats had failed to
-arrive. There were a few boats at hand, with which the transportation
-was commenced. It was slow work; the night wore away; day was about to
-break, and but eighty-three men, with Allen and Arnold, had crossed.
-Should they wait for the residue, day would dawn, the garrison wake,
-and their enterprise might fail. Allen drew up his men, addressed
-them in his own emphatic style, and announced his intention to make a
-dash at the fort without waiting for more force. “It is a desperate
-attempt,” said he, “and I ask no man to go against his will. I will
-take the lead, and be the first to advance. You that are willing to
-follow, poise your firelocks.” Not a firelock but was poised.
-
-They mounted the hill briskly but in silence, guided by a boy from the
-neighborhood. The day dawned as Allen arrived at a sally-port. A sentry
-pulled trigger on him, but his piece missed fire. He retreated through
-a covered way. Allen and his men followed. Another sentry thrust at
-Easton with his bayonet, but was struck down by Allen and begged for
-quarter. It was granted on condition of his leading the way instantly
-to the quarters of the commandant, Captain Delaplace, who was yet in
-bed. Being arrived there, Allen thundered at the door, and demanded
-a surrender of the fort. By this time his followers had formed into
-two lines on the parade-ground, and given three hearty cheers. The
-commandant appeared at his door half dressed, “the frightened face
-of his pretty wife peering over his shoulder.” He gazed at Allen in
-bewildered astonishment. “By whose authority do you act?” exclaimed
-he. “In the name of the great Jehovah and the Continental Congress,”
-replied Allen, with a flourish of his sword, and an oath which we do
-not care to subjoin.
-
-There was no disputing the point. The garrison, like the commander, had
-been startled from sleep, and made prisoners as they rushed forth in
-their confusion. A surrender accordingly took place.
-
-
-
-
-THE CAPTURE OF THE HENNEPIN GUN[J]
-
-By MARGARET EMMA DITTO
-
- The Fourth of July pranks of a young Ethan Allen and his
- friends--descendants of the Green Mountain Boys of Revolutionary days.
-
-
-On the evening of the third of July, somewhat more than fifty years
-ago, a number of boys were gathered in secret council at a deserted
-house on Otter Creek. The boys had come one by one in the gathering
-gloom of the early darkness, creeping along from bush to copse or
-hugging the shady side of the stone fences. They had come silently--no
-lilt of merry whistle or song, no wanton hoot or random stone-fling,
-had betrayed their presence on the road.
-
-“There are nine of us already,” whispered a tall boy of fifteen as
-he shoved aside the hingeless door and peered out. “That is Seneca
-Goodyear coming across the meadow. He is strong if he does limp. Come
-in, Senk, and shut the door quick, hang your coat over the crack,
-and I’ll stand against the lower part. Now, Martin, let out your
-lantern--just a narrow slit of light and throw it on the floor--not in
-our faces. Go on, Ethan, and tell them about it.”
-
-A heavy-shouldered boy with Saxon hair and eyes straightened himself
-up from the cobwebby wall against which he had been leaning and settled
-himself stolidly on his feet. This boy’s name was Ethan Allen and he
-was a descendant of the Revolutionary hero of the same name.
-
-“There isn’t much to tell,” he began. “The Ogden County boys have
-stolen our cannon--old ‘Ticonderoga’ that belongs to Hennepin County,
-that we have fired off every Fourth of July, or our folks have, ever
-since there was a Fourth of July. It has been stolen and carried across
-the county line, and in less than four hours they will be banging it
-in our faces from the top of Horncliffe. And we’ve got to get that gun
-between this and midnight.”
-
-“How are we going to do it?” asked Seneca Goodyear.
-
-“That is what we have got to find out,” said Ethan.
-
-“Why don’t the men do something about it?” asked a conservative boy.
-“I should think it ought to be settled by law; the gun was given to
-the county by Eth’s grandfather, and it is county property the same as
-everything else on the court-house grounds.”
-
-“Yes, it is county property,” said Seneca Goodyear. “And that is where
-the point lies. I’ve heard father talk about it. It is some kind of
-claim they set up on account of the new boundary line that has sliced
-off miles and miles of our county, and now they have got the ground
-they want everything that ever stood on the ground--their proportion of
-county property they call it, and they have begun by helping themselves
-to that gun. But there’s no right in their claim.”
-
-“Of course there’s not!” said one indignantly.
-
-“Ogden County is the meanest lot that live on top of the State of
-Vermont anyway!” said another.
-
-“Well, the Ogden boys were smart enough to steal that gun,” said Ethan
-Allen, “and if Hennepin boys are any smarter we’d better show our stuff
-by getting it away from them.”
-
-“I don’t take it to be any question of smartness,” answered the
-conservative boy. “It is quite as smart to keep out of a hornet’s nest
-as it is to get into it, and then fight out stung half to death. The
-question is, what are our chances for doing it? I’m not going on a
-fool’s errand. To begin with, who took the gun? Where did they take it
-to? Where is it now? And how do you know anything about it, anyway?”
-
-“We have got all that straight enough, and here is the boy that will
-speak for himself. Come up here, Eph,” said Allen.
-
-Thus conjured, a boy arose from a dark corner and with a quick cat-like
-motion came to the front. He looked to be an artless little fellow
-of ten years, with his quiet eyes and his limp white locks hanging
-about his small face. But in truth he was fourteen years old, and the
-discipline of his life had made him shrewd and courageous. He showed
-very thin and imp-like as the ray of the lantern fell upon him. It
-seemed as if that sliver of light would go through him like a bayonet
-and come out on the other side.
-
-There was a murmur of voices. “Oh, him!”
-
-“Eph Stearns--much he knows about it.”
-
-“Dodge down, you little white top, nobody wants to hear you!”
-
-But burly Ethan Allen shouldered up to the little fellow. “Go ahead,
-Eph,” he said, “tell it to ’em just as you told it to me. Don’t be
-scared.”
-
-“I wa’n’t scared last night, and I ain’t likely to be now,” said Eph
-with a grin up at Ethan’s broad face.
-
-“That’s so. Shake hands. After all there is nothing little about you,
-Eph--except yourself.”
-
-The little fellow looked bigger after this grip of good fellowship and
-he piped up and began his story.
-
-“I was out last night,” he said. “It was near midnight I reckon. Most
-all the lights was out in the village and everything was quiet. I was
-out--out looking for something----”
-
-“He was out looking for his drunken old father,” whispered one of the
-boys, nudging his neighbor. “That’s Eph’s regular beat nights. He is
-afraid the old man will get run over, or get sunstruck by moonlight.”
-
-“Hush up, you,” said the boy addressed. “Eph isn’t to blame.”
-
-“I had been down by the cross-roads,” Eph went on. “You know where that
-is.”
-
-“I think it’s likely we do--there is where General Stark buried a
-traitor and staked him down with a crowbar,” said one.
-
-“For some time I didn’t hear anything,” Eph went on. “Then I heard
-something coming along slow and still on the old turnpike. It didn’t
-seem like a wagon at first, nothing about it rattled and squeaked
-natural-like for a wagon. There must have been lots of axle grease onto
-them wheels and that harness was oiled up and strapped up, I tell you,
-and if them horses had a had smart-weed drafts onto their hoofs they
-couldn’t have set ’em down more soft and quiet-like. When I saw that
-it was a wagon and that there wa’n’t no signs of a driver to it--for
-whatever was driving of it was flat on the bottom--then it came over me
-that they was a-bringing home somebody dead in that wagon----”
-
-“And the Remains was driving itself home, quiet and respectable-like,
-and conducting its own funeral--that’s accommodating now--I like that,
-go on,” interrupted Martin.
-
-“Of course,” Eph admitted, looking a little “sheepish.” “Of course
-there wa’n’t no sense in that--not by daylight. But that’s what I
-thought of then, and I was hot and cold all to onct, I tell you, and
-I streaked after that wagon, for I meant to get home to mother ahead
-of it. I got up to the court house and lay down flat in that clump of
-pines by the horse block, ’cause all the roads branch off from there
-and I could see which way it went next. There wa’n’t no moon last
-night, and precious few stars.
-
-“On come the wagon, slow and steady--just as if a chunk of the dark
-had got loose from the rest of the dark and was moving on by itself.
-It come close to the horse block and I could see it wa’n’t going down
-any of the roads. Then I heard a clattering sound, and I knew they were
-going over the round stones of the gutter, and the off horse struck
-out a spark with his hoof. When I saw ’em a-following me up so close I
-thought certain it was me they was after. But I had a good place for
-dodging--out by the meeting-house sheds, or down the court-house steps
-into the cellar, or round the wood pile--good places all of them, and
-I thought I would chance it. But there wa’n’t no call for dodging. The
-wagon just rolled quietly on a few steps and then stood stockstill and
-six black shadows rose up one by one and got out on to the ground, and
-when I saw that, why I could have squealed right out a-laughing.
-
-“I meant to see what they were after, so I dragged myself along like
-a worm in the shadow of that bad-smelling green stuff that edges the
-driveway, and I found out they were boys from over the line and they
-had come for our gun. Phil Basset was bossing around--same as he
-tried to when he came to the academy before Ethan settled him. He was
-wheezing away like the croup, talking in big whispers full of wind,
-telling everybody else to keep still, and where to put the crowbars
-and how to lift all together when he give the word, one, two, three!
-But just as he got to ‘three,’ there was a pin pointing toward the
-calf of his leg, and I braced myself against that pin and it naturally
-sent me off down the knoll, quiet-like and out of the way, and it left
-him hollering and kicking. Then everybody dropped flat till they see
-whether any one in the village heard the noise. When they went to work
-again Phil said he’d been taken with cramp and couldn’t lift. But they
-got the gun onto the wagon and started for home. Phil drove ’cause his
-leg was lame and they was his father’s horses. The other five boys had
-gone on ahead.
-
-“Well, when I saw that gun moving off, and I thought how that was ours
-for sure, and we’d got it from the English and how we’d got ourselves
-from the English--Fourth of July and all, so that they couldn’t
-ever boss us again, and so that everybody was his own boss in this
-country--why something rose up in my throat and choked me. Then I
-thought about Eth, ’cause he’d had charge of the gun, and he’d been
-awful good and let me help clean her up, and how we’d dug the rust
-out of her and greased her and polished her, and he’d showed me the
-powder and things for to-morrow and said I might touch her off the
-first bang--then I nearly busted, only I saw that it wasn’t any time
-for busting. I just got myself together pretty quick and jumped for the
-tailboard of that wagon. I hung on--I thought I’d stick to that gun,
-and if I died a sticking there, well then I’d die.
-
-“The boys had told Phil to take the new road to Tadman’s Ferry, ’cause
-the hills were so steep on the old one, and the fellows were to go
-cross-lots and meet him on the other side, and then they were going to
-set the gun up as high as they could get it on Horncliffe. But Phil
-said he reckoned he knew what the horses could haul, and as soon as he
-was left to himself he struck off onto the old road. He was up high
-on the seat and I’d crawled in and was laying on the bottom, flatter
-than flat--froze on to the gun. We buzzed along lively at first. The
-down-hills were rather shaky work you guess, but the up-hills were
-worse, and they kept getting more so till we got to that awful steep
-pitch near the top of Smith’s hill. You know where that is?”
-
-“Oh, yes,” said Martin. “There is where you have to lean backward to
-keep from bumping your forehead when you go up. I suppose you rose to
-the occasion, Eph--it must have stood you and the gun right up on end.”
-
-“I got out,” Eph went on, “for the horses stood stockstill and couldn’t
-go an inch farther and then the wagon began to slip back, and Phil put
-stones back of the wheels. Then he went at his horses again, whipping
-and coaxing them. But it was no use. The road is slaty along there and
-the horses had no grip for their feet. He had to give it up at last and
-he left everything standing and went for the boys to get them to boost.
-As soon as I knew I was alone I hid the crowbars in a hollow tree, and
-I cut the traces and let the horses loose, and I took the linchpin out
-of one of the wheels--it wasn’t in very tight, and I took the ramrod
-of the gun, and I wrapped them traces around it and I dropped ’em into
-the brook at the foot of the hill. Then I put for home, and I waked up
-Ethan Allen and went to bed myself.”
-
-“I reckon you were in bed all the time, and saw all this with your eyes
-shut in the dark,” said a derisive voice.
-
-“Sure you didn’t dream it, Eph?” asked Seneca kindly.
-
-“It is a good yarn, anyway,” said Martin who had a taste for fancy
-sketches. “And it hangs together as well as most. I believe it is as
-true as any of us could make up unless we had facts or some little
-conveniences of that kind to go upon.”
-
-The little boy straightened up and leveled a look of indignant protest
-at the scoffers. Then, turning to Ethan Allen, he said, “You go on--you
-know about the rest of it.”
-
-“No chaffing about this not being true,” said Ethan, “we haven’t the
-time for it. Eph wakened me up at two o’clock this morning with a
-handful of gravel on my window, and I was over at Smith’s hill before
-daylight, and I found the crowbars rammed up a hollow tree just as he
-told me, and the gun is there by the roadside, tipped over in a kind
-of gully, and there is some gravel on top of it, and a pile of dry
-brushwood, so that any one driving along the road would not notice it,
-and I fished the ramrod and old Basset’s traces out of the brook. I
-reckon the Ogden boys are coming over for the gun to-night, and we want
-to get in ahead of them. I can go, for one. Who else?”
-
-“Me, too,” piped in little Eph.
-
-“Oh, of course,” said Ethan.
-
-“Me, three--that makes six,” said Martin.
-
-“I will go,” said Seneca Goodyear in his slow, heavy way, “and I reckon
-that father will let me have a team--our horses won’t have to work
-to-morrow.”
-
-“Will your father make you tell what you are going to do with it?”
-asked the conservative boy.
-
-“Well, no--not if I had rather not,” said Seneca. “He’ll trust me--and
-that is the tightest tether I want to be fastened with. Sometimes
-I wish he didn’t. I wouldn’t like to get home minus the traces and
-linchpin and crowbars as Phil Basset did.”
-
-“Well, if Seneca goes, that takes me,” said Mark Hemingway, the tall
-doorkeeper. “My folks said I might stay all night with Seneca and I
-shall stick like a tick.”
-
-“I’ll go, and I, and I,” chorused the rest--conservative boy and all.
-
-Then Seneca Goodyear moved that Ethan Allan be captain of the
-expedition. This was carried by acclaim.
-
-“All right,” said Ethan in terse acceptance of the appointment. “Now
-we’ve got to be quicker than lightning and darker than thunder. We
-don’t want the Ogden boys to get there ahead of us, and have to fight
-them. No more we don’t want our folks stopping us nor helping us out
-as if we were babies. We want the glory of this ourselves. Quick and
-quiet is the word. All scatter and get ready and we’ll meet at the
-cross-roads and start when the town clock strikes nine.”
-
-The company at the cross-roads organized as follows:
-
-Ethan Allen, captain.
-
-Eph Stearns, with the court-house mule, mounted scout.
-
-Martin Fox, with a dark lantern, spy and light skirmisher.
-
-Mark Hemingway, with an old triggerless flintlock of 1812, high private.
-
-The rank and file consisted of two boys with pistols and no cartridges,
-and three boys with doughnuts and sweet apples, while the conservative
-boy with a pocket-compass, a lead pencil, some string, and a chunk
-of shoemaker’s wax, put in a bid as topographer, correspondent, and
-surgeon. But Seneca Goodyear, with his stout team and wagon, well
-equipped with ropes, crowbars, skids, and other lifting apparatus, was
-the mainstay of the expedition.
-
-Little Eph Stearns was, for the nonce, a glorified being. Hitherto the
-heroisms of his life had been of the obscure and pathetic kind. Angels
-had inspired them, and a cloud of witnesses beheld them, but here the
-chance had come for a heroism brilliant and jubilant. Ethan Allen told
-him to go ahead and the big boys would see him do it. No wonder that
-he wrought marvels. Besides lassoing the mule, he had got a bag of
-shavings larger than himself, and a stout clothes line; the last two
-were for some secret service of his own suggestion, though approved
-by the captain. But the mule seemed to be a purely ornamental feature
-of the occasion. He had been half-shoved, half-carried to the place of
-rendezvous; here he seemed unwilling to go any farther. He was hitched
-ignominiously to the tailboard of the wagon, and being pulled in front,
-and poked in the rear by his doughty rider who walked behind for this
-purpose, he moved off in spite of himself.
-
-Away into the darkness of that quiet summer night the expedition passed
-on. The sleepy lights twinkled in the distant farmhouses, the dewy
-winds came over the meadows and grain fields, and the stars looked
-down from their solemn depths. The boys were rather quiet, for boys.
-The secrecy of the affair, the chances for a fight which might prove
-dangerous, the honorable and important character of the undertaking
-all conspired to give a sombre coloring to the occasion. These were
-veritable Green Mountain Boys, too, with the legends of heroic ancestry
-all aglow in their young hearts and the strength of their own hills in
-their sturdy purpose.
-
-After a half-hour’s ride the boys reached the place and found
-everything all quiet. The gun was in bad shape, dislodged from the
-carriage and pitched into the gully. Nobody knew how to go at it and
-the darkness of the night added confusion to the situation. Now the
-Secret Service blazoned itself splendidly forth. Eph emptied his
-shavings on the ground in two piles, one or each side of the gun; upon
-these he heaped the brushwood and in less than two minutes he had two
-grand bonfires for the boys to work by. Then the little scout, with
-mule and clothes line, disappeared over the brow of the hill. A few
-rods below this point of vantage he stretched the clothes line across
-the road; it was about a foot from the ground and fastened on either
-side to the trunk of a tree. He then reported to his chief and received
-reinforcements: one boy and munitions of war--an empty bag, in which he
-gathered stones.
-
-Meanwhile at the gun the skids had been well adjusted by the firelight,
-and the lifting went sturdily on. Upon the height of the hill Eph
-awaited the onslaught of the enemy. The deploying force made a brave
-line of battle: Eph on the right flank with a pile of stones, his aide
-on the left, and the mule in the centre. They had not long to wait.
-A heavy team was heard laboring up. Moving shadows soon were seen in
-advance of it.
-
-“Now don’t waste your stones,” Eph orders his command. “Don’t fire
-one of them till you see them Ogdens keel over the rope and hear them
-holler. Then pelt away like Jehu, and whoop like an Indian, and they’ll
-think it’s the regular army.”
-
-The enemy came on _en masse_, they tripped over the rope so beautifully
-that Eph Stearns, boy and man, has laughed at the thought of it ever
-since, they fell kicking and struggling and tangled up as to legs
-and arms. Rattle and whiz came the stones in showers upon them, and,
-to crown all, the mule cavorted right down into the thickest of the
-scrimmage as if he had been Job’s war-horse smelling the battle afar.
-
-It was full ten minutes before the Ogden boys got themselves together
-again, and during that ten minutes the last long pull and strong pull
-had been given to the cannon and the iron giant was rolling comfortably
-homeward in Seneca’s wagon.
-
-Then the boys hot, exultant, shouting, made a wild break for the enemy
-as they came pelting over the brow of the hill.
-
-“Sneaks!” calls one, with a stone.
-
-“Thieves!” yells another.
-
-“At ’em--fight ’em!” shouts another, brandishing a big stick.
-
-“Let’s lay ’em out! thrash ’em!”
-
-“Hold on! Halt!” cries Captain Ethan with the voice of a trumpet and he
-springs to the front of his little troop and faces them, his arms aloft
-with a kind of impassioned dominance of voice and mien that hustles
-back the pell-mell advance.
-
-“Halt! Form in line!” he calls, and the wild crowd sway into a kind of
-half-circle about their captain.
-
-“Three cheers for Hennepin County and the Gun!” orders the captain.
-
-Shout, shout, shout. Oh, how they shouted! That wild hurrah rifted the
-clouds and shook the mountains. Then as the echoes died away, in the
-sharp interval of silence that followed, Captain Ethan faced around to
-the enemy:
-
-“Now, gentlemen, what will you have?”
-
-“Three cheers for Ogden County!” returned the leader.
-
-“Ogden County--without the Gun, amen!” piped up Eph like a fife.
-
-But the three cheers were lustily given. The old Vermont hills echoed
-and re-echoed again, and a vast deal of spleen spent itself in those
-six cheers.
-
-“Now, all hands!” commanded Captain Ethan Allen in ringing tones. “Now,
-both sides and everybody, give three cheers for the Green Mountain Boys
-and the Fourth of July!”
-
-Again, and doubly loud, roared out the great shouts. Again the
-mountains heard and the echoes reverberated around the sky. The stars
-listened, in their far heights, and knew that America was a stronger
-nation for the throb of patriotic feeling that pulsed through those hot
-young hearts and voiced itself in those fine huzzas.
-
-
-
-
-PAUL REVERE’S RIDE[K]
-
-By HENRY WADSWORTH LONGFELLOW
-
- Every American boy and girl ought to know by heart the story of how
- Paul Revere on his famous ride called the minute-men to arms on the
- eve of the Battle of Lexington.
-
-
- Listen, my children, and you shall hear
- Of the midnight ride of Paul Revere,
- On the eighteenth of April, in Seventy-five;
- Hardly a man is now alive
- Who remembers that famous day and year.
-
- He said to his friend, “If the British march
- By land or sea from the town to-night,
- Hang a lantern aloft in the belfry arch
- Of the North Church tower as a signal light--
- One if by land, and two if by sea;
- And I on the opposite shore will be
- Ready to ride and spread the alarm
- Through every Middlesex village and farm,
- For the country folk to be up and to arm.”
-
- Then he said, “Good-night!” and with muffled oar
- Silently rowed to the Charlestown shore,
- Just as the moon rose over the bay,
- Where swinging wide at her moorings lay
- The _Somerset_, British man-of-war;
- A phantom ship, with each mast and spar
- Across the moon like a prison bar,
- And a huge black hulk, that was magnified
- By its own reflection in the tide.
-
- Meanwhile his friend, through alley and street,
- Wanders and watches with eager ears,
- Till in the silence around him he hears
- The muster of men at the barrack door,
- The sound of arms, and the tramp of feet,
- And the measured tread of the grenadiers
- Marching down to their boats on the shore.
-
- Then he climbed the tower of the Old North Church,
- By the wooden stairs, with stealthy tread,
- To the belfry chamber overhead,
- And startled the pigeons from their perch
- On the sombre rafters, that round him made
- Masses and moving shapes of shade--
- By the trembling ladder, steep and tall,
- To the highest window in the wall,
- Where he paused to listen and look down
- A moment on the roofs of the town,
- And the moonlight flowing over all.
-
- Beneath, in the churchyard, lay the dead,
- In their night encampment on the hill,
- Wrapped in silence so deep and still
- That he could hear, like a sentinel’s tread,
- The watchful night-wind, as it went
- Creeping along from tent to tent,
- And seeming to whisper, “All is well!”
- A moment only he feels the spell
- Of the place and the hour, and the secret dread
- Of the lonely belfry and the dead;
- For suddenly all his thoughts are bent
- On a shadowy something far away,
- Where the river widens to meet the bay--
- A line of black that bends and floats
- On the rising tide, like a bridge of boats.
-
- Meanwhile, impatient to mount and ride,
- Booted and spurred, with a heavy stride
- On the opposite shore walked Paul Revere.
- Now he patted his horse’s side,
- Now gazed at the landscape far and near,
- Then, impetuous, stamped the earth,
- And turned and tightened his saddle-girth;
- But mostly he watched with eager search
- The belfry tower of the Old North Church,
- As it rose above the graves on the hill,
- Lonely and spectral and sombre and still.
- And lo! as he looks, on the belfry’s height
- A glimmer, and then a gleam of light!
- He springs to the saddle, the bridle he turns,
- But lingers and gazes, till full on his sight
- A second lamp in the belfry burns!
-
- A hurry of hoofs in a village street,
- A shape in the moonlight, a bulk in the dark,
- And beneath, from the pebbles, in passing, a spark
- Struck out by a steed flying fearless and fleet:
- That was all! And yet through the gloom and the light
- The fate of a nation was riding that night;
- And the spark struck out by that steed in his flight
- Kindled the land into flame with its heat.
-
- He has left the village and mounted the steep,
- And beneath him, tranquil and broad and deep,
- Is the Mystic, meeting the ocean tides;
- And under the alders that skirt its edge,
- Now soft on the sand, now loud on the ledge,
- Is heard the tramp of his steed as he rides.
-
- It was twelve by the village clock
- When he crossed the bridge into Medford town.
- He heard the crowing of the cock,
- And the barking of the farmer’s dog,
- And felt the damp of the river fog
- That rises after the sun goes down.
- It was one by the village clock
- When he galloped into Lexington.
- He saw the gilded weathercock
- Swim in the moonlight as he passed,
- And the meeting-house windows, blank and bare,
- Gaze at him with a spectral glare,
- As if they already stood aghast
- At the bloody work they would look upon.
-
- It was two by the village clock
- When he came to the bridge in Concord town.
- He heard the bleating of the flock,
- And the twitter of birds among the trees,
- And felt the breath of the morning breeze
- Blowing over the meadows brown.
- And one was safe and asleep in his bed
- Who at the bridge would be first to fall,
- Who that day would be lying dead,
- Pierced by a British musket-ball.
-
- You know the rest. In the books you have read
- How the British Regulars fired and fled--
- How the farmers gave them ball for ball
- From behind each fence and farm-yard wall,
- Chasing the redcoats down the lane,
- Then crossing the fields to emerge again
- Under the trees at the turn of the road,
- And only pausing to fire and load.
-
- So through the night rode Paul Revere;
- And so through the night went his cry of alarm
- To every Middlesex village and farm--
- A cry of defiance and not of fear,
- A voice in the darkness, a knock at the door,
- And a word that shall echo forevermore!
- For, borne on the night-wind of the Past,
- Through all our history, to the last,
- In the hour of darkness and peril and need,
- The people will waken and listen to hear
- The hurrying hoof-beats of that steed,
- And the midnight message of Paul Revere.
-
-
-
-
-TONY’S BIRTHDAY AND GEORGE WASHINGTON’S[L]
-
-By AGNES REPPLIER
-
- Washington’s Birthday--boys skating--and how one timid little boy
- called after the Father of his Country lived up to his illustrious
- name.
-
-
-It was the great misfortune of Tony Butler’s life to have been born on
-the twenty-second of February.
-
-There was no comfort in reflecting that there were doubtless plenty of
-other boys in the country who labored under the same disadvantage. The
-other boys might perhaps be better fitted for the honor, but for poor
-Tony the distinction was a crushing one.
-
-In the first place, he had an older brother, and that older brother’s
-name was George. Now it is generally conceded that one of a name is
-enough for any family; but when Tony was born on the twenty-second of
-February, how was poor Mrs. Butler to act?
-
-Not to have called him after the Father of his Country would have been,
-in that good woman’s opinion, a positive slight to the illustrious
-dead. As long as her boy was fortunate enough to have the same
-birthday as our great President, it became her plain duty to give him
-one other point of resemblance, and then trust to time to complete the
-likeness.
-
-It was a pity that they had a George already, but that difficulty could
-be done away with by calling her second son Washington. Washington
-Butler sounded well, and seemed all that was desirable; only there was
-just a little too much of it for every-day use. Sometimes the boy was
-called Washie, and sometimes Wash, and sometimes Wah, and sometimes
-Tony, until, as he grew older, and able to talk, he evinced a decided
-preference for the last title, and would answer to no other.
-
-But although this lessened his troubles it by no means ended them; for
-when a child has so many nicknames to choose from, everybody is apt to
-select a different one; and to confess the truth, he was not at all the
-right sort of a boy to be called George Washington.
-
-There was nothing of the soldier, nothing of the patriot, nothing at
-all remarkable, about poor Tony in any way. He was a shy, homely little
-boy, who would have passed well enough as plain Sam, which, being
-his father’s name, would also have been his had it not been for his
-unfortunate birthday. But as George Washington, even his doting mother
-was forced to realize he was not a complete success.
-
-The first day he went to school the master sonorously read out his name
-as Antony Butler, whereat his brother giggled, and Tony, blushing fiery
-red, stammered out that he was not an Antony at all.
-
-“Not Antony?” said the teacher, in natural surprise. “Why, then, are
-you called Tony?”
-
-“Because my name is George Washington, and we had a George already,”
-was the embarrassed answer.
-
-After this the boys with one accord dubbed him Washing Tony, as if he
-were a Chinese laundryman, and Washing Tony he continued to be called.
-
-Under these circumstances, perhaps he was excusable in wishing he had
-been born on some less illustrious day, and when the Twenty-second came
-duly around it required all the delights of a new pair of skates and a
-fur cap to reconcile him entirely to his fate.
-
-It being a general holiday, all the boys proposed spending it on the
-ice, and Tony could skate a great deal better than he could write or
-cipher; although even here he was never what boys consider brave, and
-what their parents are apt to more accurately define as foolhardy.
-
-The truth is, there was not in the child a spice of that boyish daring
-which seems so attractive in its possessor, and which is in reality so
-wanton and useless.
-
-Tony never wanted to climb high trees, or jump from steep places, or
-pat a restive horse, or throw an apple at a cross old farmer. All these
-things, which were dear to the hearts of his companions, were totally
-unattractive to him. He could never be dared to any deed that had a
-touch of danger in it, and the contrast between his prudent conduct
-and his illustrious title was, in the eyes of all the other boys, the
-crowning absurdity of the case.
-
-On this particular birthday the weather, though clear, was mild for
-the season, and some apprehension had been felt as to the complete
-soundness of the ice. A careful investigation, however, showed it to be
-all firm and solid except in one corner, where the lake was deepest,
-and where the ice, though unbroken, looked thin and semi-transparent,
-with the restless water underneath. Around this uncertain quarter
-a line was drawn, and soon some thirty or forty boys were skimming
-rapidly over the frozen surface.
-
-Fred Hazlit and Eddy Barrows were the champion skaters of the district,
-and their evolutions were regarded with wonder and delight by a host of
-smaller boys, who vainly tried to rival their achievements.
-
-Not so Tony. Although perfectly at home on the ice, he seemed to have
-no more desire to excel here than elsewhere, but skated gravely up and
-down, enjoying himself in his sober fashion, his cap drawn over his
-eyes, his little red hands thrust in his overcoat pockets.
-
-George, who did not think this at all amusing, was off with the older
-boys, trying to write his name on the ice, and going over and over it
-with a patient persistency that, practised at school, would have made
-him the first writer in his class.
-
-Gradually the forbidden ground began to be encroached on, some of the
-older boys skimming lightly over it, and finding it quite hard enough
-to bear their weight. Soon the line was obliterated by a dozen pairs
-of skates, and the children, never heeding it, spread themselves over
-every inch of ice on the lake.
-
-All but Tony. With characteristic prudence he had marked the dangerous
-corner well, and never once ventured upon it. As he stopped to tighten
-his skates, four of the younger boys, hand in hand, came bearing down
-upon him.
-
-“Catch hold,” shouted Willie Marston, “and we’ll make a line. Hurrah!
-Here goes!” and Tony with the rest shot across the smooth sheet of ice
-until they came to the inclosed quarter. The others were keeping right
-on, but Tony stopped short.
-
-“It is not safe,” he said, “and I am not going on it.”
-
-“Nonsense!” cried Dick Treves. “What a coward you are, Tony! We have
-been over it a dozen times already this morning, and it is just as safe
-as the rest.”
-
-“Of course it is,” said Willie. “Come ahead.”
-
-But Tony did not go ahead. Neither did he discuss the matter, for
-argument of any kind was not at all in his way. He merely stopped and
-let go of Willie’s hand. “It isn’t safe,” he persisted. “You can do as
-you like, but I am not going on it.”
-
-“Well, stay there,” said Ned Marston, giving him a little shove--“stay
-where you are, General Washington, and cross the Delaware on dry land
-if you can.”
-
-“Three cheers for General Washington!” shouted Dick derisively. “Hurrah
-for the bravest of the brave!” and then the three boys skated on,
-leaving Tony standing there upon the ice.
-
-His face flushed crimson with shame, but he never stirred. He hated to
-be laughed at and called a coward, but he was afraid to venture, and no
-amount of ridicule could urge him on.
-
-Slowly he turned to go when at that instant an ominous sound struck his
-ear. The treacherous ice was cracking in all directions, a dozen jagged
-seams spreading like magic over the smooth surface. There was a sharp
-snap, a cry of terror, a splash, and three boys, white with fright,
-started back from the yawning hole barely in time to save themselves
-from falling.
-
-In the excitement and fear of that moment no one of them thought of
-his companion; but Tony, who stood beside, had seen poor Willie’s
-despairing blue eyes fixed on him with a mute appeal for help as he
-staggered and fell into the dark water.
-
-Somehow all his habitual caution, which was so falsely termed
-cowardice, had disappeared; he never even thought of being afraid, with
-that pitiful glance still before his eyes, but, urged on by some great
-impulse, cleared the space between them in an instant, and plunged down
-after his drowning friend.
-
-Another minute and both boys re-appeared, Willie clutching fiercely at
-his preserver, and Tony holding him off as well as he could with one
-arm while he struck out bravely with the other.
-
-It was but the work of a moment before help reached them, but that
-moment had saved poor Willie’s life, and changed forever the opinions
-of the school.
-
-They had learned what true courage was. Tony Butler might be timid and
-insignificant, but he had proved himself beyond a doubt worthy of his
-illustrious name, and a fit hero for the Twenty-second.
-
-
-
-
-A VENTURE IN 1777[M]
-
-By S. WEIR MITCHELL
-
- A good, long boy’s story of how three Philadelphia lads spent an
- exciting Christmas at Valley Forge, after performing a service of
- great value to the patriots’ cause.
-
-
-I
-
-This is a story of a boy and two other boys.
-
-Tom Markham was fifteen and over, and was careful when asked his age to
-say he was in his sixteenth year. His brothers were two years younger.
-When Harry was asked how old he was he said he was as old as Bill, and
-when any one inquired his age of Bill he replied that he was as old as
-Harry. This was because being twins they got somehow mixed up when they
-were born, and no one knew which was ten minutes the older.
-
-Between themselves the twins considered the matter of precedence based
-on age as important, and now and then endeavored to adjust matters by
-wager of battle. It was settled at last by the elder brother, Tom, who
-decided that they should be elder year about. Thus, in 1777 Bill was
-the older, and was sadly regarding the lapse into youth which was
-about to come in 1778, when Harry would be in turn the senior.
-
-While Tom, who was to be sixteen in February, looked older, his
-brothers appeared younger than their years, and were two saucy,
-clever, reckless lads. A look of child-like innocence was part of the
-protective capital the twins invested in mischief. They fought one
-another, made common cause against the world, and had, as concerned
-Tom, a certain amount of respect founded on physical conditions. At the
-close of this year 1777, Sir William Howe held the city of Penn with
-some eighteen thousand men. Twenty miles away George Washington waited
-in his lines at Valley Forge with three or four thousand half-starved
-soldiers.
-
-Between the two armies Nature had established a nearly neutral ground,
-for on it lay the deepest snow the land had known for many a year. It
-was both foe and friend to the Continental soldiers, whom starvation
-and cold were daily tempting to desertion, and among whom disease in
-many forms was busily recruiting for the army of the dead.
-
-The well-fed British regulars in and near the city found in the snow
-an obstacle which forbade Sir William Howe to move, discouraged
-enterprise, and gave excuses for inertness, since no general at that
-time ventured to think of a winter campaign, until in ’78 the Virginia
-general read his enemy a novel lesson in the art of war.
-
-The land between the city of Philadelphia and Valley Forge on both
-sides of the Schuylkill was in ’77 a fertile country of large farms to
-which narrow wood roads led from the main highways. On to this region
-of winter, scouting or foraging parties of both armies ventured at
-times, and from it in good weather the farmers, despite the efforts
-of our scant cavalry, took supplies to the snow-beleaguered city, and
-sometimes, if Tories, information of value.
-
-In the best houses of the city there were quartered, to the disgust of
-the Whig dames, a great number of British officers. They were to be fed
-without charge and were unpleasant or not personally disagreeable, as
-chanced to be the case.
-
-Mrs. Markham’s ample house on Third Street, near Spruce, had its share
-of boarders thus comfortably billeted, to the satisfaction of her Tory
-neighbors who were not thus burdened or who gladly entertained officers
-of distinction.
-
-The owner of the house, Colonel Markham, of the Continental line, lay a
-prisoner in New York, when on Christmas Eve, in this year of 1777, Mrs.
-Markham and three unwelcome guests sat down to supper.
-
-Tom, the elder son, stood at the window watching the big white
-snowflakes flitting across the black squares of the night-darkened
-panes.
-
-“Come, my son,” said Mrs. Markham, and he took the vacant seat, his
-mind on the joys to which the weather was contributing in the way of
-coasting, skating, and snowball wars.
-
-This terrible winter was one thing to Sir William Howe, another to
-George Washington, and a quite delightful other to Tom Markham. “I
-suppose, Tom,” said the mother, as he took his seat, “this sort of
-Christmas weather is much to your liking.”
-
-“Why, any fellow would like it, mother.”
-
-“There is everything in the point of view,” she returned, smiling. “I
-have no recollection of a winter like this.”
-
-In truth, the weather was keeping Christmas with a bountiful gift of
-fresh snow to the earth which was already heavily burdened.
-
-Within the house a cheerful wood-fire blazed on the hearth. Two
-branched silver candelabra lighted the table, and the furniture,
-portraits, and round mirrors all told of ease and luxury.
-
-“I have to thank you for the turkey, Captain Verney,” said Mrs.
-Markham. “My supplies are running low and soon you will be no better
-fed than the Continentals.”
-
-“Rebels, madam,” said Colonel Grimstone, a rough, red-faced soldier,
-who had risen from the ranks. “I think we shall have to be fed and well
-fed, too. I have asked five officers to dine here next week, on New
-Year’s Day.”
-
-Tom looked straight at the fat Colonel and wished he were himself a man.
-
-“By that time,” said Mrs. Markham, laughing, “you will have little
-besides pork and potatoes; Heaven knows what else.”
-
-“Oh, you will find us enough. All you rebel ladies tell the same story.
-A bit tough, this mutton.”
-
-For the first time she broke into angry reply. “Then, sir, it is like
-your manners--hard to digest.”
-
-What with care and anxiety, she had come to the place where open wrath
-is the only escape from the shame of tears.
-
-To her surprise the Colonel made no rejoinder. The younger officer at
-his side caught his eye as he was about to make some insolent reply.
-
-Captain, the Honorable John Verney, to be some day in the peerage if
-spared by war, was a person whom the Colonel did not care to offend,
-and who, as Mrs. Markham spoke, said, “You had better get another
-billet, Grimstone. No doubt André would exchange with you.”
-
-The Colonel growled but held his tongue, knowing very well that few
-officers were as well cared for as Mrs. Markham’s guests.
-
-Verney, a gentleman of the best, smiled at her and nodded reassuringly.
-He meant, as often before, to set her at ease as to her difficulty in
-suiting the Colonel.
-
-The third guest, a Hessian officer, Count Von Einstein, annoyed by the
-Colonel’s rudeness, turned the talk aside as he said, in fair English:
-“The letter you gave me for your husband in New York I was able to
-forward but I had first to go through the form of reading it: I think I
-did say so; else it could not have gone.”
-
-“Of course,” returned Mrs. Markham, coloring. “Is there any chance of
-exchange of prisoners?”
-
-“I fear not,” said Verney, “unless the Continentals should capture the
-Count or Colonel Grimstone.”
-
-“There isn’t much chance of that, mother,” whispered Tom. “They like
-town too well.”
-
-“Hush!” she said, but smiled at him affectionately. Amid the stress
-of war, the talk at table, and his mother’s anxiety, the lad had
-become thoughtful beyond his years. “What a terrible night!” said Mrs.
-Markham, as the wind roared around the house and the casements rattled.
-Her mind was on the camp at Valley Forge, whence came, from the Quaker
-farmers, now and then, tales of starvation, misery, and desertion very
-encouraging to Sir William Howe, who felt that there was small need to
-assist the weather in fighting his battles.
-
-Some such thought was in the mind of the Colonel, for he remarked, “The
-rebels must be enjoying it.”
-
-“There are two sides to that question,” replied Verney.
-
-“How two, sir?” asked Grimstone.
-
-“Oh, we cannot move,” said the Count. “Not even the great Frederick
-ever made a campaign in winter.”
-
-“Who wants to move? I do not,” growled the Colonel.
-
-“I would try it, if I were Sir William.”
-
-“And how?” asked the Colonel.
-
-“Well, this way,” said Verney.
-
-He rose, and taking a sheet of paper from a desk near by sat down again
-and rapidly drew the course of the river Schuylkill. “This way. March
-five thousand men up each side of the river, cross on the ice from this
-side, and attack on both sides at once.”
-
-The Count looked up. “That is just what Major Montresor is urging Sir
-William to do, and at once. He hesitates----”
-
-“But the snow,” said the Colonel.
-
-“He won’t try it,” returned Verney.
-
-“No, thank Heaven,” said the Colonel, and the sketch was crumpled up
-and cast aside to fall on the floor under the table.
-
-Supper was over, the table cleared, and the men sat talking together.
-At this time broke in the twins, beating off the snow and pounding with
-their cold feet on the floor.
-
-“I have a sword,” and “I have a drum,” cried the twins.
-
-“Goodness, you little rebels! I shall run,” laughed Verney.
-
-“And I,” cried the Count.
-
-“You are late, boys,” said Mrs. Markham.
-
-“Aunt Mary kept us.”
-
-“Did you put away the lantern?”
-
-“No, mother,” said Bill.
-
-“Why not? I told you to be careful of it. What mischief have you
-been up to? I shall be easier when the holidays are over and the
-schoolmaster is busy with his ferrule.”
-
-The twins looked at each other and were silent.
-
-“Come,” said Verney, “out with it, boys.”
-
-“You’re the oldest, Harry,” said Bill.
-
-“Out with it, Gemini,” said Verney.
-
-Harry was silent, and it was Bill who replied.
-
-“Well, Sambo--that’s Aunt Mary’s man, sir--he wouldn’t let us carry the
-lantern.”
-
-Verney, the sympathetic lover of all their mischief, asked, “What then,
-Bill?”
-
-“We kicked his shins and he dropped the lantern and it went out, and a
-soldier came along and he said we had no lantern and he must take Sambo
-to the Guardhouse.”
-
-Verney, much amused, said: “You young rebels are always in mischief.
-The orders of Mr. Galloway are that every one after dark must carry a
-lantern.”
-
-“Well, we wanted to carry it.”
-
-“What did Sambo say?”
-
-“He ran away when the soldier said he had no light. Then we ran, too,
-like everything.”
-
-“And was that all?” The twins hesitated. “Oh, don’t be afraid,” cried
-Verney. “What next?”
-
-“We hurrahed for Washington and snowballed him.”
-
-“What, Washington?”
-
-“No, sir, the soldier; and he ran after us and we ran down Willings
-Alley and got over the wall and then over our own wall, and that
-soldier-man he is asking questions of Mr. Willing’s cook.”
-
-Tom grinned approval, the Count looked serious, and Verney laughed
-while the Colonel said, “I have a mind to spank both of you.”
-
-Mrs. Markham turned on him. “I can attend to those ceremonies myself,
-sir”--a fact of which the twins were well aware.
-
-The Colonel made no reply, but Verney said: “In the interest of
-patriotism, madam, you cannot possibly court-martial them.”
-
-“And it is Christmas Eve, mother,” said Tom.
-
-“Well, it is largely your fault, Mr. Verney. You spoil them too much.”
-
-“I shall reform, madam. We shall reform, Gemini.”
-
-“To bed with you, lads,” she said.
-
-“Couldn’t we sit up a little?” said Verney.
-
-“Please, madam,” urged the Count.
-
-“Then half an hour. Come to the fire. Lie down on the rug, boys. Why,
-your hands are half frozen.” The Count and Verney drew to the hearth
-and the Colonel sat at the table. He was quite outside of the group
-around the fire.
-
-“You have been so good,” said Verney, “that I shall have some little
-presents for you to-morrow.” The twins wished to hear of them. “No,”
-he said, “you must wait.” But in the morning he and the Colonel had to
-go out to inspect the works Major Montresor had thrown up at Chestnut
-Hill. They would use their own horses and Mrs. Markham’s sleigh, and
-would their mother let the boys go?
-
-“They are so good,” said Verney.
-
-“Oh, do, mother!” cried the twins.
-
-The Colonel at the table growled that children were in the way,
-nuisances; but Verney took his assent for granted, and somewhat
-reluctantly the mother yielded, her friend Verney promising to take
-care of them.
-
-Tom liked very well this chance to see the soldiers, but showed the
-growing boy’s usual appearance of being unenthusiastic. Moreover, he
-hated the Colonel as much as he liked Verney.
-
-Assured of the frolic, the twins frankly opened the question of
-Christmas presents with their friendly German guest, Mrs. Markham
-protesting in vain.
-
-The Count laughed. “_Guter himmel_, children. I have no presents. Ask
-the Colonel; he might dream you each a pony.” The Colonel by this time
-was sound asleep.
-
-“It’s no use,” said Harry.
-
-“Not even if he was awake,” said Bill. “If you haven’t got any
-presents, tell us a story.”
-
-This he had done many times, liking the lads. Now at this Christmas
-season he was thinking of his distant home and his wife and children,
-away in the Fatherland.
-
-“Come, come, Count,” said Verney; “I like stories.”
-
-The Count sat still, reflecting.
-
-“He’s getting ready,” said Harry.
-
-“It will be a Christmas story, boys.”
-
-“By all means,” said Verney, seeing as he spoke the old Devonshire
-hall--his home, the holly and the mistletoe, and hearing the merriment
-that seemed to sail to him on fairy ships over three thousand miles of
-sea. They would drink his health this night.
-
-He was recalled to a sense of his alien surroundings as the Count said:
-“This is a story, boys, my father used to tell when I was a little
-fellow, but it was never told except on Christmas Eve when we sat in
-the great hall of my own home.”
-
-“What made you come away to fight us?” This was Bill’s contribution.
-Harry punched him to emphasize his wish that there should be no
-interruptions.
-
-Mrs. Markham did not, as usual, reprove the twin whose ingenious
-capacity to unite impertinence and curiosity was in great need of
-check. She merely looked up at the Hessian gentleman, who gravely made
-reply to Bill: “I am a soldier and go where I am ordered, even though
-it take me to death.”
-
-The twins discussed this later, but Tom was old enough to note the
-suddenly serious look of the officer as Mrs. Markham, who knew his
-history, said: “Be quiet, boys. I want to hear the story, even if you
-do not.”
-
-“But we do,” cried the twins.
-
-“When I tell this story I think of the great hall of the castle, with
-no light but what the big logs gave, and how it flashed red on the
-armor and on the lances and swords on the walls.”
-
-“Why must there be no lights?” asked Harry.
-
-“Because we think in Hesse that at midnight when the blessed day is
-just born the Christ comes to the door and blesses the home. As He is
-the light of the world there must be no other light but the fire for
-warmth, like the comforting of His love for all, all of us. But now I
-must not be interrupted.”
-
-“If Bill does it again,” said the other twin, “I will----”
-
-“Just you try,” returned Bill.
-
-“I shall thrash you both,” said Tom.
-
-“You can’t!”
-
-On this the mother said they should all three go to bed if they spoke
-a word in the next half-hour. Upon this there was silence and only the
-occasional interchange of such warlike signals as are well known to
-boys.
-
-The Count went on, the three lads now eagerly attentive, while Verney
-sat by giving at need a faint whistle to check or lower the fine
-snoring of the Colonel.
-
-“Once upon a time in old days there was a King, and the time it was
-once upon was Christmas Eve. Then, as was the custom, Rathumus, the
-maker of stories for the King, came to him and said, ‘Come with me that
-under the stars I tell you the Christmas tale.’ The King went with him
-into the garden.
-
-“‘This,’ said the teller of tales, ‘O King, is the night of all nights
-that brings to men wise counsel for their own birthdays, when kings who
-are merciful set free many who are in prison for debt.’
-
-“‘But now in this kingdom on the birthday of the Christ, the King of
-Kings, a hundred couriers sit on their horses at the gate waiting for a
-message of pardon and release to all who are in prisons for wrong-doing
-or for having displeased my lord the King. This is the law of the land.
-But if the King in his wrath has one he will not set free, then none
-are released, and the couriers ride sad to the homes of those who bide
-in sorrow.’
-
-“On this the maker of stories went away and the King stayed alone in
-the garden. It was very quiet and the stars watched him to see what
-would come, for now it was near to midnight, and over all the land
-many who knew of the custom stood at their doors longing to see the
-white-robed couriers arrive with news of pardon on that Christmas Day.
-
-“Now there is always for every man some woman of whom he is afraid,
-and so it was with the King. It was not the Queen, because she was
-dead, but it was the King’s daughter, who wanted to marry a brave young
-Prince, and was angry because the King saw no way to prevent it except
-to keep him shut up in a high tower.
-
-“The stars all felt sorry when the King cried out, ‘Never will I let
-him out--never!’
-
-“Then a little wind sobbed through the trees and was still and the
-roses in the shadows prayed and the nightingales ceased to sing. There
-was a great quietness.
-
-“The King sat down on a seat and was angry with the custom and with
-himself, and shut his eyes and thought, for now he must decide. If he
-would not set free the Prince there would be no Christmas prayers for
-him in all the wide land. But no, he would not free the Prince.
-
-“Of a sudden he heard a voice say softly: ‘If, O King, you move you
-will surely die. Listen!’ Then he looked and saw in the darkness a dim
-figure with great white wings and was afraid, and as he listened he
-heard: ‘O King, around the throne of God a million courier angels are
-waiting in prayer. And at the noon of night the Christ will speak, and
-they will fly to set loose from chains of sin those who have this year
-offended a greater King than you. Hark, the clock strikes! They are
-on their way to open for you and many the prison doors of cruelty and
-wrong-doing.’
-
-“Of a sudden the angel was gone and the nightingales sang again, while
-the King went to the gate and cried to the couriers, ‘Go, with my
-pardon.’
-
-“Then in the palace the Princess said to her ladies: ‘Quick, take off
-my swan wings and never tell what I have done, or none of you shall
-ever be married.’
-
-“Very soon came the King, and said, ‘I have seen an angel!’
-
-“And so the Prince was set free and married that clever Princess and
-was ever after good and happy.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-“What a pretty tale!” said Mrs. Markham; “and now to bed, to bed, boys.”
-
-“Thank you, sir,” said Tom.
-
-Bill was silent.
-
-“Then it wasn’t a real angel,” said Harry.
-
-“Yes, it was,” laughed Verney. “It was a woman.”
-
-On this Harry, who had the gift of imagination, got up and kissed his
-mother, who, comprehending him, smiled.
-
-Just as they were going noisily to bed a servant came in and said
-an orderly was without. He gave a paper to Verney, who awakened the
-Colonel and gave him a letter.
-
-The Colonel rubbed his eyes and looked at it. “I hoped they had
-forgotten. Here are our orders to inspect the lines to-morrow on Mount
-Airy and Chestnut Hill.”
-
-“And here,” said Verney, “is Montresor’s map of the forts in and about
-the city. He promised me to send it as a guide to the outlying works.”
-The twins having gone, Tom lingered, unnoticed.
-
-“Let me see that map,” said the Colonel. They spread it on the table
-and began to consider it.
-
-“May I look?” asked Tom, as usual curious.
-
-“Certainly,” said Verney. “I will explain it to you. See, here are
-bastions and these dots the cannon. Here is the _tête du pont_, a work
-to defend the upper ferry.”
-
-“It is rather droll to me,” said Count Einstein. “Eighteen thousand men
-ought to be bastions enough.”
-
-“Not for Sir William,” laughed Verney.
-
-“It is Montresor’s own copy,” said Grimstone. “It is signed.”
-
-“I should be pretty careful of it,” said the Count, a brave and
-well-trained soldier.
-
-This readiness to explain the plans to Mrs. Markham and her interested
-boy seemed to him unwise. More than once full knowledge of contemplated
-army movements had in some mysterious way reached the snowbound enemy.
-
-Mrs. Markham stood by looking over Tom’s shoulder, and presently said,
-“It is quite incomprehensible to me. Do you understand it, Tom?”
-
-“I think so. See, mother, in one place he marks a weak point.”
-
-“Have you, Mr. Verney, any such plans of the lines at Valley Forge?”
-she asked gaily.
-
-“You had better inquire of Major Montresor,” said the Count, not
-fancying the too-free talk.
-
-“To exchange plans would simplify matters,” said Mrs. Markham, from
-whom it is to be feared the twins inherited their capacity for mischief.
-
-The Count, much the ablest of the three officers, looked up at her of
-a sudden grave. Tom, always on easy terms with Verney, went on eagerly
-asking intelligent questions.
-
-“It is time, my son, you went to bed,” said the mother. “If George
-Washington, Count, could make no more of that tangle of lines than I,
-you might safely make him a Christmas gift of it.”
-
-“Let him come and get it,” laughed Verney.
-
-“They are pretty poor with their Continental rag money,” growled
-Grimstone, “but I suppose that map would easily fetch----”
-
-“Fetch!” broke in the Count, still less relishing the talk. “It
-wouldn’t fetch five shillings.” There was an unusually sharp note in
-his voice. “Roll it up, Verney.”
-
-He was the senior officer present, and Verney, at once recognizing the
-implied rebuke as something like an order, took the hint, saying, as he
-rolled the map, “I wanted to ask you if you thought----”
-
-The Count put a hand on his shoulder with the slight pressure which
-gave force to his words as he said: “We will talk of it, sir, another
-time. Permit me to say that if I were you I should be careful of that
-map.” This was in an aside to Verney as the boy left them.
-
-Among them they had set the adventurous mind of a fearless young rebel
-to thinking in a fashion of which they little dreamed.
-
-“I shall be careful, sir,” and then with his gay manner and the
-self-confidence of youth, he added: “What with the Gemini and Tom
-and the Colonel, it ought to be safe enough. What time should we go
-to-morrow, Colonel?”
-
-“Nine will be early enough.”
-
-“Will you lend me your sable coat?” asked Verney of the Count.
-
-“With pleasure.”
-
-“I like best my sealskin,” said Grimstone. “It is not so heavy. Do you
-really mean to take the boys?”
-
-“Of course I do. We want Tom to hold the horses while we tramp about,
-and the Gemini must have the frolic. I promised.”
-
-Tom listened, well pleased. He paused on his way to bed, and while the
-officers were studying Major Montresor’s elaborate map, he pocketed the
-rough sketch of attack Verney had crumpled up and cast under the table.
-
-The boy was by this time more than merely curious. Being intelligent
-and thoughtful, all this war talk interested him, and now for two years
-his father’s letters while in service and the constant discussion
-he heard had rendered familiar the movements of the two armies and
-the changing fortunes of the war. The great value of the map of Sir
-William’s chief engineer had been made plain to him, and his mother’s
-gay suggestion that it would be a nice Christmas gift to Washington
-set the lad to planning all manner of wild schemes as he lay abed. He
-finally gave it up in despair. How could a boy manage to steal a map
-from a man like Verney and then get to Valley Forge? It was no use to
-bother about it, and he went to sleep.
-
-
-II
-
-The boys were up early, overjoyed to see a brilliant, sunshiny day.
-Mrs. Markham provided an ample luncheon, and with Verney and the
-Colonel in front of the sleigh, and the twins and Tom well muffled up
-on the back seat, the party sped away, the snow creaking under the
-runners. The twins talked, laughed, and sang, while Tom sat still,
-thinking.
-
-They paused again and again in Germantown and beyond it to inspect
-positions or to talk to officers. At Chestnut Hill they drove down the
-westward slope and finally came upon the farther picket line below the
-hill. Verney, an engineer officer, thought a field work was needed at
-this point. Accordingly, the two officers got out, leaving their fur
-overcoats in the sleigh, as the air was now warmer and they had to
-tramp some distance through the heavy drifts of snow.
-
-The Colonel put Montresor’s map in the pocket of his fur coat, which he
-folded and laid in the sleigh. Verney also left the Count’s rich sable
-at the feet of the twins.
-
-“We shall be gone half an hour, boys,” said Verney. “Had we not better
-call a corporal from the fire yonder to stand by the horses?”
-
-“Lord, man,” said Grimstone, “they would stand till night. They are
-dead tired. Won’t you want the map?”
-
-“No,” said Verney; “I know it by heart.”
-
-About a hundred yards distant was a great campfire and just ahead of
-them an outlying picket of two soldiers, one on each side above the
-road. Tom sat on the front seat, the reins in his hand. Of a sudden a
-mad idea came into his mind.
-
-The map was in the sleigh. The two officers were far away, tramping
-through the drifts. Before him lay the lonely highway. He would take
-the map to Washington. He forgot the peril of the mad venture now
-tempting him, or gave it but a boy’s passing thought. His summers had
-been spent at a farm near White Marsh. He knew the country well. The
-temptation was too much for him.
-
-A man would have realized the difficulties and the danger for the
-smaller boys. He did not. A boy’s mind is more simple. The risks for
-himself were merely additional temptations.
-
-He stood up, the reins in his hand, and gazed anxiously after the
-retreating forms of the two officers. Then he turned to his brothers.
-
-“Get over in front, Bill; quick, and don’t make a noise.”
-
-There was mischief in the air as Bill at once knew. He climbed over the
-seat and waited.
-
-“Hold fast, Harry,” said Tom. “These horses are going to run away.”
-
-“Oh, let me out,” cried Harry.
-
-“No, hold on, and keep quiet.”
-
-“What fun!” cried Bill. “We are to have a ride all to ourselves.”
-
-“Do you whack the horses, Bill. They’ll go. Wait a moment.” He gave one
-last look around him and ahead.
-
-Beyond the picket the road ran straight for a mile. He had his moment
-of final hesitation, but it was soon over. No one was in sight near
-by, and his eyes roamed over the trackless vacancy of snow-clad spaces
-into which the highway disappeared.
-
-“Are you ready, Bill?” he said, handing him the whip.
-
-“All right,” said Bill, seeing desirable mischief ahead and enjoying
-the prospect.
-
-Harry was less eager, but, ashamed to confess his fears, said bravely,
-“Well, Tom, hurry up.”
-
-“Now,” said Tom, “do you, Bill, hit the horses with the whip, not too
-hard. They’ll go.”
-
-They did go, for Bill, enchanted, had to be stopped. In an instant they
-were off and away at a mad gallop over a much-used road.
-
-“By George!” roared the Colonel. “The horses have run away!”
-
-The soldiers shouted, the picket ran down to the road, too late, and
-furious at this unwonted treatment the horses ran. A mile or more went
-by before the heavy snowdrifts of a less-used road lessened their
-speed. On a hillcrest Tom stood up and looked back.
-
-“Guess we are safe, boys,” he said. “It’s good there were no horses
-about.”
-
-As the sleigh moved more slowly at a trot, Bill said, “It was a
-first-class runaway!” and Harry, reassured, asked if it wasn’t time for
-lunch.
-
-Tom said no, and kept his eye on the road, which by one o’clock became
-hard for the horses, as the drifts were heavier.
-
-At last he pulled up for luncheon and to rest the team. As the twins
-were now pretty cold Tom got out the fur coats.
-
-“There are only two,” said Harry.
-
-“Oh, I’ll fix that,” said Tom. And this was his way: he threw the heavy
-sable coat over the boys’ shoulders, and while Harry put his right hand
-into the right sleeve Bill put his left hand into the left sleeve. When
-Tom had them buttoned up, the two red faces being close together in the
-middle, he called them a double-headed bear and roared with laughter as
-he himself put on the Colonel’s coat.
-
-“Won’t he say things!” said Bill, and they went on, but now only at a
-walk. Harry did not like it, but, ashamed to confess his fears, kept
-quiet.
-
-They met no one. The distant farms were hidden by the snow-laden
-forests. The drifts became heavier. Now they were off the road and now
-on. There were no marks of recent travel. It was Christmas; the farmers
-at home. Both the twins had become silent, Tom more and more anxious
-as he missed his well-known landmarks. At last a dead tree on the road
-let him know that he was about six miles from the Forge. The horses had
-come quite nine miles or more through tiring drifts. Now and then their
-feet balled and Tom had to get down and beat out the packed snow.
-
-Finally the horses could do no more than walk. It was well on to four
-o’clock, but at this he could only guess. He began to be troubled about
-the twins and a little to regret having made his venture. If they came
-to a stop with no house in sight, what could he do? To walk to the
-camp would be even for him hard and for the twins impossible. Again
-he stopped the horses for a rest, a formidable drift lying ahead and
-filling the road.
-
-By this time Bill had lost much of the joy of mischievous adventure.
-He began to think it was time for them to return home, and Harry had
-asked over and over how soon they would go back. Tom at length ceased
-to answer him as it drew toward evening.
-
-There was a new sharpness in the air, a warning to Tom of what night
-would bring. He stood upon the seat and searched the white-clad land
-for a house or the wood opening which might lead to one. He saw no sign
-of habitation to which he could go in person for help. And how could he
-leave his brothers? Even to turn homeward in the narrow road among the
-drifts would have been, as he saw, quite out of the question. What else
-was there but to go on?
-
-Even at this worst minute of his daring adventure the boy could have
-cried at the thought of failure. He felt the map and Verney’s sketch
-under his waistcoat, thought of his father, a prisoner, and then
-cheering up the twins, used the whip on the weary horses, who plunged
-into the great mound of snow.
-
-A trace snapped, the sleigh turned over on its side, the horses kicked,
-broke loose, and fled away down the road and were soon lost to view.
-
-Tom got on his feet and looked for the twins. For a moment they were
-out of sight. Then the huge drift began to shake and their four legs
-were seen kicking above the snow, whence Tom pulled out the two-headed
-bear. Bill laughed. Tom did not. Harry looked his alarm.
-
-All three working hard were able to right the sleigh after beating away
-a part of the drift. After that they climbed in and ate what was left
-of the food, but were not quite so merry as before, while Tom, made
-savage by failure, would neither eat nor talk.
-
-At last he stood up on the seat.
-
-“Shut up, Gemini,” he said, “I hear something. Now,” he said, turning,
-“mind you, if these I hear are British we were run away with. Hush!” He
-heard in the sharp, frosty air the clink of sabres and soon the thud of
-horses’ hoofs in the snow.
-
-
-III
-
-A moment after the runaway boys had heard the sound of horses in the
-snow, a dozen troopers of the Continental army were around them and a
-young officer rode up, while Harry whimpered and said, “Now we’ll be
-killed.”
-
-“Great George!” cried the officer, “but here’s a queer capture. Who the
-deuce are you?”
-
-“I am Tom Markham, sir. My father is Colonel Markham, and these are my
-brothers.”
-
-When Allan McLane saw the two-headed bear he rocked with laughter as he
-sat in his saddle.
-
-“And how did you get here?”
-
-“We ran away with the horses of Colonel Grimstone and Captain Verney,
-and, sir, this was why we ran away.” As he spoke he pulled out
-Montresor’s map and the sketch.
-
-McLane opened the paper. “By George, it’s Montresor’s own map. How did
-you get it?”
-
-“They left it in the sleigh while they went to look at something this
-side of Chestnut Hill. Is it any use, sir?” added Tom anxiously.
-
-“Any use, man! If General Washington doesn’t make you a Colonel for
-this there is no use in man or boy trying to serve an ungrateful
-country.”
-
-Then the twins, feeling neglected, said, “We helped, too.”
-
-“I licked the horses,” cried Bill
-
-“Aren’t you cold, boys?”
-
-“Yes, sir, but we never told Tom.”
-
-“By George, but you are a plucky lad. Take this two-headed animal,
-Sergeant. Mount one of them, coat and all, in front of you, and be
-quick, or we shall have them frozen.”
-
-“The other may have my coat,” said Tom.
-
-“Good,” said the Captain. “You shall wear my own cloak, my lad.”
-
-Seeing Harry’s look of fright and the ready tears, he said: “It’s all
-right, youngsters. Don’t you be afraid. We are all your friends and I
-know your father well.”
-
-Turning to Tom, he said: “This way, my lad. Now, then, give him a knee,
-Sergeant; so, a foot in my stirrup and up you go behind me. Now, then,
-right about by twos, march.”
-
-He went off at a sharp trot with Tom’s arms around his waist.
-
-“Hold on to the belt,” he said.
-
-“May I some day have a boy like you! I enlist you in my troop. You are
-one of Allan McLane’s rangers. Hold hard. The road is better. I am
-going to gallop.”
-
-If ever there was a proud boy it was Tom Markham, for who did not know
-Allan McLane, the terror of outlying pickets, the hero of a dozen
-gallant adventures?
-
-“How are you, Gemini?” cried Tom, looking back.
-
-“Oh, we’re fine!” roared Bill, his teeth chattering with cold.
-
-At the river they were stopped a minute. McLane gave the password,
-“Washington,” and at dusk they tramped over the bridge and were at once
-among General Varney’s brigades.
-
-Bill had ceased to ask questions. Harry, again uneasy at the sight of
-soldiers, wept unseen, and even Tom felt a certain awe at thus facing
-the unknown. He was more at ease as he saw hundreds of ill-clad men
-making merry in a wild snowball fight, shouting and laughing.
-
-They rode in the gloom through dimly seen rows of log huts, and at one
-of them McLane dismounted.
-
-“Take your men in,” he said to a lieutenant. “Report at headquarters
-and say I shall be there in an hour.” He lifted the twins from their
-perches and bade the three enter his hut. “This is my home, boys. Come
-in.”
-
-It was a tiny log cabin with a stone-built chimney and a big fire;
-wood alone was to be had--in plenty. The twins felt better after he
-gave them in turn a teaspoonful or two of whiskey in water, laughed at
-their wry faces as they drank, set Harry on his knee, patted him on the
-back, and bade them make free of his stale biscuit and the potatoes he
-roasted in the hot ashes.
-
-The twins, as they got warm in this pleasant company, talked of their
-adventures. Tom sat in silence.
-
-“What’s the matter?” asked McLane, getting only “Yes” and “no” to his
-queries.
-
-“I am thinking, sir, of my mother. Oh, but she will be troubled. I
-never thought of that when----”
-
-“Be easy, my lad. To-morrow I am going into the city. I shall see her.
-When you can get back, I do not know, but you will see the camp and the
-troops and get your share of a trooper’s fare. When you are warm I want
-you to come with me, Tom.”
-
-“Yes, sir. I am ready now.”
-
-With a word to the twins he followed the Captain through the darkness.
-
-The men were huddled around campfires and were cooking their scanty
-rations of pork and potatoes. Presently McLane paused at the door of a
-small stone house, the only one in the lines. A sentry walked to and
-fro before it.
-
-McLane went in and said to an officer: “Mr. Tilghman, ask the General
-to see me. It is important.”
-
-In a few minutes the officer returned. “This way,” he said.
-
-Tom saw seated before the fire a large man in buff-and-blue uniform. He
-rose, saying, “What news have you, Captain?”
-
-“This lad, sir, brought from the town at some peril this map and
-sketch. It seems to be some one’s notion of an attack.”
-
-The tall officer put the sketch aside, but as he considered the map he
-said, looking up: “This is Major Montresor’s own map and is invaluable.
-What is your name, my boy?”
-
-“I’m a son of Colonel Markham, sir.”
-
-“A most gallant officer. And how, my lad, did you happen to get this
-map?”
-
-Tom was a little disturbed by this authoritative gentleman. Being a
-boy, he had, of course, been left standing, while McLane and the tall
-man were seated. He understood that he must stand until requested to
-sit, but it did add a little to a certain embarrassment, rare for Tom.
-
-“Tell your story, Tom,” said McLane.
-
-“Well, sir, the horses ran away, and the map was in the sleigh.” Tom
-stopped. Action, not speech, was his gift, then and later.
-
-“It is not very clear, but the lad is tired.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Tom, without the least boy desire to describe what was
-a bold and dangerous adventure.
-
-“Never mind your story now. Captain McLane will tell me later. You are
-a brave lad, and if God had given me one like you I should have been
-glad.”
-
-Tom felt somehow that he was well rewarded.
-
-“But,” added the tall man, setting kind, blue eyes on the lad, “this
-will make a great stir, and you will, I fear, suffer for it when you
-reach home.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Tom. “And the twins?”
-
-“Twins? What’s this, McLane?”
-
-“There were three in the business,” said the Captain.
-
-“Indeed. I wish there were as much spirit in the army.”
-
-“After all, sir,” said McLane, “what can they do to a mere boy whose
-horses ran away?”
-
-“But how are they to get to the city?”
-
-“I will see to that, sir, and let Mrs. Markham know.”
-
-“Yes, yes, quite right. Now I must be excused.” He rose and shook hands
-with Tom, and bowed to the officer.
-
-“Come, Tom,” said McLane.
-
-Tom made his best bow and they went out into the cold December night.
-Then Tom asked: “Who was that general?”
-
-“Good gracious, my boy, I thought you knew. That was General
-Washington. He might have thanked you more. But that’s his way.”
-
-“I think he said enough, sir.”
-
-McLane looked at the young face, now elate and smiling and then quiet
-in thought.
-
-The Lieutenant was waiting in the hut when Tom and the Captain returned.
-
-McLane said: “I shall be away for a day or more. Their mother must hear
-news of these lads. I leave them in your care, Lieutenant.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-The Captain said good-bye and was gone for two days.
-
-Meanwhile the story was told by the troopers and soon repeated at the
-campfires, where the men amused themselves mightily with the twins and
-their narratives.
-
-Tom held his tongue, and wandering saw the earthworks, and the ragged
-soldiers making shoes out of old blankets and plaited straw, or cooking
-frozen potatoes and decayed pickled herring, and growling over their
-diet.
-
-He saw the army wagons come in with wood, the worn-out traces replaced
-by grapevines. He saw men on guard relieved every hour for fear of
-frozen feet, which were shoeless, and more than once a sentry standing
-on his hat for relief, with feet double wrapped in bits of blanket. He
-ate of horse beef at their fires or rode proudly at the head of McLane
-troops down the hill and into the lines of General Greene’s brigades.
-
-The twins, too, kept him busy. They climbed with him the slope of Mount
-Misery and saw the bridge over the Schuylkill, and on the posts which
-supported it burned in the names of favorite generals--Washington,
-Putnam, Greene, and Lafayette. Once Harry, in delicious fear, was
-allowed to touch off the evening gun.
-
-At dusk on December twenty-eighth the lads found McLane again in his
-hut.
-
-“Hurrah, boys,” he cried, “I have a bag of flour, four sausages, and an
-aged hen. Let’s make slapjacks. After we have fed I have a story.”
-
-They had been better fed than their soldier hosts, for, if it was not
-much at a time, there was something to be had at every hut or campfire,
-and by this accumulation of forage they kept themselves fairly
-supplied. But sausage and slapjacks and fried chicken! The boys had
-their fill for the first time since they left home. Then they lay on
-the floor before the fire. The twins looked expectant.
-
-“You promised us a story,” said Bill, “when you came back.”
-
-“I shall be as good as my word.”
-
-“I don’t want it to begin with ‘Once on a time,’” said Harry, now quite
-at home. “They always begin that way. The Count told us a story on
-Christmas Eve about an angel and it turned out that it wasn’t a real
-one after all.”
-
-“That was terrible,” said the Captain. “My story is true. Now and then
-I go into Philadelphia to see the troops and where they are.”
-
-“But isn’t that dangerous?” asked Tom, who knew well what was the fate
-of a spy.
-
-“Well, rather. I should be hanged if I were caught, but you see they
-don’t catch me. Two days ago I rode with a trooper to a deserted barn,
-and there I put on a Quaker bonnet, and old woman’s clothes and shoes
-and horn spectacles and with a crutch and a basket of eggs I got of
-a farmer, I walked down Lancaster Pike and hobbled over the floating
-bridge.
-
-“Any one with provisions can get in and have a pass to get out and I
-have been in town several times and am pretty well known as Mrs. Price.
-I sold my eggs, some of them to Sir William Howe’s cook. Then I went to
-your house.”
-
-“Oh, and you saw mother?” cried Harry.
-
-“Shut up,” said Bill; “I want to hear.”
-
-“When I came to your house, I went to the back gate and was let in by a
-black cook----”
-
-“That’s Nancy,” said Bill.
-
-“I said I had eggs for sale. Then she took me to the hall and I sat
-down. There I saw that red-nosed Colonel come in. I was knitting a
-stocking and was pretty busy, with my spectacles on. Your mother asked
-the price of my eggs and where I lived. When the Colonel heard I lived
-near Valley Forge and had had a lift on a farmer’s cart to get to town,
-he asked about the troops here. I told him some fine yarns, and with
-this he went away. I should like to catch him and swap him off for your
-father.”
-
-“Did you see Captain Verney?” asked Tom.
-
-“Yes. I am a bit afraid of him. When he came through the hall I had to
-turn my back because my garter was coming down.
-
-“Your mother and I bargained for my eggs and at last the maid took
-them. Then I whispered, ‘Could I see thee alone?’ She said ‘Yes’ and
-took me into the parlor.
-
-“I said: ‘Mrs. Markham, thou hast no need to be troubled. The boys are
-safe at Valley Forge. The horses ran away.’
-
-“When I said this she cried, and just sat down and said: ‘I have been
-so distressed, but--I knew--Tom--was to be trusted.’”
-
-“Oh!” exclaimed Tom, “did my mother say that?”
-
-“Yes, she said that. I think the less you fellows say at home of the
-runaway the better for you and your friend, Captain Verney. You see,
-the lost map will make a heap of trouble for him--and for you, too, if
-you are not careful.
-
-“Then your mother began to ask questions, but I said I was in a hurry,
-and that on New Year’s Eve she must get a pass for a chaise and man to
-meet you on the west side of the middle ferry about nine at night. I
-said, too, ‘Thy boys may have difficulty about a map. Best to see them
-alone before Brimstone can question them. It was very foolish for them
-to run away with that map.’
-
-“When I spoke of the map she laughed and said: ‘Was that why the horses
-ran away? Oh, Tom, Tom!’
-
-“Then I said: ‘They can’t do anything to your boys.’
-
-“‘No, but Mr. Verney and the Colonel were much blamed and are very
-cross. However, that night I can see the boys alone. The officers--I
-mean the Colonel and Captain Verney--are to take supper with Mr. Penn
-at his house over the river.’
-
-“I asked if it was the place in the woods above the Schuylkill, the
-place he calls The Solitude. I wanted to be sure. Your mother said:
-‘Yes. It is there, I believe.’ It set me to thinking.
-
-“Of a sudden she turned on me and said: ‘You are no Quaker.’
-
-“I laughed and said: ‘No, madam, I am Captain Allan McLane, at your
-service.’
-
-“This did scare her for the risk I ran, but I said there was none. She
-sent you her love. That’s all my story. We found the horses, Tom. I
-shall take one and my Lieutenant the other.”
-
-“I don’t like that,” said Tom.
-
-“Spoils of war, sir; and now get to bed.”
-
-“And the fur coats?” asked Tom, anxiously honest.
-
-“We shall return the Count’s. I shall keep the Colonel’s. Now to bed,
-boys.”
-
-“Thank you, sir,” said Tom.
-
-“That was a fine story,” said Bill. “I like real true stories.”
-
-“And it ends just right,” said Harry.
-
-“Oh, that is not the end,” laughed McLane.
-
-Then the boys were curious and questioned their friend, but he would
-tell them no more.
-
-“To bed,” he cried, and rolled them up in blankets on the cabin floor.
-
-
-IV
-
-The days went by, and on the afternoon of December thirtieth the boys
-rode out of camp, the twins well wrapped up in front of troopers and
-Tom mounted on a troop-horse. The day was pleasant and warm for the
-season, and McLane pushed on at speed down the west side of the river.
-
-It was a long and hard ride and the twins were tired when, nine miles
-from the city, at a friendly farmer’s, pickets were put out and they
-spent the night and were well fed.
-
-They stayed all of that day at the farm, and at seven on New Year’s
-Eve the Sergeant went back to camp, leaving but six men. Presently, to
-Tom’s amazement, McLane came out of the barn with his Lieutenant, both
-dressed as British officers and the men as King’s soldiers. Then they
-mounted as before and rode slowly toward town. Tom, very curious, asked
-questions. McLane laughed: “Only a little fancy ball, Tom, and don’t
-talk. I want to think. Later I hope to send you a dispatch.” Tom was
-puzzled, but rode on in silence.
-
-About nine at night they were just outside of the English pickets, not
-far from the Schuylkill. Here they rode into a wood and dismounted.
-Then McLane on foot led the boys down the Lancaster Road.
-
-“Yonder,” he said, “is a guard. As it is very dark you may get by
-unseen. If not, you must say you are boys from town and have lost your
-way. Not a word of me. Be careful. At the middle ferry bridge you will
-find a chaise and your man-servant. Now be silent and careful and
-good-bye, Colonel Markham.”
-
-Full of the boy delight in an adventure so real, Tom went on in the
-darkness with the twins. He saw against the sky a guard on a little
-hillock above the road. A thicket of briers lined the wayside.
-
-Tom halted and whispered: “We have got to creep, Gemini, and play
-bears. No noise, and go slow.”
-
-With this the three went down on their hands and knees in the snow,
-and, Tom leading, crept by the sentry on the bank, who was stamping and
-beating his breast to keep warm.
-
-“Now,” said Tom, “for a run to get warmed up”; and, unseen, they ran
-through the darkness on the well-trodden snow of the mid-pike.
-
-They soon found the chaise and their servant. He had a pass so that
-they easily went by the guard and after a short drive were at home and
-in their mother’s arms.
-
-When the boys left him, McLane, a little anxious, looked after them for
-a time and returned to his men. They tied their horses in the wood
-and, leaving a man to care for them, one by one crawled through the
-thin line of pickets, who were much occupied in keeping themselves warm.
-
-It was very dark, and again the snow was falling and a fierce wind
-blowing. At last the men came together at a low whistle from McLane.
-
-They were now close to the house where, in the wood above the
-Schuylkill, Mr. Penn was pleased to entertain his friends. It was a
-quaint little house and still stands to-day in the Zoological Gardens.
-There is a small entrance hall, a winding stair, and on the left a
-descent to a long underground passage ending in two large, cool-storage
-rooms. One large chamber on the first floor looks eastward over the
-river.
-
-McLane knew it all well. It was now long after nine and very dark. The
-partisan officer was safe between the pickets he had passed and those
-along the west shore far below the house.
-
-Leaving his men near the door he went around the house. Then,
-approaching a window, he cautiously looked into the room. A dozen
-candles were on the table, and many more in sconces on the wall.
-
-At the table sat Mr. Galloway, the British superintendent of police, a
-staunch Tory, Mr. Penn, Colonel Grimstone, and Captain Verney. There
-were several empty chairs. Supper was over. There were empty bottles on
-the table and a big bowl of punch.
-
-The Colonel had removed his stiff regulation stock. Galloway had
-unbuttoned his embroidered waistcoat. Verney was looking at his watch.
-
-“A nice party,” said McLane. “Will it incline to be hospitable?”
-
-Then he returned to the front.
-
-The Lieutenant said: “Their horses are in the stable, the grooms asleep
-beside a fireplace.”
-
-A man was put at each window, two left at the door, and, it being
-now near to ten, McLane quietly entered the hall, and then, with his
-Lieutenant, appeared in the supper-room. Mr. Penn arose.
-
-“Good-evening, sir,” said McLane. “Lieutenant Hand and I have had a
-long ride, and seeing your lights took the liberty----”
-
-“Oh, most welcome--as are all gentleman of His Majesty’s service. Sit
-down, sir. Colonel Grimstone, you may know these officers.”
-
-“Never saw them in all my life,” said the Colonel gruffly.
-
-Captain Verney rose and bowed.
-
-“I beg pardon,” he said, “I did not catch your name.”
-
-“Captain Head, at your service.”
-
-“That’s queer,” said Grimstone; “Head and Hand.”
-
-“Sit down,” said the host. “Oh, by George, the servants have gone
-and--Verney, you are the youngest and you know the way, would you fetch
-some wine for us from the cellar?”
-
-McLane said a word to his Lieutenant, who rose, apologizing. “I want
-to see to the horses. Be back in a moment.”
-
-In the hall he saw Verney take a lantern and go down to the cellar. The
-Lieutenant waited a moment, shot bolt and lock behind the Captain, and,
-returning, sat down by Galloway.
-
-“Pray throw off your cloaks, gentlemen,” said Penn. “Will you drink,
-Captain Head?”
-
-McLane cast his cloak back from his left shoulder and set a hand on his
-pistols.
-
-“I never drink while on duty, Mr. Penn. You must hold me excused.”
-
-“As you please, sir,” answered Penn.
-
-“What’s your regiment?” inquired Grimstone in a thick voice.
-
-“McLane’s Horse! And if a man moves there will be two dead.” For a
-pistol was at the forehead of both the Colonel and Galloway.
-
-They were startled, but had wit enough to understand a very unpleasant
-situation.
-
-“Don’t do that!” cried Grimstone. Galloway sat as still and as pale as
-a statue.
-
-“I am sorry, Mr. Penn, to disturb you,” said McLane; “but as I have
-neither eaten of your salt nor drunk at your board, you will pardon me.
-Neither do I want you or Mr. Galloway,” he continued, “if you will say,
-on your honor, that you will not leave this room nor give the alarm for
-half an hour.”
-
-Penn said: “Needs must. You know the proverb, Captain McLane.”
-
-Galloway said: “Oh, I swear.”
-
-“Kindly put your watch on the table, Mr. Penn. Ten, I see. Captain
-Verney is locked in the cellar. My regards to him. Come, Colonel, and
-on the honor of a gentleman if you speak or resist I shall kill you.
-Good-night, Mr. Penn.”
-
-The Colonel rose with his captor and went out.
-
-“Sergeant, put this gentleman between two men and call in the rest. If
-he ventures to give the alarm shoot him.”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Good Heavens!” said Penn to Galloway. “A nice ending for a supper.
-That fellow missed Sir William Howe by only ten minutes.”
-
-“Hark! What was that?” said Galloway. Distant shots rang sharp through
-the cold night air.
-
-“They have had trouble with the pickets.”
-
-“Hope they caught them,” said Galloway.
-
-Penn returned: “He is one of the kind that catches and is never
-caught.” Then, as the noise of a great thumping and pounding fell on
-his ears, he added: “Just listen to Verney!” And he fell back in his
-chair, convulsed with laughter. “No, don’t move, Galloway. It wants
-fourteen minutes of the half-hour. Sir William was in luck.”
-
-A little later the amazed and disgusted Verney heard the story. “He
-did not want me, I suppose.” He knew later that, because of being a
-gentleman and courteously kind to Tom’s mother, McLane was pleased to
-forget him.
-
-The Colonel failed to appear at home that night. Verney was late in
-returning, and only at breakfast did Mrs. Markham and the boys, to
-their relief, and greatly to Tom’s delight, learn of the capture of
-their unmannerly guest.
-
-Then the Captain, still a little cross, turned on Tom.
-
-“Now, sir,” he asked, “did you run away with the sleigh or the sleigh
-with you?”
-
-The Count, much amused, listened.
-
-Tom was cornered. Very red in the face, he replied: “The horses ran
-away with both, sir.”
-
-“I may assure Sir William that the horses ran away?”
-
-Tom felt that he was well within the boundary of truth as he said,
-“Yes. They ran like everything. We upset, and Captain McLane found us
-and took us to Valley Forge.”
-
-“And what, sir, became of the map we left in the sleigh?”
-
-Tom wriggled.
-
-“I want an answer.”
-
-“General Washington has it.”
-
-“Did you give it to him?”
-
-“No, sir. Captain McLane gave it to him.”
-
-“I think,” remarked the Count, “that you had better stop here.”
-
-That was also Tom’s opinion.
-
-“The map was in the coat-pocket, I remember.”
-
-“Yes, sir. I was to tell Count Einstein, with Captain McLane’s
-compliments, that his coat is at Farmer Nixon’s, near the Cross Keys
-Tavern. He said you could easily get it.”
-
-The Count expressed his pleasure, and Verney asked no further questions.
-
-A few days later, just before supper, Tom burst into the room with the
-twins after him.
-
-“He’s got a letter!” cried Bill.
-
-“He won’t let us see it!” cried Harry.
-
-They fell on Tom and rolled in wild laughter on the floor.
-
-“This is too much,” said Mrs. Markham.
-
-Verney rose, and with two or three mild kicks separated the fighting,
-laughing tangle of legs and arms.
-
-Then he caught the elder boy by the collar and said: “Stand up on your
-hind legs, Tom, and tell me what this row is about.”
-
-“He’s got a letter,” said Bill, “a Quaker man, a farmer, left it; and
-he won’t let us see it till mother reads it.”
-
-“Where is it?” said Verney.
-
-“Here, sir. You’re choking me. You may read it. There’s a message for
-you.”
-
-Captain Verney looked at the address and read, laughing, “This with
-haste.”
-
-“With your permission, madam,” he said; then he read aloud:
-
-“Valley Forge, January 7, 1778.
-
-“To Colonel Thomas Markham, Jr., late of Captain Allan McLane’s
-Company, Continental Line----”
-
-“That’s me!” said Tom.
-
-“Indeed!” He turned to the contents.
-
- DEAR COLONEL: I beg to report that after leaving you on the road with
- Gemini I had the pleasure of Capturing Colonel Gravestone, now here
- on parole and a low diet. He says his name is Grimstone, but what can
- be grimmer than Gravestone, and grim he is and grave. We shall swap
- him off for Colonel Markham.
-
- My compliments to Captain the Honorable John Verney. Having been a
- kind and courteous guest I forgot him. It was against the rules of
- the service, but I trust, sir, you will not have me court-martialed.
- The map found in the coat proves useful. My thanks to Major Montresor.
-
- Remember me to your mother.
-
- I have the honor to be your very obedient humble servant and
- brother-officer.
-
- ALLAN McLANE.
-
- Postscript--I promised you an ending to my story, and here it is.
-
-“Well, of all the impertinent things!” cried Verney; “but, my dear
-Count, I should like to see ‘Gravestone’ among these gentlemen, and, on
-my word, I should like to meet this brave and merry officer.”
-
-The Colonel spent two months and more on parole at Valley Forge. He
-lost four stone and became meek.
-
-In the spring he was exchanged for a better man, Colonel Markham, but
-no amount of food, as he swore, ever enabled him to make up for the
-scant fare he had had in the camp of the Continentals.
-
-The twins and Tom lived to enjoy many Christmas Days, but none like
-that they spent with the army at Valley Forge in the hard winter of
-1777-8.
-
-
-
-
-A TEMPEST IN A BIG TEA-POT[N]
-
-By SAMUEL ADAMS DRAKE
-
- About the Boston Tea-party and the Indians who brewed the tea.
-
-
-Chance has led us to the spot on which the house of Governor Winthrop
-stands. But by the side of it, in a crowded neighborhood, is a brick
-church with a fine and lofty steeple pricking the frosty air of a
-December afternoon. There is a dense crowd of men, with a sprinkling of
-women, arguing and gesticulating about the door, but the interior is so
-choked up with people that we can scarcely elbow our way in. The men’s
-faces, we notice, are flushed and excited, and here is an angry buzz
-of half-suppressed voices. Evidently something out of the common has
-brought these people here. What can it be?
-
-Ah! they are all talking about tea.
-
-“You can lead a horse to water but you can’t make him drink,” one says,
-very significantly, to his neighbor.
-
-“Aye, and they can send us tea but can’t make us drink,” responds his
-neighbor.
-
-“Let them take it back to England, then, and peddle it out there,”
-ejaculates a third. “We will not have it forced down our throats,” he
-adds.
-
-“What sort of a drink would tea and salt water make?” suggests a man
-who is evidently losing patience; for it has grown dark, and the lamps
-shed a dim light throughout the unquiet crowd.
-
-“Good for John Rowe!” shout the bystanders approvingly, and as his
-words pass from mouth to mouth, the people laugh and clap.
-
-Presently a man of middle age speaks. At his first words every voice
-is hushed. Every eye is turned upon him. In a grave and steady voice
-he tells the people that their purpose to send the tea-ships home to
-England, with their cargoes untouched, has been thwarted by Governor
-Hutchinson, who refuses to give the vessels the pass, without which
-they cannot sail. “And now,” concludes this same grave and earnest
-voice, to which all eagerly listen, “_this meeting_ can do nothing more
-to save the country.”
-
-There is a moment’s silence--a moment of keen disappointment, an
-ominous silence.
-
-Then some one in the gallery cries out, in a ringing voice, “Boston
-Harbor a tea-pot to-night! Hurrah for Griffin’s Wharf!”
-
-Instantly, before the people are aware what is intended, an Indian
-war-whoop pierces the air; and, starting at the signal, no one seems
-to know whence or how, half a hundred men, having their faces smeared
-with soot, and disguised as Indian warriors, brandishing hatchets and
-shouting as they run, pour through Milk Street, followed by the crowd,
-turn down to Griffin’s Wharf, where the tea-ships lie, clamber on
-board, take off the hatches in a hurry, and while some pass up the
-chests from the hold others smash and pitch them overboard. Crash go
-the hatchets, splash goes the tea. Splash! splash! Every one works for
-dear life, earnest and determined.
-
-Never were ships more quickly unloaded. The frightened captains and
-crews were told to go below and stay there if they would not be harmed.
-They obeyed. No one but the fishes drank that tea.
-
-After finishing their work the lads who had been making a tea-pot of
-Boston Harbor marched gaily back to town to the music of a fife. While
-on their way they passed by the residence of Mad Montagu, the British
-admiral who commanded all the fleet of war-ships then lying at anchor
-within gunshot of the town. The admiral threw up his window, thrust out
-his head, and halloed:
-
-“Well, boys, you have had a fine, pleasant evening for your Indian
-caper, haven’t you? But mind, you’ve got to pay the fiddler yet!”
-
-“Oh, never mind, Squire!” shouted Pitts, the leader. “Just come out
-here, if you please, and we’ll settle the bill in two minutes.”
-
-The admiral shut his window in a hurry, and the tea-party, with a laugh
-for the admiral, marched on. He was fond of a fight, but thought it
-best to decline this invitation.
-
-
-
-
-HOW THE WARNING WAS GIVEN[O]
-
-By MABEL NELSON THURSTON
-
- In this story an old-fashioned “courting-stick” in the hands of a
- quick-witted girl is the means of saving patriot lives and ammunition.
-
-
-The time was the year of Lexington and Concord, and the place, a little
-village not many miles away. Already men’s faces were stern and women’s
-eyes dim with sorrow; only the little children played on and knew no
-difference.
-
-Dolly Pearson scorned the name of child, yet the thought of war brought
-to her only a sense of exhilaration. She had no father or brother to
-lose; but neither had Elizabeth who had not smiled these three months.
-Why? John Thurlow had said no word of enlisting. A shame it was,
-too--thought Dolly--and he a strong man with naught to bind him!
-
-“Betty,” said Dolly, who was helping her sister to tidy the best room,
-“why does not John enlist? There, ’tis said now--I just had to! I’ve
-been waiting and waiting because I feared to hurt you by the question!”
-
-Elizabeth turned her quiet face to the saucy one, and smiled a little
-sadly down at the girl. “John will go soon,” she said. “He is but
-tarrying till the time be ripe.”
-
-“Well, right glad am I to know it!” cried Dolly. “I always liked
-John Thurlow, but had he been a coward----” She stopped, amazed at
-Elizabeth’s look.
-
-“Never name coward and John Thurlow in the same breath again!” she
-said, vehemently, with wrathful face.
-
-Dolly ran over to her sister repentantly. “Betty, I meant nothing. I
-could not understand his tarrying, that was all. It is because he is
-going that you have looked so sober lately.”
-
-“Yes,” said Elizabeth, burying her face in her blue apron. Dolly
-stared. She never cried herself, and never had she seen her sister cry,
-save when their father died. Something of the solemn feeling she had
-then had now silenced her, and she stood smoothing Elizabeth’s hand
-until the girl looked up.
-
-“There, Dolly, get to work,” she said, “and be glad you are not old
-enough to understand.”
-
-Dolly went pouting to her work--at fourteen she didn’t like being
-thought young! Presently something diverted her thoughts. It was a
-hollow rod, eight feet long and an inch in diameter, with a queer
-mouth and ear-piece at each end--an old-time courting-stick that had
-belonged to her grandmother. Dolly held it across to Elizabeth, her
-face dimpling with mischief.
-
-“Try it, Betty!” she pleaded. “I want to see if it sounds as well as
-ever.”
-
-Elizabeth held it to her ear, while Dolly’s saucy lips touched the
-other end. “Betty,” she whispered, “are you not glad that you and John
-don’t have to use this stick?” Elizabeth dropped it impatiently.
-
-“You heard,” Dolly said innocently. “That was what I desired to know.
-But you might have said something to me!”
-
-When Elizabeth’s color came and went, as now, there was no girl
-like her in the village. Indeed, at all times she was prettiest,
-thought loyal Dolly, studying her next day, as they all walked to
-meeting--Elizabeth in a sprigged muslin and a bonnet with rose-colored
-ribbons. How beautiful she looked as she went to the singers’ seats!
-John Thurlow sat there, too.
-
-By turning a little in the pew, Dolly could see the singers’ seats, and
-half the congregation as well. So of course she saw Eunice Winter come
-in, and with her a strange young man, who soon perceived the pretty
-face under the rose-colored ribbons, and glanced at it frequently.
-
-Sometimes Dolly changed her position and studied the queer old pulpit,
-with its winding stairs and the roofing overhead. There was a loft in
-the roof, and squirrels and birds came in there. Suddenly Dolly gave a
-start, and a look of delight shone in her eyes. After that she heard
-not even the Parson’s “Finally,” and only came to herself when the
-people rose to depart. Then she pulled her sister’s dress.
-
-“Betty, do hasten!” she pleaded. “I have something to tell you.”
-
-Elizabeth glanced down at the excited face.
-
-“What is it, Dolly?” she asked, anxiety sharpening her quiet voice.
-
-“Come,” urged Dolly, “away from the others! I _must_ tell you!”
-
-Elizabeth followed her sister to a corner of the meeting-house yard,
-where they were alone.
-
-“What is it, Dolly?” Betty asked again, shaken out of her usual calm.
-
-Dolly leaned forward. “Tell John Thurlow I know where his muskets are,”
-she said, “and if they be not careful, others will know it, too!”
-
-Elizabeth caught the girl’s hand tightly.
-
-“How knew you that, Dolly?” she asked, a great fear choking her. Dolly
-could be trusted, but many Royalists in the neighborhood were seeking
-just this knowledge!
-
-“Oh,” said Dolly, delighted at the importance of her discovery, “I saw
-something gleaming through a crack in the roofing. I thought at first
-’twas the sunlight, but presently I noted some dust in the pew. I put
-my hand down and picked some up and tasted it, and although I be ‘so
-young,’ I know powder. Why didn’t you tell me? I’d have died sooner
-than betray it!” Her eyes were flashing through tears.
-
-“I know it, little sister,” said Elizabeth. “I would trust you as soon
-as myself. But do you not see it would be foolish to take more than
-were necessary into the secret?”
-
-“Ye-es,” admitted Dolly reluctantly, and then with the old mischievous
-smile, she added: “Betty, was it necessary for you to know it?”
-
-“You have a sadly undisciplined tongue, Dolly,” said Betty, coloring.
-
-“But you do not fear to trust me,” said Dolly as they walked slowly
-back across the yard. Then the undisciplined tongue reasserted itself.
-
-“Did you note the fine gallant Eunice Winter had to-day?” she asked.
-
-“I saw there was a stranger.”
-
-“He scarce took his eyes from a bonnet with rose-colored ribbons. And
-he is much finer-seeming than John Thurlow, Betty!”
-
-“Now, Dolly, you’re going too far,” said Elizabeth sternly. “What would
-mother say? It is downright wicked to have such thoughts in the house
-of God.”
-
-“Don’t get cross,” pleaded Dolly coaxingly. “I paid heed to the parson,
-and I can tell you the text. And for the other matter, time will show
-if I be wrong,” and with a saucy nod she broke away and joined her
-mother.
-
-Time did show. Whatever might be the fault of Mistress Dolly’s tongue,
-her eyes were seldom mistaken. Before a week was over the strange
-gentleman had met Elizabeth and he soon fell into the habit of calling
-almost daily. His name was Henry Robbins, and he was Eunice Winter’s
-cousin, visiting there for a month, he said.
-
-All Dolly’s admiration for him vanished on the day she suspected he was
-a Royalist. He had never avowed it, but the girl detected a look in his
-eyes when she spoke of Lexington that brought her to her feet in great
-excitement.
-
-“I believe you’re a Royalist!” she exclaimed, with flashing eyes. “If
-not, why are you tarrying here when the need is so sore? I think a man
-who tarries unconcerned is a coward!”
-
-“Dolly!” remonstrated Elizabeth.
-
-“I do,” answered Dolly angrily. “And I hate cowards! You can excuse me
-if you will, Betty, but I would say it all over again to the king’s
-face!” and she ran out of the room.
-
-The young man looked a little disturbed.
-
-“I pray you overlook the child’s quick tongue,” Elizabeth said. “She is
-an eager little rebel, and loses control of herself.”
-
-“Oh, I am not troubled by a child’s idle talk,” he said. “I admire her
-spirit. Yet I feel I scarce deserve the lash of her words.”
-
-“I judge no man who follows his conscience. God will direct the right,”
-said Elizabeth gently.
-
-With that he had to be content. Yet as he walked down the road he
-switched impatiently at the daisies beside it, and felt ill-satisfied
-with the part he was playing. To live among these people solely to
-discover their preparations for war revolted him, and he did so only at
-the positive order of his general.
-
-But as days went on, he began to despair. No slightest clue could he
-get of the whereabouts of the stores he knew were being collected. Then
-one day, as he was about to return to Boston, a scrap of paper was
-slipped into his hand by a boy, who immediately scampered away. Captain
-Robbins was standing with a group of men at the tavern waiting for the
-mail-coach, and he carelessly untwisted and read the note:
-
- Search the loft of the meeting-house. A servant of his majesty.
-
-A quick glow came into the young man’s face. John Thurlow was standing
-near and looked at him a little curiously. “Good news, judging from
-your face,” said John.
-
-“Aye, the best,” the Royalist said slowly. And never did John Thurlow
-forget the curious tone and look of the Tory.
-
-It was no difficult matter to examine the loft, which was found
-nearly full of arms and powder. But Robbins did not choose to seize
-the munitions; he hoped to convict Thurlow, at least, if none of the
-others. He set spies on the church, meaning to capture any of the
-king’s enemies who might attempt to take away arms.
-
-Then another note came to him:
-
- On Monday next there will be a midnight meeting in the loft. It might
- interest the captain to attend.
-
-It was Saturday afternoon then. One of the Royalists happened to be
-passing the house; the captain called him, and the two young men swung
-into step down the road to the meeting-house. Dolly Pearson stood
-watching the two as they walked quickly away; then some suspicion came
-to her from their gestures. She tried to dismiss it as foolish, but
-tried in vain.
-
-Suddenly she started off on a run across the fields. When she reached
-the meeting-house her breath was coming in heavy gasps. The building
-was open for one of its rare sweepings, but no one was in sight just
-then. The girl ran in and up the winding stairs and crouched down
-behind the pulpit, and lay there listening and trying to still the
-noisy beating of her heart.
-
-It seemed ages that she crouched there; perhaps she had been
-mistaken--they might not have been coming here--then she started at the
-sound of voices. She dared not peer out. She held herself rigid and
-listened--listened for the life of John Thurlow whom Elizabeth loved.
-
-“Forty muskets and seven kegs of powder,” said one voice.
-
-“Aye, and Thurlow and his recruits to take all on Monday night?”
-
-“Hist!” said the captain, looking round uneasily. “Walls have ears.
-Monday at midnight you will have a strong band ready. We will surround
-the meeting-house, and then----”
-
-“Down with the rebels! And the pay, captain?”
-
-“Trust His Majesty for that. You can have my own share, too. Success is
-enough for me.”
-
-“That and a fair field to Betty Pearson’s favor,” laughed the other.
-“You are not the only one that would like to see John Thurlow out of
-the way!”
-
-“Then shall I earn their gratitude,” answered Robbins.
-
-Dolly was trembling, and it did not seem as if she could control
-herself much longer; but soon they went away. Then she had to rest long
-in one of the pews to quiet her nerves.
-
-“What ails you, Dolly?” her mother exclaimed, when she saw her. “You
-look too ill to stand! You ought to go straight to bed while I brew
-some herbs for you.”
-
-“Oh, mother, I can’t go to bed,” said Dolly. “I must see John!”
-
-“Would I were John!” said a mocking voice.
-
-Dolly’s heart sank within her. She had not noticed the captain as she
-entered. With an effort she summoned one of her saucy smiles.
-
-“Good-even, Mr. Robbins--this is an unexpected pleasure! You have not
-been here for so long--why, not since yesterday!”
-
-“Come and entertain me, since I please you so much,” laughed the
-captain.
-
-“No,” said Dolly, “it would not be proper to show it. I prefer to talk
-to Betty.”
-
-“And I prefer you should talk to me,” said the captain, and there was
-a note in his voice that startled Dolly. She imagined that she was
-suspected. The color had come back to her face now, and her eyes were
-blazing. Somehow--how, she had not the least idea--she must warn John
-to-night. To-morrow would be too late, for the captain was on his guard.
-
-She leaned back in a corner of the big settle, with a saucy laugh
-answered his teasing, and gradually regained control of herself. Yet
-all her will could not keep the color from flying to her face when she
-heard John’s step. She bent down and played with the kitten at her feet.
-
-“Miss Dolly was desiring your presence, Mr. Thurlow,” said the captain.
-
-“Oh,” said Dolly carelessly, “never mind, John. That was an hour ago.”
-
-Thurlow smiled good-humoredly at her, knowing her to be whimsical. She
-sat wondering how she could get the message to him. Write it? Even
-could she do so unobserved she would have no opportunity to give it to
-him; of that she was certain. Equally sure was she that she would not
-be allowed to leave the room alone.
-
-Suddenly a thought came to her and filled her with glee. “Oh, Mr.
-Robbins!” she cried. “Have you ever seen our courting-stick?”
-
-“Courting-stick? What might that be?”
-
-“I’ll show you,” she answered, starting up. “’Tis in the best room.”
-
-“Nay, let me get it for you,” he said, rising.
-
-“How can you, if you know it not when you see it?” she retorted. “But
-you may come, too.” She felt a wicked delight in hearing the captain’s
-muttered exclamations as he followed her into the dim best room,
-stumbling over table and chairs on the way.
-
-“Did you hurt yourself, Mr. Robbins?” she exclaimed, in a tone of
-commiseration. “Trouble yourself no more; I have the rod. Here, John,”
-she added, when they had returned, “take the other end while I show Mr.
-Robbins how our grandfathers courted.”
-
-John took the rod and Dolly put her lips to her own end. “John,” she
-whispered, “betray no surprise for your life! Mr. Robbins knows about
-the meeting-house loft, and is to lead a band of men to take you Monday
-night. Pretend you cannot hear this well.”
-
-John looked up in apparent perplexity. “The old rod is out of use,” he
-said. “Speak louder, Dolly.”
-
-The captain, with a suspicious look, pressed nearer.
-
-“John,” she called, “are you sorry courting-sticks are out of fashion?”
-
-“A chilly custom, truly,” said the captain. “Don’t you think, Miss
-Dolly, it was rather hard on the happy pair?”
-
-“Why, no,” said Dolly. “Take the other end, Mr. Robbins, and see the
-convenience of it.”
-
-The captain took John’s place, but he could not catch the faint whisper.
-
-“I could not hear the words,” he said.
-
-“Oh, I’ll try again,” said Dolly obligingly.
-
-This time the captain turned away with an amused laugh. “Cool heart
-that could carry on love-making at such a length,” he said. “It is a
-rare curiosity, though. Shall I carry it back, Miss Dolly?”
-
-“It needs not to be put away now,” Elizabeth said, and Dolly had to
-give up the pleasure of making the captain stumble again in the dark.
-
-As the clock struck nine John rose, and the captain with him. Dolly
-laughed as away through the darkness strode the two men whose fortunes
-had changed strangely since they trod the same road a couple of hours
-before.
-
-Three hours later a strange party in the meeting-house silently lowered
-the powder casks and muskets and carried them to carts outside. When
-morning broke the munitions were stored again five miles away. The men
-were in their usual places when the Sabbath service began.
-
-John gave one quick look at Dolly, and she was satisfied. He did not
-go near her after the service, but one and another of the men came and
-spoke to her. They said no word of why they spoke, but she knew, and
-her heart swelled with pride as she counted the bravest of the place
-among the number. They were true patriots, then! She never would doubt
-them again, never!
-
-The next night Captain Robbins met his men near the church. Nothing was
-stirring. The captain began to look black.
-
-One of the men entered through a window and flung the door open. They
-strode into the empty room. The noise of their footsteps seemed to
-echo and re-echo. All was solemnity of silence. In spite of themselves,
-they were awed by the time and the place.
-
-“At least,” said Captain Robbins hoarsely, “we will take the stores.”
-He climbed eagerly to the loft ahead of the others. “Your light,
-Wilson,” he called.
-
-The man handed it up and Robbins held it high above his head. A few
-startled swallows whirred around him and a mouse ran out of some straw
-on the floor. But that was all.
-
-There were two visitors at the Pearsons’ the next day. One was the
-captain who called to say farewell. His holiday was up, he said, and
-he must go back to Boston. Dolly watched him as he rode away. Once he
-turned and waved to her. “Good-bye, my little enemy,” he called.
-
-The next one was John Thurlow. He caught Dolly’s hands in his strong
-grip and looked down at her so that she colored and tried to get away.
-
-“Why, Dolly!” said Elizabeth, in surprise.
-
-“Has she not told you?” asked John. “She is the bravest little maid I
-ever saw. I know not, even now, how much her quick wit has saved.”
-
-“No,” said Dolly, looking up, her mischief as usual conquering her
-confusion. “I am naught but a little rebel firebrand--Mr. Robbins said
-so. And Mr. Robbins knows everything except the use of courting-sticks!”
-
-She broke away and ran quickly down the lane. The air was full of soft
-summer noises, and the leaves and blossoms were stirring and flashing
-and playing in the sunlight, and the day was golden--golden! She drew a
-long breath of content. She was so happy to be alive and to have helped
-a little.
-
-“For I always shall be a rebel as long as I live,” she declared.
-
-
-
-
-SUSAN TONGS[P]
-
-By ETHEL PARTON
-
- The author says of Susan that she “was a sociable soul, if
- occasionally a bit difficult”--and we welcome her to our gathering of
- patriotic heroes and heroines.
-
-
-The lower half-door of the Thurrell house side porch was closed because
-Susan Tong’s ball of yarn, which was always slipping from her vast and
-rotund knees, had a way of hopping down the steps if the door were left
-open. Because the garden-path sloped, the ball, if once started, would
-roll far beyond even the longest reach of the odd implement with twin
-handles at one end, flat nippers at the other, and a middle length of
-extensible iron latticework, which had earned Susan, properly the Widow
-Thurrell, the name by which she was commonly known. But the upper half
-of the broad, green-painted door was set wide to the streaming sunshine
-of a mild October afternoon of 1776.
-
-Just within the door showed the chintz back, gay with red-patterned
-palm-leaves, of the huge armchair in which sat Susan Tongs herself, her
-smooth bands of red hair just showing beneath her cap, her small, light
-eyes lifted from her work to the golden autumnal landscape, her triple
-chin descending upon a snowy amplitude of kerchief, and a pair of long
-steel needles clicking in her two fat hands.
-
-Susan possessed two distinctions: she was the fattest person in
-the village, and she was the only fat person in it who had not an
-easy-going disposition. Too unwieldy for many years past to move about
-upon her little feet and weak ankles without the assistance of her
-crutch-handled staff, her utmost exertion was to cross the road to the
-meeting-house on Sundays; week-days she spent in her chair, directing
-the household tasks of her pretty niece, Tamsine, who did not have a
-very easy life of it.
-
-Susan Thurrell, everybody said, had been notably brisk and light of
-foot in her youth, and the burden of flesh which had come upon her in
-later life was particularly unwelcome, and far from being accompanied
-by a corresponding increase in mental grace. She was certainly very
-exacting.
-
-Just what her weight was no one knew; her own guess was “nigh about two
-hundred and fifty,” but there were many who vowed it was three hundred
-if it was a pound.
-
-A mottled hen which had somehow got into the garden patch caught
-Susan’s eye, and a shadow of anger overcast her wide face. The creature
-was clucking its way, followed by a lone chicken, directly toward her
-favorite bed of sweet herbs. She shouted a husky “Shoo,” but without
-effect; then she caught up her “lazy man’s tongs,” which lay near.
-
-Quickly compressing the handles, she shot the tip out to its farthest
-extent and picked up with it a crust of bread fallen from the
-dinner-table and overlooked, for Tamsey, the orderly caretaker, had
-been called away in haste that day to a sick neighbor. This crust she
-flung at the invader. The hen squawked and ran, but presently returned
-to peck cheerfully at the missile.
-
-Still wheezing from the exertion of a rapid movement, Susan uttered a
-grunt of disgust, and with lazy-tongs still in hand glanced about for
-something else to throw. As she turned to look behind her chair she
-saw, at the far end of the room, leaning against the mantelpiece to
-which he seemed to cling for support, a young man, scarcely more than a
-boy, very pale and breathing heavily, and with a queerly mingled look
-of courage and terror in his eyes.
-
-“Othniel Purdie!” she cried. “What are you doing in my kitchen?”
-
-He only panted, and she stared at him in amazement fast deepening to
-suspicion.
-
-“Why ain’t you with General Washington?” she demanded. “What are you
-back here in Norley for? Folks said you’d run away to join the army.
-Don’t you know there’s a British camp at the other end of the town, and
-British officers quartered at Parson Hackett’s and Marchant Cole’s?
-What are you here for?--and looking scared as a hunted rabbit! I never
-liked you, and I won’t have you hanging around my niece, Tamsey; but I
-do hope to Providence you’ve not deserted. I couldn’t bear to think
-any Norley boy would do that. Speak up, can’t you? What are you here
-for?”
-
-“I haven’t deserted,” the young fellow managed to say, “and I know well
-enough the place is full of redcoats. They want me, and I’m afraid
-they’ll get me, and it’s all up if they do.”
-
-“Want you? What for?” She looked at him again, and between her heavy
-cheeks and the overhanging roll of her eyebrows a gleam of fiery
-intelligence came into her two little gray-blue eyes, small and hard
-and wise, like an elephant’s.
-
-“Where’s your uniform? What are you holding to the front of your shirt
-for? Have you papers there? Despatches? Are you trying to steal through
-the lines? That’s the same as spying, isn’t it? Good mercy, you’ll be
-hanged; of course you will!”
-
-He had not needed to answer any of her quick questions in words; she
-took the answer from his eyes without waiting, and scolded on: “And I
-suppose you stopped here for a sight of Tamsey, but she’s away and you
-won’t see her, and glad I am of that. The zanies boys are! You’d better
-slip away quick and hide till dark; there’s a place in the shed loft
-where nobody----”
-
-He interrupted her. “I can’t get there. I can’t go any farther. I’ve
-sprained my ankle and I fainted twice getting here the back way from
-Royd’s wood-lot, where I dodged them and they lost me. But they haven’t
-given it up, and I heard them say they’d search every house in the
-village. But this was the only place I could get away to, and so I
-came. I can’t go any farther; I’ll faint again if I try. I thought
-maybe Tamsey’d hide me. I know you don’t like me, Mrs. Thurrell, but I
-thought you’d let her, when it was life and death--and there are the
-papers----”
-
-“Give them to me,” said Susan.
-
-“Here--I know you’ll take good care of them, at any rate, and you’ll
-send them on by a safe hand if I’m taken, won’t you, Mrs. Thurrell?”
-
-“Mmm!” grunted Susan. “Twist them up and toss them in the woodbox there
-with the kindlings--it’s in plain sight and won’t be thought of. Now
-we’ve got to hurry--hurry--hurry, if we’re going to save that neck of
-yours; and, land, what a poor pair we are for hurrying!”
-
-Laughing fiercely, and gripping the arms of her seat, Susan had risen
-painfully as she talked, and now, supporting herself on her staff,
-stood up and shoved the great chair a little to one side. A trap-door
-showed in the floor where it had stood, and she explained quickly that
-the kitchen had been a later addition to the house; that the main
-cellar did not extend beneath it, but that there was below a small,
-square pit for storage, large enough to conceal a man at need.
-
-Then, crying to Othniel to catch, she tossed him her crutch-stick, and
-leaning heavily upon it, he crossed the room to her side. Directing him
-to lean on the chair, she resumed her staff, and, reversing it, hooked
-open the trap-door with the crutch end, and signed to him to descend.
-
-He hesitated. “They’ll find it,” he said; “it’s in plain sight as soon
-as your chair is moved. If I must be caught, I’d rather be caught above
-ground than hauled out of a hole, like a woodchuck.”
-
-“You go down,” said Susan grimly, “I’m going to put that chair back and
-sit in it; and move it they don’t neither, not if they’re the whole
-British army!”
-
-He lowered himself to the edge and slipped down, wincing and biting his
-lips as he curled up in the little square space, adjusting his injured
-ankle in his hand. For a moment his clear eyes looked up to Susan’s
-with gratitude and appeal; then the lid closed. He heard shoving and
-shuffling and the settling of a heavy weight in place overhead, and
-after that the swift and steady click of knitting-needles.
-
-A young English officer, accompanied by a sergeant and four soldiers,
-coming briskly up the garden-path not ten minutes later, found Susan
-Tongs knitting as usual, just within her doorway. She scarcely glanced
-up while the officer, a youngster hardly older than Othniel, briefly
-stated his errand and demanded admittance; but when he had concluded,
-she shot him an indignant look.
-
-“Search my house!” she cried. “Do you suppose I want your soldiers’
-dirty fingers poking in my linen-chest and overhauling my gowns and
-petticoats, all to find a good-for-nothing lad that’s been forbid
-the place this two years? Ask any of the neighbors what were the
-last words I had with Othniel Purdie, and whether he’s likely to be
-hiding here or not--ask ’em! I don’t believe you even think he’s
-here. I believe it’s an excuse to steal my property and drink my
-cider. How should he be here? Last folks heard, he was off to General
-Washington--God bless him----”
-
-“What! What!” cried the young officer, lifting his eyebrows and
-laughing. Susan set her teeth and clicked her needles hard. “We hear
-there’s a pretty niece of yours, who’s not so hard on the young man,”
-he went on; “and since you’re so frankly a rebel yourself, Mrs. Tongs,
-you’ll admit it’s not a bad guess that she may have coaxed you into
-protecting even a lover you don’t like, when he’s doing spy’s work for
-your admired General Washington. I shall certainly search the house.”
-
-“My name is Mrs. Thurrell, young man; it’s only old friends and
-neighbors who may call me ‘Susan Tongs,’” answered Susan dryly. “And
-no coaxing of my silly niece, Tamsey--not if she coaxed from now till
-judgment--should drive me to harboring any lad against my will. I do as
-I please in my own house. But she’s a soft thing, and young, and it’s
-possible she might have slyed him in by the back way, if he’s really in
-town and hiding; you see I sit here all day, and could little tell what
-went on in the rest of the house.
-
-“The notion of Othniel Purdie stowed away in secret in cupboard or
-closet of mine pleases me no more than it does you,” she scolded
-on; “so on second thoughts you may search and welcome, provided only
-you look well after your men and see there’s no mauling of my quilts
-and calicoes--manners, sir, manners! Would you shove by a woman, hat
-cocked, on her own threshold, when she has bidden you to come in?
-Keep back, or come properly!” for the young lieutenant, impatient of
-further talk, had started to push past Susan, whose great chair and
-person almost blocked the way, and had made a sign to a soldier as if
-commanding him to assist in removing the obstacle.
-
-But before the soldier could mount the steps, and quick as the
-officer’s hand touched her chair, Susan had snatched up her
-lazy-tongs--there was a snap, a glint of shining dark metal, and the
-nippers clicked together within an inch of his ear. He uttered a
-dismayed oath and leaped backward down the low steps, where he would
-have fallen had not the grinning soldier caught him in his arms.
-
-Recovering himself, he cried, furiously, “Put down that pistol!”
-
-Susan smiled a grandmotherly smile and gently shook her head.
-
-The soldier’s grin broadened. “’Twa’n’t a pistol, sir,” he explained
-respectfully. “I don’t know what it was; but ’twa’n’t a pistol.”
-
-“Let me pass!” said the officer, reassured but mortified, and springing
-again up the steps. “Move aside and let me pass, woman!”
-
-“Woman, and an old woman,” answered Susan serenely, “and surely you may
-pass, for I told you so. But a woman of my weight moves slowly, and it
-behooves a young gentleman to show patience. I will be treated civilly
-under my own roof; and I won’t budge an inch for a swaggering boy with
-his hat on--there!” she continued, as he thrust roughly by, squeezed
-nearly flat between the armchair and the door-jamb, “there’s for your
-impudence!”
-
-This time her aim was better, and the tongs snicked sharply together
-with the tip of his queue between them, with the result that, as he
-pushed on and Susan held fast, his head was sharply jerked, and his
-gilt-laced hat fell off at her feet. With a leisurely closing of the
-nippers, Susan picked it up and put it on the table.
-
-“You can have it again when you go,” she said soothingly, as if
-speaking to a fretful child. “And will you ask your man there to go
-round to the other door? As you have just found, young sir, this door’s
-scarcely wide enough for two, when I am one of them, and he is stouter
-than you.”
-
-For a moment, red and angry, the young fellow glared upon her fiercely;
-but she met his look with one so steady, placid, and grandmotherly, yet
-with a glimmer of humor in it, too, that his wrath suddenly vanished
-in a burst of boyish laughter. He signed to the soldier to go round to
-the back door, as the others had already done, and held out his hand
-for Susan’s lazy-tongs, which he played with curiously, snapping and
-nipping with them at the air, while he directed the elaborate search
-of the lower rooms. Then they all went upstairs together, and heavy
-feet were heard clumping through the bedrooms for a long time. At last
-the stairs creaked, and they descended.
-
-“Did your soldiers handle my linen?” asked Susan eagerly, with a face
-of deep, housewifely anxiety. “I suppose they have tumbled the whole
-chestful out in a heap.”
-
-“No, indeed--we’ve scarcely shaken out the lavender,” the lieutenant
-answered, smiling pleasantly; adding, with a glance of mock terror at
-the tongs, “May I have my hat?”
-
-“Let your sergeant go to the pantry first, if you please. I can’t wait
-on you myself, but there are doughnuts and a jug of sweet cider on the
-shelf, at your service,” she replied hospitably, and as it was the last
-house of the village, and they had no further searching to do, they
-accepted the modest treat gratefully, and the four soldiers gathered,
-munching and sipping, around the kitchen fire in most friendly fashion.
-
-No shadow of suspicion remained, but the mischievous young commander
-lifted his mug, and saying, “This is for the pull you gave my hair,
-Mrs. Thurrell, and no punishment at that if you were a properly loyal
-subject,” he drank to the king’s health.
-
-“Pour out a mug for me, too, sergeant,” demanded Susan, with sparkling
-eyes; but as the man tipped the pitcher to obey, his officer stopped
-him.
-
-“No, no!” he cried, laughing and waving it aside. “She will drink to
-General Washington!”
-
-“Yes, that she would, young sir!” said Susan Tongs.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Next day, with his precious despatches rescued from the woodbox and
-his ankle much better, Othniel escaped in a patriotic neighbor’s load
-of hay. After the war ended he married Tamsey, with no opposition from
-Susan, whose temper softened with time, and who, ever after having
-saved him, lavished upon him an affection as great as her former
-dislike.
-
-Indeed, it was a joke in the household--for they shared one home--that
-Aunt Susan was never cross now unless Tamsey forgot to give her husband
-his favorite kind of cake for supper, or left a rent in his coat
-unmended longer then five minutes after he took it off! Then there was
-a tempest. But Tamsey was so fond both of Othniel and Susan Tongs that
-she could let it rage about her quite untroubled, duteously veiling her
-amusement, and listening with an air of meek respect until it spent
-itself, and peace returned.
-
-
-
-
-THE LITTLE MINUTE-MAN[Q]
-
-By H. G. PAINE
-
- We have all heard of the “minute-men,” but do you know about the
- little boy who played minute-man inside of a big grandfather’s clock,
- while the redcoats were waiting to capture his father?
-
-
-All during the winter Brinton had been saying what he would do if the
-redcoats came, and grieving because his age, which was eight, prevented
-him from going with his father to fight under General Washington.
-
-Every night, when his mother tucked him in his bed and kissed him
-good-night, he told her not to be afraid, that he had promised his
-father to protect her, and he proposed to do it.
-
-His plan of action, in event of the sudden appearance of the enemy,
-varied somewhat from day to day, but in general outline it consisted
-of a bold show of force at the front gate and a flank attack by
-Towser, the dog. Should these tactics fail to discourage the British,
-he intended to retire behind a stone fort he had built on the lawn,
-between the two tall elms, and to fire stones at the invaders until
-they fell back in confusion, while his mother would look on and
-encourage him from the front porch.
-
-When the redcoats unexpectedly appeared in the distance, one afternoon
-in May, what Brinton really did was to run helter-skelter down the
-road, up the broad path to the house, through the front hall into the
-library, close the door, and then peep out of the window to watch them
-go by.
-
-When he first caught sight of the soldiers Brinton was sure that there
-was at least a regiment of them, but when they were opposite the front
-gate all that he could see were a corporal and three privates. Instead
-of keeping on their way, however, they turned up the path toward the
-house, and then it seemed to Brinton that they were the most gigantic
-human beings that he had ever seen.
-
-His mother was away for the day, and had taken Towser with her. This,
-together with the fact that the enemy were now between him and his
-fort, entirely spoiled Brinton’s plan of campaign, and he decided to
-seek at once some more secluded spot, and there to devise something
-to meet the changed conditions. But when he started to run out of the
-room, he found that in his hurry he had left the front door open, so
-that any one in the hall would be in plain sight of the soldiers, who
-were now very near.
-
-Unfortunately there was no other door by which Brinton could leave the
-room. What was worse, there was no closet in which he could hide. The
-soldiers were now so close at hand that he could hear their voices, and
-a glance through the window showed him that two of them were going
-around to the back of the house, as if to cut off any possible escape
-in that direction.
-
-And his mother would not be back until six o’clock. Instinctively his
-eyes sought the face of the tall time-piece in the corner. It was just
-three; and he could hear the soldiers’ steps on the front porch!
-
-The clock!
-
-Surely there was room within its generous case for a very small boy. In
-less time than it takes to write it Brinton was inside, and had turned
-the button with which the door was fastened. As he pressed himself
-close against the door, so that there should be room for the pendulum
-to swing behind him, he heard the corporal enter the room. He knew it
-must be the corporal, because he ordered the other man to go upstairs
-and look around there, while he searched the room on the other side of
-the hall.
-
-Brinton could hear the footsteps of the men as they walked about the
-house, and their voices as they talked to each other. Then all was
-quiet for a long while. He was just on the point of peeping out when
-all four men entered the room.
-
-“Well,” said a voice that he recognized as the corporal’s, “it is plain
-there is no one at ’ome. Me own himpression is that the bird’s flown.
-’E’s probably started back for camp, and the wife and the kid with
-’im. I don’t believe in payink no hattention to w’at them Tories says,
-nohow, goink back on their own neighbors--and kin, too, like as not.
-It’s just to curry favor with the hofficers, it’s me own hopinion. ’Ow
-did ’e know the Major was comink ’ome to-day, anyhow?”
-
-Nobody answered him. Perhaps he didn’t expect any one to.
-
-The Major! Brinton’s own father! He was coming home! This, then, was
-the surprise that his mother had said she would bring him when she
-went off with Towser in the morning to go to Colonel Shepard’s. And
-now those redcoats were going to sit there and wait until he came, and
-then--Brinton did not know what would happen, whether he would be shot
-on the spot, or merely put in prison for the rest of his life.
-
-Oh, if he could only get out and run to meet his father and warn him!
-But the men seemed to give no signs of leaving the room.
-
-“Perhaps he hasn’t come at all yet,” suggested one of the privates.
-
-“Perhaps ’e hasn’t,” answered the voice of the corporal; “but w’y,
-then, wouldn’t his folks be ’ere a-waitink for ’im? ’Owever, I’ll give
-’im hevery chance. It’s now five-and-twenty minutes after three. I’ll
-give ’im huntil six, but if ’e doesn’t turn hup by then, we’ll start
-away for the shore without ’im.”
-
-“Six o’clock!” thought the boy in the clock. The very time his mother
-had told him she was going to be home again “with something very nice
-for him.” And now she and his brave papa would walk right into the
-arms of these dreadful English soldiers, and he could not stop them!
-
-_Whang!_
-
-What a noise! It startled Brinton so much that he nearly knocked the
-clock over; and then he realized that it was only the clock striking
-half-past three.
-
-Half-past three! He had been in there only half an hour, and already
-he was so tired he could hardly stand up. How could he ever endure it
-until four, until half-past four, five, six?
-
-“If only something, some accident even, will happen to detain papa and
-mamma!” he thought. But how much more likely, it occurred to him, that
-his father, having but a short leave of absence, would hasten, and
-arrive before six.
-
-“Tick-tock,” went the clock.
-
-“How slow, how very slow!” thought Brinton, and he wished there were
-only some way of hurrying up the time, so that the soldiers would go
-away.
-
-Still the soldiers stayed in the room, all but one, who had gone into
-the kitchen to watch from there.
-
-“Tick-tock,” went the clock, and “whang--whang--whang--whang!” Only
-four o’clock. Brinton began to fear that he could not hold out much
-longer.
-
-“Tick-tock,” went the clock. Each swing of the pendulum marked one
-second, Brinton’s mother had told him. If he could only make it swing
-quicker, so that the seconds would fly a little faster!
-
-“Why not try to?” Brinton was on the point of breaking down. He was
-desperate. He felt that he must do something. He took hold of the
-pendulum and gave it a little push. It yielded readily to his pressure.
-None of the soldiers seemed to notice it. He gave it another push. The
-result was the same. Brinton began to pick up courage, and he pushed
-the pendulum to and fro, to and fro, to and fro.
-
-He tried to keep it swinging at a perfectly even rate, and apparently
-he succeeded. At any rate, the soldiers appeared to notice nothing
-different. Yet Brinton was sure that he was causing the old clock
-to tick off its seconds at a considerably livelier gait than usual.
-Half-past four came almost before he knew it, but by five o’clock
-Brinton began to realize that he was very, very tired. He had been
-standing two hours already in that cramped, dark, close case, and he
-had pushed the pendulum first with one hand and then with the other
-in that narrow space until both felt sore and lame. Yet now that he
-had once begun, he did not dare leave off, and still it did not seem
-possible that he could keep it up.
-
-The soldiers had kept very quiet for a long time. Brinton thought that
-two of them must be napping.
-
-At five o’clock the soldier who was awake aroused the corporal and the
-other private, whom the corporal sent to relieve the man on guard in
-the kitchen.
-
-“I must ’ave slept mighty sound,” remarked the corporal. “I’d never
-believe I’d been asleep an hour, if I didn’t see it hon the clock.”
-
-“No soigns av any wan yit,” reported the man who had been in the
-kitchen, whom Brinton judged to be an Irishman. “Be’s ye going to wait
-till six?”
-
-“Yes,” answered the corporal. “But no longer.”
-
-Then they began talking about the British fleet that was cruising in
-Long Island Sound, and about the ship on which they were temporarily
-quartered until they could join the main body of the army, and how
-a neighbor of Brinton’s father’s and mother’s had been down at the
-store when a ship’s boat had put in for water, and how he had told the
-officer in charge that Major Hall, Brinton’s father, was expected home
-for a few hours that day, and what a fine opportunity it would be to
-make an important capture.
-
-The clock struck half-past five.
-
-“H’m!” grunted the corporal. “It doesn’t seem that late; but, you know,
-you can’t tell anythink about anythink in this blarsted country.”
-
-Brinton now began to be very much afraid that his father would come
-before the soldiers left. He wanted to move the pendulum faster and
-faster, but after what the corporal had said he did not dare to. Then,
-when the men lapsed into silence, it suddenly came over Brinton how
-dreadfully weary he was, how all his bones ached, and how much, how
-very much, he wanted to cry. But he felt that his father’s only chance
-of safety lay in his keeping the pendulum swinging to and fro, to and
-fro.
-
-At last, however, came the welcome sound of the corporal’s voice
-bidding the men get ready to start.
-
-Whang--whang--whang--whang--whang--whang!
-
-“Fall in!” ordered the corporal. “Forward, march!”
-
-As the sound of their footsteps died away, Brinton, all of a tremble,
-opened the door of the clock and stumbled out. He knelt at the window
-and watched the retreating forms of the redcoats. As they disappeared
-down the road he heard a noise behind him, and jumped up with a start.
-
-There stood his father!
-
-The next instant Brinton was sobbing in his arms.
-
-Brinton’s mother came into the room. “Dear me!” she said; “what ever
-can be the matter with the clock? It’s half an hour fast.”
-
-
-
-
-GENERAL GAGE AND THE BOSTON BOYS[R]
-
-By SAMUEL ADAMS DRAKE
-
- A very short story, showing a British general’s admiration for
- American boys who were not afraid to stand up for their rights.
-
-
-Perhaps you have heard that even in these old times the Boston boys
-were in the habit of coasting on the Common. They would build hills
-of snow and slide swiftly down to the Frog Pond. Well, the English
-soldiers had their camps on the Common, and from mere love of mischief
-would, when the boys had gone to school, destroy their coasting-ground.
-Incensed at having their sport thus meanly prevented, a delegation of
-boys went to General Gage about it. When shown into his presence he
-asked, with surprise, why so many children had come to see him.
-
-“We come, sir,” said the young spokesman, with a flushed face, “to ask
-a redress of our grievances.”
-
-“What!” said the general, “have your fathers been teaching you
-rebellion, and sent you here to utter it?”
-
-“Nobody sent us, sir,” replied the brave little fellow. “We have never
-injured or insulted your soldiers, but they have trodden down our
-snow-hills, and broken the ice on our skating-ground. We complained,
-and they called us young rebels, and told us to help ourselves if we
-could. Yesterday our works were destroyed for the third time, and now,”
-said the lad, with flashing eyes, “we will bear it no longer.”
-
-General Gage looked at the boys with undisguised admiration. Then,
-turning to an officer who stood near, he exclaimed:
-
-“Good heavens, the very children draw in a love of liberty with the air
-they breathe.” To the lads he then said:
-
-“You may go, my brave boys; and be assured that if any of my troops
-hereafter molest you, they shall be severely punished.”
-
-
-
-
-WASHINGTON AND THE SPY[S]
-
-By JAMES FENIMORE COOPER
-
- In this Revolutionary story of Cooper’s, the Spy was one of
- Washington’s most faithful helpers. The following pages tell of their
- last meeting, shortly before the close of the war.
-
-
-The commencement of the year was passed, on the part of the Americans,
-in making great preparations, in conjunction with their allies, to
-bring the war to a close. In the south, Greene and Rawdon made a bloody
-campaign that was highly honorable to the troops of the latter, but
-which, by terminating entirely to the advantage of the former, proved
-him to be the better general of the two.
-
-New York was the point that was threatened by the allied armies; and
-Washington, by exciting a constant apprehension for the safety of that
-city, prevented such reënforcements from being sent to Cornwallis as
-would have enabled him to improve his success.
-
-At length, as autumn approached, every indication was given that the
-final moment had arrived.
-
-The French forces drew near to the royal lines, passing through
-the Neutral Ground, and threatened an attack in the direction of
-Kingsbridge, while large bodies of Americans were acting in concert.
-By hovering around the British posts, and drawing nigh in the Jerseys,
-they seemed to threaten the royal forces from that quarter also.
-The preparations partook of the nature of both a siege and a storm.
-But Sir Henry Clinton, in the possession of intercepted letters
-from Washington, rested securely within his lines, and cautiously
-disregarded the solicitations of Cornwallis for succor.
-
-It was at the close of a stormy day in the month of September that a
-large assemblage of officers was collected near the door of a building
-that was situated in the heart of the American troops, who held the
-Jerseys. The age, the dress, and the dignity of deportment of most
-of these warriors indicated them to be of high rank; but to one in
-particular was paid a deference and obedience that announced him to be
-of the highest. His dress was plain, but it bore the usual military
-distinctions of command. He was mounted on a noble animal, of a deep
-bay, and a group of young men, in gayer attire, evidently awaited his
-pleasure, and did his bidding. Many a hat was lifted as its owner
-addressed this officer; and when he spoke, a profound attention,
-exceeding the respect of mere professional etiquette, was exhibited
-on every countenance. At length the General raised his own hat, and
-bowed gravely to all around him. The salute was returned, and the party
-dispersed, leaving the officer without a single attendant, except his
-body-servants and one aide-de-camp. Dismounting, he stepped back a few
-paces, and for a moment viewed the condition of his horse with the eye
-of one who well understood the animal, and then, casting a brief but
-expressive glance at his aide, he retired into the building, followed
-by that gentleman.
-
-On entering an apartment that was apparently fitted for his reception,
-he took a seat, and continued for a long time in a thoughtful attitude,
-like one in the habit of communing much with himself. During this
-silence the aide-de-camp stood in expectation of his orders. At length
-the General raised his eyes, and spoke in those low, placid tones that
-seemed natural to him:
-
-“Has the man whom I wished to see arrived, sir?”
-
-“He waits the pleasure of your Excellency.”
-
-“I will receive him here, and alone, if you please.”
-
-The aide bowed and withdrew. In a few minutes the door again opened,
-and a figure, gliding into the apartment, stood modestly at a distance
-from the General, without speaking. His entrance was unheard by
-the officer, who sat gazing at the fire, still absorbed in his own
-meditations. Several minutes passed, when he spoke to himself in an
-undertone:
-
-“To-morrow we must raise the curtain, and expose our plans. May heaven
-prosper them!”
-
-A slight movement made by the stranger caught his ear, and he turned
-his head, and saw that he was not alone. He pointed silently to the
-fire, toward which the figure advanced, although the multitude of his
-garments, which seemed more calculated for disguise than comfort,
-rendered its warmth unnecessary. A second mild and courteous gesture
-motioned to a vacant chair, but the stranger refused it with a modest
-acknowledgment. Another pause followed, and continued for some time.
-At length the officer arose, and opening a desk that was laid upon the
-table near which he sat, took from it a small but apparently heavy bag.
-
-“Harvey Birch,” he said, turning to the stranger, “the time has arrived
-when our connection must cease; henceforth and forever we must be
-strangers.”
-
-The peddler dropped the folds of the greatcoat that concealed his
-features, and gazed for a moment earnestly at the face of the speaker;
-then dropping his head upon his bosom, he said meekly:
-
-“If it be your Excellency’s pleasure.”
-
-“It is necessary. Since I have filled the station which I now hold, it
-has become my duty to know many men, who, like yourself, have been my
-instruments in procuring intelligence. You have I trusted more than
-all; I early saw in you a regard to truth and principle, that, I am
-pleased to say, has never deceived me--you alone know my secret agents
-in the city, and on your fidelity depend, not only their fortunes, but
-their lives.”
-
-He paused, as if to reflect, in order that full justice might be done
-to the peddler, and then continued:
-
-“I believe you are one of the very few that I have employed who have
-acted faithfully to our cause; and, while you have passed as a spy of
-the enemy, have never given intelligence that you were not permitted
-to divulge. To me and to me only of all the world, you seem to have
-acted with a strong attachment to the liberties of America.”
-
-During this address Harvey gradually raised his head from his bosom,
-until it reached the highest point of elevation; a faint tinge gathered
-in his cheeks, and, as the officer concluded, it was diffused over
-his whole countenance in a deep glow, while he stood proudly swelling
-with his emotions, but with eyes that modestly sought the feet of the
-speaker.
-
-“It is now my duty to pay you for these services; hitherto you have
-postponed receiving your reward, and the debt has become a heavy one--I
-wish not to undervalue your dangers: here are a hundred doubloons;
-you will remember the poverty of our country, and attribute to it the
-smallness of your pay.”
-
-The peddler raised his eyes to the countenance of the speaker, but, as
-the other held forth the money, he moved back, as if refusing the bag.
-
-“It is not much for your services and risks, I acknowledge,” continued
-the General, “but it is all that I have to offer; at the end of the
-campaign it may be in my power to increase it.”
-
-“Does your Excellency think that I have exposed my life, and blasted my
-character, for money?”
-
-“If not for money, what then?”
-
-“What has brought your Excellency into the field? For what do you daily
-and hourly expose your precious life to battle and the halter? What
-is there about me to mourn, when such men as you risk their all for
-our country? No, no, no, not a dollar of your gold will I touch; poor
-America has need of it all!”
-
-The bag dropped from the hand of the officer, and fell at the feet
-of the peddler, where it lay neglected during the remainder of the
-interview. The officer looked steadily at the face of his companion,
-and continued:
-
-“There are many motives which might govern me that to you are unknown.
-Our situations are different; I am known as the leader of armies--but
-you must descend into the grave with the reputation of a foe to your
-native land. Remember that the veil which conceals your true character
-cannot be raised in years--perhaps never.”
-
-Birch again lowered his face, but there was no yielding of the soul in
-the movement.
-
-“You will soon be old; the prime of your days is already past; what
-have you to subsist on?”
-
-“These!” said the peddler, stretching forth his hands that were already
-embrowned with toil.
-
-“But those may fail you; take enough to secure a support to your age.
-Remember your risks and cares. I have told you that the characters of
-men who are much esteemed in life depend on your secrecy; what pledge
-can I give them of your fidelity?”
-
-“Tell them,” said Birch, advancing, and unconsciously resting one foot
-on the bag, “tell them that I would not take the gold!”
-
-The composed features of the officer relaxed into a smile of
-benevolence, and he grasped the hand of the peddler firmly.
-
-“Now, indeed, I know you; and although the same reasons which have
-hitherto compelled me to expose your valuable life will still exist,
-and prevent my openly asserting your character, in private I can always
-be your friend; fail not to apply to me when in want or suffering, and
-so long as God giveth to me, so long will I freely share with a man
-who feels so nobly and acts so well. If sickness or want should ever
-assail you, and peace once more smile upon our efforts, seek the gate
-of him whom you have so often met as Harper, and he will not blush to
-acknowledge you in his true character.”
-
-“It is little that I need in this life,” said Harvey; “so long as God
-gives me health and honest industry, I can never want in this country;
-but to know that your Excellency is my friend is a blessing that I
-prize more than all the gold of England’s treasury.”
-
-The officer stood for a few moments in the attitude of intense thought.
-He then drew to him the desk, and wrote a few lines on a piece of
-paper, and gave it to the peddler.
-
-“That Providence destines this country to some great and glorious fate
-I must believe, while I witness the patriotism that pervades the bosoms
-of her lowest citizens,” he said. “It must be dreadful to a mind like
-yours to descend into the grave, branded as a foe to liberty; but
-you already know the lives that would be sacrificed, should your real
-character be revealed. It is impossible to do you justice now, but I
-fearlessly intrust you with this certificate, should we never meet
-again, it may be serviceable to your children.”
-
-“Children!” exclaimed the peddler; “can I give to a family the infamy
-of my name!”
-
-The officer gazed with pain at the strong emotion he exhibited and he
-made a slight movement toward the gold; but it was arrested by the
-expression of his companion’s face. Harvey saw the intention, and shook
-his head, as he continued more mildly:
-
-“It is, indeed, a treasure that your Excellency gives me; it is safe,
-too. There are men living who could say that my life was nothing to
-me, compared to your secrets. The paper that I told you was lost I
-swallowed when taken last by the Virginians. It was the only time I
-ever deceived your Excellency, and it shall be the last; yes, this is,
-indeed, a treasure to me; perhaps,” he continued, with a melancholy
-smile, “it may be known after my death who was my friend; but if it
-should not, there are none to grieve for me.”
-
-“Remember,” said the officer, with strong emotion, “that in me you will
-always have a secret friend; but openly I cannot know you.”
-
-“I know it, I know it,” said Birch; “I knew it when I took the service.
-’Tis probably the last time I shall ever see your Excellency. May God
-pour down His choicest blessings on your head!” He paused, and moved
-toward the door. The officer followed him with eyes that expressed
-deep interest. Once more the peddler turned, and seemed to gaze on
-the placid but commanding features of the General with regret and
-reverence, and then, bowing low, he withdrew.
-
-The armies of America and France were led by their illustrious
-commander against the enemy under Cornwallis, and terminated a campaign
-in triumph that had commenced in difficulties. Great Britain soon after
-became disgusted with the war; and the independence of the States was
-acknowledged.
-
-
-
-
-THREE WASHINGTON ANECDOTES
-
-Adapted from M. L. WEEMS
-
- The original story of little George Washington and his hatchet,
- together with two other doubtful anecdotes not so well known.
-
-
-On a fine morning in the fall of 1737 Mr. Washington, taking little
-George by the hand, went to walk with him in the orchard, promising
-to show him a fine sight. On arriving at the orchard, a fine sight
-indeed was presented. The whole earth, as far as could be seen, was
-strewed with fruit, and yet the trees were bending under the weight of
-apples which hung in clusters like grapes, and vainly strove to hide
-their blushing cheeks behind the green leaves. “Now, George,” said
-his father, “look here, my son! Don’t you remember when a good cousin
-of yours brought you that fine large apple last spring, how hardly I
-could prevail on you to divide with your brothers and sisters; though
-I promised you that if you would but do it God Almighty would give you
-plenty of apples this fall?”
-
-Poor George could not say a word, but hanging down his head, looked
-quite confused, while with his little naked toes he scratched in the
-soft ground. “Now look up, my son,” continued his father, “look up,
-George, and see there how richly the blessed God has made good my
-promise to you. Wherever you turn your eyes you see the trees loaded
-with fine fruit, many of them indeed breaking down; while the ground
-is covered with mellow apples, more than you could eat, my son, in all
-your lifetime.”
-
-George looked in silence on the wide wilderness of fruit. He marked
-the busy humming bees, and heard the gay notes of birds; then, lifting
-his eyes filled with shining moisture, to his father, he softly said,
-“Well, Pa, only forgive me this time, and see if I ever be so stingy
-any more.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-When George was about six years old he was made the wealthy master
-of a _hatchet_, of which, like most little boys, he was immoderately
-fond; and was constantly going about chopping everything that came in
-his way. One day, in the garden, where he often amused himself hacking
-his mother’s pea-sticks, he unluckily tried the edge of his hatchet
-on the body of a beautiful young English cherry tree, which he barked
-so terribly that I don’t believe the tree ever got the better of it.
-The next morning, the old gentleman, finding out what had befallen his
-tree, which, by the by, was a great favorite, came into the house;
-and with much warmth asked for the mischievous author, declaring
-at the same time that he would not have taken five guineas for his
-tree. Nobody could tell him anything about it. Presently George and
-his hatchet made their appearance. “George,” said his father, “do
-you know who killed that beautiful little cherry tree yonder in the
-garden?” This was a tough question, and George staggered under it for
-a moment; but quickly recovered himself, and looking at his father,
-with the sweet face of youth brightened with the inexpressible charm of
-all-conquering truth, he bravely cried out, “I can’t tell a lie, Pa,
-you know I can’t tell a lie. I did cut it with my hatchet.”
-
-“Run to my arms, you dearest boy,” cried his father; “such an act in my
-son is worth more than a thousand trees, though blossomed with silver,
-and their fruits of purest gold.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-To startle George into a lively sense of his Maker, his father fell
-upon the following very curious but impressive expedient:
-
-One day he went into the garden and prepared a little bed of finely
-pulverized earth, on which he wrote George’s name at full, in large
-letters, then strewing in plenty of cabbage seed, he covered them up,
-and smoothed all over nicely with the roller. This bed he purposely
-prepared close alongside a gooseberry walk, which happening at this
-time to be well hung with ripe fruit, he knew would be honored with
-George’s visits pretty regularly every day. Not many mornings had
-passed away before in came George, with eyes wild rolling and his
-little cheeks ready to burst with great news.
-
-“Oh, Pa! come here, come here!”
-
-“What’s the matter, my son? What’s the matter?”
-
-“Oh, come here, I tell you, Pa: come here, and I’ll show you such a
-sight as you never saw in all your lifetime!”
-
-The old gentleman, suspecting what George would be at, gave him his
-hand, which he seized with great eagerness, and tugging him along
-through the garden, led him point blank to the bed whereon was
-inscribed, in large letters, and in all the freshness of newly sprung
-plants, the full name of
-
- GEORGE WASHINGTON
-
-“There, Pa!” said George, quite in an ecstasy of astonishment, “did you
-ever see such a sight in all your lifetime?”
-
-“Why, it seems like a curious affair, sure enough, George!”
-
-“But, Pa, who did make it there? Who did make it there?”
-
-“It grew there by chance, I suppose, my son.”
-
-“By chance, Pa! Oh, no! no! It never did grow there by chance, Pa.
-Indeed that it never did!”
-
-“Why not, my son?”
-
-“Why, Pa, did you ever see anybody’s name in a plant bed before?”
-
-“Well, but George, such a thing might happen, though you never saw it
-before.”
-
-“Yes, Pa; but I did never see the little plants grow up so as to make
-one single letter of my name before. Now, how could they grow up so
-as to make _all_ the letters of my name, and then standing one after
-another, to spell _my_ name so exactly, and all so neat and even,
-too, at top and bottom! Oh, Pa, you must not say chance did all this.
-Indeed, _somebody_ did it; and I dare say now, Pa, _you_ did it just to
-scare me, because I am your little boy.”
-
-His father smiled, and said, “Well, George, you have guessed right. I
-indeed did it; but not to scare you, my son, but to teach you a great
-thing which I wish you to understand. I want, my son, to introduce you
-to your true Father.”
-
-“Aye! I know well enough whom you mean, Pa. You mean God Almighty,
-don’t you?”
-
-“Yes, my son, I mean Him indeed. He is your true Father, George, and
-as my son could not believe that chance had made and put together so
-exactly the letters of his name (though only sixteen) then how can he
-believe that chance could have made and put together all those millions
-and millions of things that are now so exactly fitted to his good.”
-
-
-
-
-WHEN GEORGE THE THIRD WAS KING[T]
-
-By ELBRIDGE S. BROOKS
-
- How a Philadelphia boy watched the Declaration of Independence in the
- making and celebrated the first Fourth of July on the Eighth.
-
-
-Philadelphia in July! Not even the most loyal boy or girl of that good
-old Quaker town but must admit that Philadelphia in July _is_ a hot
-place.
-
-“Warm and sunshiny,” were the words that Mr. John Nixon, in his daily
-journal for the year 1776, placed against the early days of July, but I
-am inclined to think that young Joe Nixon was nearer the fact when he
-called it “broiling hot.”
-
-Very possibly, however, this slight exaggeration on the part of young
-Joe was due to the fact that he was very busy and therefore very warm.
-Not that he had anything of especial importance to do. Not always those
-who are busiest have the most to do; but you see there was a great deal
-to hear and see in Philadelphia town in the early days of July in the
-year 1776 and young Joe Nixon, like a true American boy, felt it his
-duty to be on hand when anything of importance was on foot.
-
-And so he was continually on the go between his uncle’s big house on
-the Water Street, the room of the Committee of Inspection on Second
-Street, the parade-ground of the “Quaker Blues” on the city common, and
-the big brick State House on Chestnut Street.
-
-For young Joe Nixon was a privileged character and duly felt his
-importance. His uncle, Mr. John Nixon, was a member of the Committee
-of Safety, and better still, young Joe was a particular favorite of
-Mr. David Rittenhouse who “had charge of the public clock in the State
-House Square.” This put him on good terms with a still more influential
-acquaintance--the doorkeeper of the Continental Congress, then in daily
-session in the Assembly chamber of the State House.
-
-Young Joe was a quick-witted lad and like all the rest of the race
-of boys dearly loved to watch and listen even though he could not
-always understand. Seated by the side of his friend the doorkeeper, he
-found it very interesting and sometimes highly exciting to follow the
-proceedings of the bewigged and earnest gentlemen who were talking,
-discussing, and sometimes getting quite angry with one another on the
-floor of the Congress. Joe only knew in a general sort of way what all
-this talk and discussion meant. But one thing he was certain of, as
-were all the boys and girls in the colonies--and that was that there
-was a “jolly row” on hand between the colonies and the King. He knew,
-too, that, away off toward Boston-town there had been two or three
-fights with the King’s soldiers, in which the troops of the colonies
-by no means had the worst of it. And he knew, most of all, that it was
-mightily hard just now for a boy to get hold of anything new or nice
-to eat or to wear or to play with and that, somehow, this was all the
-fault of King George the Third, and that the colonies did not propose
-to stand this sort of thing any longer.
-
-So he had made the most of his acquaintance with the doorkeeper of the
-Congress and had witnessed most of the important events that had taken
-place during that lovely Philadelphia June.
-
-He had looked with all the awe of a small boy of twelve upon the fifty
-or more gentlemen--the delegates to the Congress--who, representing the
-thirteen colonies, were ranged in a half-circle on either side of Mr.
-Hancock, the President. But I think he admired, even more, the “elegant
-standard, suspended in the Congress Room,” over the door of entrance at
-which he sat with his friend the doorkeeper, and which was “a yellow
-flag with a lively representation of a rattlesnake in the middle in the
-attitude of going to strike, and these words underneath: ‘Don’t tread
-on me!’”
-
-He had been in the Congress Room so often that he knew most of the
-delegates by sight and name: that gentleman in the big chair behind
-the heavy mahogany table and the great silver inkstand--the gentleman
-with the scarlet coat and the black velvet breeches--was Mr. John
-Hancock, the President of the Congress--“Rosy John,” the Tory boys
-called him, much to young Joe’s ireful indignation; that gentleman
-in the long-waisted white cloth coat, scarlet vest and breeches, and
-white silk hose, was Mr. Jefferson of Virginia; that gentleman in
-the long buff coat and embroidered silk vest was, as of course every
-Philadelphia boy knew, the great Doctor Franklin; and there, too, were
-Mr. Adams and Mr. Gerry of Massachusetts, Mr. Sherman of Connecticut,
-Mr. Clinton of New York, Mr. Stockton of New Jersey, Mr. Carroll of
-Maryland, Mr. Lee of Virginia, Mr. Rutledge of South Carolina, and
-many others whose faces and whose voices had now grown familiar. Even
-his boyish mind, thoughtless of the present and careless of the future
-though it was, had felt the excitement of the moment when on Friday,
-June 7th, Mr. Richard Henry Lee of the Virginia colony had risen in his
-place and, “amidst breathless silence,” had read to the Congress this
-notable resolution:
-
-“_Resolved_, that these United Colonies are, and of right ought to be,
-free and independent States, that they are absolved from all allegiance
-to the British Crown, and that all political connection between them
-and the State of Great Britain is, and ought to be, totally dissolved.”
-
-Then Mr. John Adams of Massachusetts seconded the resolution, Mr.
-Thomson, the secretary, made the official entry in the Journal, the
-Congress, with but few words, postponed its consideration until the
-next day, and young Joe Nixon adjourned with the delegates, like them,
-half-dazed and half-jubilant.
-
-So, through the long June days, the Congress argued and debated and
-hesitated while young Joe Nixon--a true type of the restless Young
-America that is ever in a hurry for action and results--watched and
-wished and wondered, not thinking of what might be in the future save
-that King George was to be thrown overboard and the colonies were to
-set up for a Nation.
-
-At last, on June 28th, a committee, consisting of Mr. Jefferson of
-Virginia, Mr. Adams of Massachusetts, Doctor Franklin of Pennsylvania,
-Mr. Sherman of Connecticut, and Mr. Livingston of New York, presented
-to the Congress a long paper which young Joe understood was called a
-Declaration of Independence. And although he thought it was splendid
-and full of the most mightily strong blows against King George, much to
-the lad’s disgust the Congress did not seem to go into ecstasies over
-it, but hummed and hawed and deliberated until July 2d, when Mr. Lee’s
-original resolution was put to vote, carried by the voice of every
-colony except New York, and the United Colonies were declared to be
-Free and Independent States.
-
-Young Joe Nixon, had he dared, would have tossed his little
-three-cornered hat in the air with a loud hurrah, but the gentlemen of
-the Congress he thought seemed strangely quiet about it all. He did not
-see what their wiser heads comprehended, that the vote of the Congress
-on that second of July meant years of struggle against a mighty
-power--sorrow and privation and, perhaps, after all, only defeat and,
-to the leaders, the disgraceful death of traitors. He saw only the
-glowing colors of victory and excitement as young folks are apt to, and
-as it is right they should.
-
-And yet that very night, as the Congress adjourned, portly Mr.
-John Adams, with whom the lad was quite a favorite, noticed the
-ill-concealed exultation of the boy and laying a hand upon his head
-said to him: “A great day this, my young friend; a great day, is it
-not?”
-
-“Oh, yes, sir,” replied young Joe with energy, “I’m so glad it passed,
-sir.”
-
-“And so am I, my lad,” said Mr. Adams, with almost equal enthusiasm;
-“you are a bright and seemly little lad and will not soon forget this
-day, I’ll be bound. So mark my words, my lad. The second of July,
-1776, will be the most memorable day in all the history of America.
-It will be celebrated ere you grow to manhood, and by succeeding
-generations, as the great anniversary festival, commemorated as the day
-of deliverance, by solemn acts of devotion to God Almighty, from one
-end of the continent to the other, from this time forward for evermore.”
-
-“Yes, sir,” said Joe most respectfully. He did not comprehend all the
-meaning of Mr. Adams’s solemn words, but he was quite as confident as
-was that gentleman that it was a day the anniversaries of which would
-mean in future plenty of fun and jubilee.
-
-Good Mother Nixon could get but little work from her Joe on the
-following morning. And though, in her peaceful Quaker way, she bade
-him beware of too much glorying in all the strife and warfare that
-seemed afoot, I rather suspect that even her placid face flushed
-with quiet enthusiasm as she besought her boy to remember that right
-was always right, and that it was nobler and manlier to boldly face
-whatever might betide than to be as were some men in their Quaker town
-who, so she said, “loved too much their money and their ease, and did
-but make conscience a convenience, instead of being sincerely and
-religiously scrupulous of bearing arms.” All of which meant that there
-were some craven folk in that day of manly protest against tyranny
-who, to save themselves from annoyance, pretended to be Quakers and
-“non-combatants,” when they were only skulking cowards. And all such
-every honest Quaker utterly detested.
-
-But young Joe Nixon, too full of the excitement of the moment, paid
-but little regard to his good mother’s words, inasmuch as they did not
-apply to his case; and, hot and panting, fearful lest he should miss
-something new, dashed up to the State House and slipped in beside his
-friend the doorkeeper.
-
-The Congress was already in session. Mr. Jefferson’s paper called the
-“Declaration respecting Independence” had been again taken up for
-consideration, and was being soberly debated, paragraph by paragraph.
-
-Frequent repetitions had made Joe familiar with some of the phrases
-in this remarkable paper. Even his young heart beat high as he heard
-some of those ringing sentences--about all men being created equal
-and being “endowed with the inalienable rights of life, liberty, and
-the pursuit of happiness”; how that “whenever any form of government
-becomes destructive to these ends it is the right of the people to
-alter or abolish it”; that “the history of the present King of Great
-Britain is a history of repeated injuries and usurpations,” that “a
-prince whose character is thus marked by every act which may define
-a tyrant is unfit to be the ruler of a free people”; that “we must,
-therefore, hold the British people, as we hold the rest of mankind,
-enemies in war, in peace friends”; that “we, the representatives of the
-United States of America in general Congress assembled, appealing to
-the Supreme Judge of the world for the rectitude of our intentions, do,
-in the name and by the authority of the good people of these colonies,
-solemnly publish and declare that these united colonies are and of
-right ought to be free and independent States”; and, lastly, that “for
-the support of this declaration, with a firm reliance on the protection
-of Divine Providence, we mutually pledge to each other our lives, our
-fortunes, and our sacred honor.”
-
-Joe, as I have said, had felt his young heart glow and his young
-pulse beat under the enthusiasm of these ringing declarations and all
-this debating and questioning appeared to him as fearfully slow and
-faint-hearted; he wondered why, since the Congress had already passed
-Mr. Lee’s resolution of Independence, they should so hesitate over Mr.
-Jefferson’s Declaration of Independence; and, quite frequently, he felt
-compelled to dash out into the hot and sunny street and work off his
-impatience in a wild and purposeless “go-as-you-please” around what was
-called “Mr. Rittenhouse’s Observatory” in the centre of the square.
-
-The day dragged on and so did the debate. Even Mr. Jefferson lost
-patience and, confessing that he was “writhing under” all this talk,
-needed all of Doctor Franklin’s philosophy and example to calm him down
-again. So it is not to be wondered at that, late in the afternoon,
-Joe Nixon, enthusiastic young patriot though he was, grew wearied
-with the talk and the delay and determined to go home. But just as
-he was leaving the building there dashed into the State House yard
-a big chestnut horse covered with foam and dust. Its rider, a fine,
-well-built man in dust-stained travelling cloak, sprang from the saddle
-and, dropping the bridle-rein into Joe’s ready hand with a quick,
-“Here, my lad, take my nag to the City Tavern stables, will you?”
-hurried without further words into the Congress room.
-
-Joe’s impatience changed to burning curiosity again and, transferring
-his panting charge to another ready lad for attention, he, too, hurried
-into the hall and asked his friend the doorkeeper who this newcomer
-might be.
-
-“Why, lad, ’tis Mr. Cæsar Rodney, don’t you know,” replied the
-doorkeeper. “The delegate from the Counties upon Delaware whom they
-sent for by special post only yesterday, since his colony is divided in
-action and his vote is needful to carry the Declaration through.”
-
-“And did he ride from home to-day?” inquired Joe.
-
-“Surely, boy,” said the doorkeeper, “clean from the County of Kent,
-eighty miles away. ’Twas a gallant day’s ride and a fair day’s work,
-for by it is independence won.”
-
-It was even as he said. Rodney’s glorious ride secured the vote of
-Delaware for the Declaration and late that very night of Wednesday, the
-third of July, by a majority vote of the States--as the colonies now
-called themselves--the immortal paper that we know as the Declaration
-of Independence passed the Congress.
-
-But before it was handed to the secretary to be engrossed, or copied so
-that it might be signed by all the delegates, Mr. Hancock, as president
-of the Congress, affixed to it his bold signature that we all now know
-so well. And young Joe Nixon had, actually, to stuff his hat into his
-mouth to stifle the hurrah that did so want to burst out when Mr.
-Hancock, rising from his seat, said in his most decided tones:
-
-“There! John Bull can read my name without spectacles. Now let him
-double the price on my head, for _this_ is my defiance.”
-
-Then the Congress adjourned and young Joe went home, completely tired
-out with the day’s anxiety and excitement. And though on that notable
-night of the third of July a nation had been born, Philadelphia lay
-quietly asleep knowing little or nothing of the great happening.
-
-Next day--the first Fourth of July ever specially known to
-Americans--Joe was about the only privileged character who, slipping
-into the secret session heard, from his seat by the side of his
-friend the doorkeeper, the order given by Mr. Hancock as president of
-the Congress that “copies of the Declaration be sent to the several
-assemblies, conventions, and committees or Councils of Safety, and to
-the several commanding officers of the Continental troops; that it be
-proclaimed in each of the United States and at the head of the army.”
-
-This was all that was done on the Fourth of July, 1776, as young Joe
-Nixon could testify. But the printed copies of the Declaration prepared
-for transmission to the several States and to the army and signed by
-Mr. Hancock, the president of the Congress, and by Mr. Thomson, the
-secretary, all bore the heading: “In Congress, July 4, 1776,” and thus
-that date has come down to us as the one to be especially remembered.
-
-That very night Joe heard, at his uncle’s big house on the Water
-Street, that the Committee of Safety in Philadelphia--of which, as I
-have said, Mr. John Nixon was a member--had ordered that “the Sheriff
-of Philadelphia read or cause to be read and proclaimed at the State
-House, in the city of Philadelphia, on Monday the 8th day of July
-instant, at 12 o’clock at noon of this same day, the Declaration of the
-Representatives of the United States of America, and that he cause
-all his officers and the constables of the said city to attend to the
-reading thereof.”
-
-Here was a new treat in store for young Joe; and when he learned that
-the Worshipful Sheriff had designated his uncle, Mr. John Nixon, as
-the reader, Joe knew that this meant a front seat for him and was
-appropriately jubilant.
-
-The day came. Monday, the eighth of July, 1776. “A warm and sunshiny
-morning” again reads the truthful journal, and twelve o’clock, noon,
-must have been hot indeed. But not all the heat of a Philadelphia July
-could wither the ardor of such patriots as young Joe Nixon. He was
-therefore a very “live” portion of the procession which, forming at
-the hall of the Committee of Inspection in Second Street, joined the
-Committee of Safety at their lodge, and, to the stirring sounds of fife
-and drum, marched into the State House square. Out from the rear door
-of the State House came the Congress and other dignitaries and then,
-standing upon the balcony of Mr. Rittenhouse’s astronomical observatory
-just south of the State House, Mr. John Nixon in a voice both loud and
-clear read to the assembled throng the paper which declared the United
-States of America “Free and Independent.”
-
-The reader concluded with the glorious words: “We mutually pledge to
-each other our lives, our fortunes, and our sacred honor,” and, as his
-voice ceased, the listening throng, so the record says, “broke out
-into cheers and repeated huzzas.” Then the Royal arms were torn down
-from above the seats of the King’s Judges in the State House, and Joe,
-like a wild young Indian, danced frantically around the bonfire which
-destroyed these “insignia of Royalty.”
-
-Again, at five o’clock, the Declaration was read to the troops then
-present in the town, and the evening was given up to bonfires and
-fireworks which you may be certain young Joe enjoyed to his full
-content.
-
-And peal upon peal, sounding above all the shouts and the hurrahing,
-rang out loud and clear, at both the noon reading and the night’s
-celebration, the joyous clang of the big bell of the State House
-telling the glad tidings of freedom, as well befitted a bell on whose
-brazen rim men had read for twenty-four years the almost prophetic
-motto:
-
-“_Proclaim liberty through all the land to all the inhabitants
-thereof._”
-
-To his dying day Joe Nixon never forgot the glory and exultation of
-that jubilant first Independence Day--the eighth of July, 1776.
-
-One other notable scene also lived long in his memory--a day and a date
-new to many of us who have always supposed that the Declaration of
-Independence was passed, signed, and proclaimed on the Fourth of July.
-It was the morning of Tuesday, the second of August, that same historic
-summer of 1776. From his customary seat by the doorkeeper Joe saw Mr.
-Thomson, the secretary of the Congress, lay upon the president’s
-table a great sheet of parchment. And on this sheet carefully and
-beautifully copied was the Declaration of Independence. Then, one by
-one, beginning with Mr. Hancock the president, the delegates to the
-Congress signed the great paper and by that act sent their names down
-to posterity--famous and honored forever.
-
-Of the fifty-six signers of the Declaration not all affixed their
-names to the document on that notable second of August. Absentees and
-new-comers added their names as they joined the Congress, and not until
-the fourth day of November, 1776, was the last signature affixed.
-
-Names and dates go for but little when a great deed is done. The
-deed itself is of more importance than either names or dates. But
-to us of this second century of the Republic there is both interest
-and pleasure in re-telling the story of liberty and following out by
-dates, altogether new to most of us, the real progress of the historic
-document that made us a nation.
-
-Instead of one “Fourth of July,” you see, we have really four--The
-Second of July, upon which Mr. Lee’s Resolution of Independence was
-passed by the Congress; the Third of July, upon which the Declaration
-itself was passed; the Fourth of July which witnessed the order for
-its proclamation, and the Second of August upon which it was actually
-signed by the members of the Congress.
-
-The original document to which these names were signed still exists,
-grown worn and yellow with age; the Liberty Bell that rang out the
-joyous news of freedom on the sunny noon and the starlit night of the
-eventful eighth of July is now cracked and voiceless; the signers
-themselves are now only names and memories; but their work lives in
-the power and glory of the great nation which they founded, and every
-true American girl and boy honors the memory and applauds the courage
-of those devoted men. And upon each recurring Fourth of July every girl
-and boy in the land is as joyous and jubilant a young patriot as was
-even young Joe Nixon when, with bonfire and rude, old-time fireworks,
-with hurrah and shout and song he celebrated, in the days when George
-the Third was king, the first Fourth of July on the Eighth.
-
-
-
-
-THEIR FLAG DAY[U]
-
-By HERBERT O. MCCRILLIS
-
- A grandfather tells a group of patriotic little Americans how _his_
- grandfather was a redcoat at Lexington.
-
-
-Toot! Toot! Rub-a-dub-dub! came from down the street, and it made
-Grandpa Sturdy, who sat dozing in the sun, start up suddenly and look
-to see what gallant soldiers were coming.
-
-First came Captain Tommy Rankin, acting as drum-major, with his
-sister’s muff worn for a fur hat, and an umbrella for a baton.
-Behind him came a troop of children wearing all sorts of military
-decorations--helmets, epaulets, and paper caps. One boy carried a large
-flag, and one of the girls was singing through a comb.
-
-Grandpa rose and went out to the gate as they came near. Then, just
-as they came close, he took off his hat and gave them a military
-salute--for grandpa was a soldier once--and held up his hand for them
-to stop just a moment.
-
-“Company, halt!” commanded Tommy, in a loud tone. “Parade, rest!
-Salute! Attention!” And they obeyed.
-
-“What company is this?” said grandpa smilingly.
-
-“We are the minute-men, grandpa,” said Tommy. “We are going out to
-Concord to keep Flag Day. Our teacher was going to have a celebration
-to-day, but she is sick, so we have made a procession, and are going to
-march by her house to show her how we can remember the flag.”
-
-“That’s right,” said grandpa, saluting the flag. “I can do that if my
-grandfather was what we call a redcoat.”
-
-“Your grandfather a redcoat?” cried all the boys in a breath. “Did he
-ever tell you anything about it?”
-
-“Oh, yes, he told us about going to America to fight the rebels, and
-what a lot of British soldiers there were in Boston, who all laughed at
-the idea of the plain country farmers and workmen being able to fight
-the king’s own fine troops; and granddad thought so with all the rest,
-he said. Well, they found out that day that the rebels could fight,
-after all. Let me see, what day was that, boys?”
-
-“April 19, 1775,” said Tommy, echoed by the others.
-
-“Yes, yes. You have got that learned, haven’t you? Grandfather said
-that all through that long, hard march from Concord back to Boston they
-were fighting. They were ashamed to be beaten by those they had made
-fun of.
-
-“Every stone wall, every large rock or tree seemed to have an American
-behind it. He said it was wonderful how those farmers could shoot.
-Dozens of the Englishmen fell and died there in the road. Granddad
-told us how they struggled on, tired, wounded, thirsty, and almost
-ready to give up. Finally most of them got back to Charlestown, and
-were safe. But all day long, and most of the night before, they had had
-to march.
-
-“And they didn’t do what they went out for, either, for the Americans
-had carried off the guns and powder they went to destroy. The night
-before they marched out gaily enough, expecting to have no trouble, and
-only a trip into the country in the fine spring air.
-
-“But the trip became a terrible battle, and began a great war. And ever
-since America and England have been two separate nations.
-
-“Grandfather went back to England very soon, and as he couldn’t march
-and fight any more, he got a pension from the king and stayed in
-England all his life.
-
-“He liked America, and always said that now there was peace, and the
-new country promised so much, he would like to go there to live; but he
-never did. My father brought us over, though, when I was sixteen. So I
-am an American, if my grandfather was one of the redcoats who fought at
-Lexington in America.”
-
-“I’d rather have a grandfather that was a minute-man,” said one of the
-boys.
-
-“Perhaps the great-grandfathers of some of you fought the redcoats,”
-said Grandpa Sturdy. “But I am not ashamed to tell you that my
-grandfather wore one of the king’s red-and-white uniforms and carried
-a British gun. The soldiers were doing their duty bravely enough. It
-was the king and the men with him who were to blame for the battle.
-Well, boys, march on again, march along. Stand up for your flag. It is
-my flag, too, and I love it. Always be ready to be minute-men for the
-flag.”
-
-“Attention, company! Carry arms! Forward, march!” shouted the captain.
-
-Away went the procession to the teacher’s house, their flags waving
-gaily and the flowers they were carrying nodding their heads, while
-Grandpa Sturdy settled back in his easy chair.
-
-
-
-
-A TRUE STORY OF THE REVOLUTION[V]
-
-By EVERETT T. TOMLINSON
-
- A boy’s story by a boy’s author, telling of a thrilling escape from
- “Tarleton’s men.”
-
-
-“Father’s escaped! Moses has just brought me word,” said John Russell,
-as he ran to the steps of the broad veranda. His mother quickly rose
-from her chair and looked down at the eager boy on the steps below her.
-Her slight figure was trembling, and a bright red spot had appeared on
-each cheek.
-
-“Are you sure, John?” she asked, in a low tone.
-
-“Yes, sure! It seems that the British escort had gone but halfway to
-Charleston when a band of five Whigs met them. They had a bit of an
-argument, and the upshot of it was that father made off. Strange about
-these Whigs happening to meet them, wasn’t it?”
-
-John, unable to restrain his feelings longer, threw his hat high in the
-air, and rushing up the steps, seized his “little mother” in his arms
-and began to dance with her about the porch.
-
-“What’s that you say? Your father’s escaped?”
-
-John quickly released his mother and turned to face the gruff-voiced
-Captain Heald of the British service, who had just come out of the open
-door. The boy’s manner instantly changed, although he could not conceal
-his exultation as he replied: “Yes, sir; he’s escaped! He had no fancy
-to spend any more time in the ‘provost’ at Charleston. It isn’t a fit
-place for vermin, to say nothing of human beings.”
-
-“I ought to have hanged him, and you, too!” replied the captain. “It’s
-the only way to deal with such rebels!”
-
-“Hanging, sir,” said John, “seems the thing your party do best; unless
-you have a still stronger fancy for quartering yourselves on your
-betters.”
-
-“Fine parole you’ve kept!” sneered the captain. “I’ll warrant, if the
-truth were known, you yourself had a share in this escape of your
-father.”
-
-“I’m under no parole not to help my father to freedom,” said John.
-
-The captain looked at him angrily a moment, and then, without making
-any further reply, turned and went down the steps and across the lawn
-to join some of the soldiers who were quartered on the plantation.
-
-“I beg you to be careful, John,” said his mother anxiously, when they
-were alone again. “You know that man can do whatever he pleases here.”
-
-“No,” replied John, “he cannot frighten me with his bluster and his red
-coat.”
-
-“But you must not provoke him. Tarleton has given him full command in
-this district, and he has already committed outrages that no British
-regular officer would venture on.”
-
-In fact, the war in that region was largely a conflict of partisans
-native to the soil, and Tory Americans often committed against Whig
-Americans high-handed acts from which officers accustomed to the
-procedure of military law would have shrunk.
-
-“Very well,” said John, laughing to reassure his mother. “He hasn’t any
-great cause for liking me, that’s a fact. I’ve let the pigs out of the
-pens and scared away the chickens, and told the negroes where to hide
-some of the stuff in the barns. But this last work is the worst--this
-sending word, as I did, by Moses to Dick Eddy to look out for father
-when he passed. Heald will never forgive me for that. I’m not afraid,
-though,” he added, as he left his mother and followed the captain
-across the lawn.
-
-Even in his excitement the beautiful summer day had an influence to
-soothe him. All about him lay the fertile lands of Ridgefield, his
-father’s plantation, one of the most beautiful in all the South. Behind
-him was the great house in which he had been born, flanked by the
-quarters of the negroes and the spacious barns. Off on the left was a
-grove, and below the hill was the slow stream. John would have felt the
-sweet influences of the hour more but for the presence of thirty men in
-scarlet, who now were the virtual masters of the place.
-
-Only a week earlier Captain Heald had somehow gained information that
-Major Russell and his son had left Sumter’s army for a brief visit
-home, so the Tory band had at once swooped down and captured both. John
-had been left on parole, and his father had escaped; but Ridgefield was
-now occupied by “Tarleton’s men,” and all its beauty for John was gone.
-
-He stopped and watched the guards doing “sentry go” in the road and out
-by the grove beyond the house, and the longer he watched them the more
-helpless and angry he felt. “Great liberty this!” he muttered. “Shut up
-here like a pig in a pen! Not that there are many pigs left here now,”
-he added, smiling grimly. “Oh, well, I hope father’ll do something, now
-that he’s got away.”
-
-“John,” said his mother, when he returned to the house, “Captain Heald
-is going to leave.”
-
-“Good for Captain Heald! When is he going?”
-
-“To-night. Lieutenant Mott is to be left in charge here.”
-
-“He’s not as bad as the other. Where’s the captain going?”
-
-“I think over to Fort Granby.”
-
-“Humph! Probably to set some one on father’s tracks. He’ll never get
-him, though. Hello! Here comes the captain now, and he’s all dressed to
-leave!”
-
-A colored man soon brought the captain’s horse, and as the officer
-swung himself lightly into the saddle, John, taking off his hat and
-bowing low, called out: “Good-bye, captain! We’ll speed the parting
-guest, although we can’t welcome the coming!”
-
-Captain Heald made no reply, but turned on John a threatening look, at
-which the boy laughed.
-
-That day went by and on the following morning John was wandering about
-the place, idly watching the soldiers, longing to be with his father,
-and wishing he had not given his parole to stay on the plantation. A
-black servant came to him and said that his mother wished to speak
-with him at the house. He went, and found his mother at the door. An
-expression of agony was on her face.
-
-“What is it mother?” he asked.
-
-“Go up to your room, John, and I’ll tell you.”
-
-The boy ran swiftly up the stairs, and held the door of his room open
-for his mother to enter. She closed and locked the door behind her,
-and then, handing him a letter, said: “I found this in the dining-room
-after Lieutenant Mott left the breakfast-table.”
-
-John took the letter from his mother’s hand and read:
-
- Fort Granby, August 6, 1780.
-
- LIEUTENANT MOTT. Upon receipt of this, you will at once take and
- hang that young rebel, John Russell. He has violated his parole
- and is entitled neither to a further hearing nor a trial. Hang him
- before sunset to-night. I shall expect to receive word by to-morrow
- morning.--HEALD.
-
-John’s face turned deadly pale, then red with anger. “I have not broken
-my parole!” he cried. “I never gave a promise that I would not help
-father to escape. This is murder, and----”
-
-“I think Lieutenant Mott dropped that letter in the dining-room
-intentionally,” broke in his mother. “He’s not as bad as Captain Heald.
-He won’t carry out the order.”
-
-With a great effort John controlled his voice. “We’ll see, mother. If
-it is really an order, I suppose he’ll have to carry it out--unless I
-escape.”
-
-“He might let you escape.”
-
-“No, little mother. But don’t give up. I’ll find a way out.”
-
-He kissed his mother, unlocked the door and walked slowly down the
-stairs and out upon the veranda. Lieutenant Mott was coming up the
-steps, and as he met John he gave him a keen glance of sympathy. But
-that was all. Not a word or sign to show that he would not carry out
-his order.
-
-_Hanged!_ The very crickets seemed to be chirping it. Over and over the
-word kept repeating itself in John’s mind as he walked slowly on over
-the lawn. He saw that now he was no longer bound by his parole. His
-word of honor had held him, but the order to hang him released him from
-the bond. He would escape if he could, but wherever he went red-coated
-soldiers were lounging lazily about, and up and down the road marched
-the sentries with their muskets over their shoulders.
-
-If it were only night! In the darkness he might escape, but it was not
-yet noon. The very words of the letter came back to him. “Hang him
-before sunset to-night!”
-
-And this was to be the end of it all! To be hanged! It was too
-horrible to think of. Every avenue of escape was blocked, and in sheer
-desperation he returned to the house and made his way noiselessly up
-the stairs to his room. His mother was not there, and relieved by the
-thought that she was not present to look upon him in his weakness,
-he bolted the door and seated himself by the table on which stood a
-miniature of her. He looked at it, and dropping his head upon his arms
-on the table before him, he sobbed in an agony of despair.
-
-He was roused by the sound of the dinner-bell. He must go down and
-somehow conceal his feelings. He bathed his face and, somewhat relieved
-by his tears, arose to join the family in the room below.
-
-Only his sisters were there when he entered, and he knew at once by the
-expression upon their faces that his mother had not shown the letter
-to them. He choked down a few mouthfuls of food, but he could not eat.
-Excusing himself from the table on the plea that he wished to find his
-mother, he ran swiftly up to her room and rapped upon the door.
-
-He had to repeat his summons before it was opened, and then it was only
-far enough to enable his mother to see who the visitor was. Then she
-drew him inside, and quickly closed and bolted the door again.
-
-John almost broke down when he looked at her, so woful and desperate
-was her expression. He must cheer her with some hope, and his own
-courage revived at the cheerful tone which he assumed:
-
-“Little mother, none of the Russells were ever hanged, and I shall not
-be the first.”
-
-“What will you do, my son?” Her voice sounded as if it were far away,
-and John looked up quickly as he replied: “I shall make a break for it,
-if I must. I’d rather be shot in trying to get away than be hanged.”
-
-“You are my own brave laddie,” said his mother, rising. “Do your best,
-John; but if you have to----”
-
-“I know, I know,” he murmured, as for one moment he returned her
-frantic embrace; and then, not daring to look back, he left the room.
-
-After crossing the lawn he seated himself beneath a spreading tree
-to collect his thoughts and survey the place. Everything was as it
-had been. The guards were marching up and down in the road; the idle
-soldiers were lounging about the tents; the locusts were calling in the
-trees, and peace apparently was over all.
-
-“I’ll have to try it. They may come for me any time now,” he thought,
-suddenly rising and starting toward the guard in the upper road. He
-could feel that his mother was watching him, but he dared not look
-toward her windows. The testing time had come and now it was to be a
-struggle for life.
-
-He walked leisurely up the road, although his heart was beating
-furiously. He would try not to attract attention, and it was no unusual
-thing for him to join the men on guard. They all knew he was on parole,
-and besides, there were the guns if he should try to get away.
-
-“It’s hot to-day, Tom,” he said, as he approached.
-
-“You’d think it was if you had to carry a gun up and down this dusty
-road.”
-
-“I’d be glad to relieve you, Tom. You rest a bit, while I take your
-place.”
-
-“That’s kind of you,” laughed the guard, “but I fear it won’t do, sir,”
-and he passed on, while John seated himself to await his return.
-
-He glanced at the soldiers in the tents near by. How easily they could
-reach him, and only one word would bring them all after him! But he
-must take his chances. There was no other way, and when the guard
-turned his back again he would try it.
-
-Just then a little, lean, half-starved pig came out of the woods and
-stood for a moment stupidly staring at the boy before him. “Poor
-fellow!” thought John. “You’re in the same box with me. Tarleton’s men
-will treat us alike.”
-
-He looked up and saw the returning guard. The pig saw him, too, and
-as if inspired by a sudden fear, he gave a startled grunt and darted
-swiftly up the road.
-
-“Here, sir, help me catch the pig!” shouted the guard, starting swiftly
-in pursuit of the runaway. “He’s the last on the place.”
-
-John needed no second invitation, and in a moment he and the guard were
-following the pig, which was running as if he knew his life was in
-danger. The soldiers rushed from their tents, and stood laughing and
-cheering the pursuers. To them it was a comedy to see the sentry and
-the prisoner striving to catch one poor, little half-starved pig; but
-to John the pursuit had all the elements of a tragedy. Life or death
-lay in the outcome for him.
-
-He flung aside his hat and coat, and put forth all his strength.
-Dripping with perspiration, streaked with dust, almost breathless he
-sped on and on. Once he came close upon the frightened pig, but he took
-good care to fall upon him in such a manner that the little “porker”
-only emitted a terrified squeal and redoubled his speed.
-
-“Hold! hold!” shouted the guard, who was behind now. “Let him go. We
-can’t catch him!”
-
-John glanced quickly back, and saw that he was out of the range of the
-soldiers’ muskets. His speed increased as he realized that the supreme
-moment had come at last. Only the gun of the guard was to be feared now.
-
-“Halt!” shouted the guard again. “Stop, or I shoot!”
-
-John only drew his head down between his shoulders. His heart almost
-ceased to beat. The report of the gun rang out, and he almost fell to
-the ground as he heard the bullet whistle over his head.
-
- * * * * *
-
-A few days afterward, when he was with his father in Sumter’s army near
-Camden, just before the terrible battle, and for the second time had
-been relating the story of his escape, he added, “That little porker
-did a double duty. He saved his bacon, and he saved mine, too.”
-
-
-
-
-POLLY CALLENDAR: TORY[W]
-
-By MARGARET FENDERSON
-
- The tale of a Tory maid, a Patriot youth, and a kettle of scarlet dye.
-
-
-In 1774-5, previous to the outbreak of the Revolution, the Callendars
-were Royalists, and General Gage’s young British officers, one of whom
-was related to the Callendars, frequently rode out from Boston to call
-at the hospitable country-house. It was Polly Callendar whom they went
-to see; her beauty and vivacious wit were the theme of many toasts.
-And up to the evening of this story Polly was as disdainful of the
-“minute-men” as was her mother.
-
-At about noon of that day Madam Callendar was summoned to the bedside
-of Elizabeth Ballard, a kinswoman living near Natick. She had left her
-brick oven full of the week’s baking, and had set a large brass kettle,
-filled with redwood dye, on the crane in the great fireplace. Madam
-Callendar’s parting directions to Polly had been not only to watch the
-oven, but to stir the boiling redwood.
-
-Numerous skeins and hanks of woolen yarn, spun during the previous
-winter, were immersed in it, and the last warning from Polly’s mother
-was: “Redwood must never be hurried, Polly. Stir often, lass. Press
-the hanks down hard with your clothes-stick, and then drop in a little
-of this powdered alum to set the scarlet.”
-
-So through the long, foggy afternoon it was Polly Callendar’s homely
-task to watch the oven and tend the “scarlet kettle.” But with evening
-came an unexpected diversion. A knock was heard at the outer door; and
-when old Rastus, the negro servant, had opened it, a tall young man,
-in provincial garb, inquired how far it was to Boston and what was the
-road. Learning that the distance was still considerable, he entreated
-hospitality, saying that having ridden since dawn, he was both tired
-and wet. Polly at first demurred, but in the end, moved by his plight
-and persuaded somewhat by his respectful manners and handsome face, she
-sent Rastus to stable the horse.
-
-She spread a plentiful supper before the wayfarer; and then, because
-his appearance pleased her, she brewed for him some of her mother’s
-cherished tea, and poured it into one of the delicate china teacups
-that had come from England.
-
-But the young man ate in silence, notwithstanding these attentions.
-Truth to say, he was ill at ease. He was on his way to join the
-minute-men, and he was bringing with him a hundred pounds that had been
-contributed by the “patriot committee” of his native town. He feared
-that in some way the redcoats had been given a hint of his mission.
-Mounted men had stared hard at him that day, and he had thought it
-wise to avoid a troop patrolling the roads. And now, despite the
-quality of his supper, he paused to listen anxiously whenever horses’
-hoofs or voices were heard without. Polly, noticing his uneasiness and
-marking his blue colonial home-spun, drew her own inferences.
-
-Of a sudden the young man took note of the kettle and its scarlet
-contents.
-
-“That is a bright dye which you have there, mistress,” he remarked.
-“Are you fond of so high a color?”
-
-“In good truth, sir, and why not?” replied Polly. “Have you fault to
-find with it?”
-
-“I would be but a churl, an I did,” answered the guest gallantly,
-“since it is scarcely more pink than the cheeks of my fair hostess.
-
-“The redcoats must feel flattered at your preference,” he added.
-
-“And is it not the hue that all loyal subjects should prefer?” queried
-Polly demurely.
-
-“Nay, but I will not gainsay you, mistress,” replied the young man.
-“And yet,” he added, “it is a color soon to fade under our American
-sun.”
-
-“But not from the hearts of the king’s loyal subjects,” retorted
-Polly. “This is no rebel household, sir. My kinsmen, who were here but
-yesterday, wear the scarlet and are the king’s loyal servants.” And
-saying this she observed her guest closely and saw that he winced.
-
-“Beyond doubt he is one of the patriots,” she thought. “But such a
-handsome youth! Moreover, he is most courteous, and his voice and ways
-are more gentle and respectful than those of Cousin Charles.”
-
-As for the stranger, his heart sank afresh. “I will pay for my supper
-and get on,” he thought. “I shall be safer abroad in the darkness than
-here.” And he rose to take leave as gently as he might, but at that
-moment the tramp of horses was again heard; and this time they did not
-pass, but pulled up before the house door.
-
-“My kinsmen, it is very like,” said Polly, smiling. “They wear sharp
-swords, sir.” Then, as she noted the hunted look which the young man
-cast about the room, her light and taunting manner changed. “Is it that
-you would not like to meet them, sir?” she asked, in a low tone.
-
-As she spoke there came an imperative rap at the outer door, and a cry
-of “Open in the king’s name!”
-
-“For heaven’s sake, mistress, show me some way out,” cried the
-stranger. “It is less that I fear their swords, but I am on a mission
-of importance.”
-
-“Open, madam! Open, Polly! It is I, your Cousin Charles; and they say
-there is a rascally rebel here!” cried the voice outside. “But we have
-the house surrounded.”
-
-Polly had turned toward a rear door, but hearing these last words,
-darted to the centre of the room again. For an instant she was at
-a loss. Then her eyes fell on the door of her mother’s storeroom,
-a closet beside the large chimney, which it was Madam Callendar’s
-practice always to keep locked; but in the haste of departing that day
-she had forgotten to take the key.
-
-“Here, sir,” Polly whispered. “Quick, be quick!” and she unlocked the
-door, half pushed the man within and hastily turning the key again, put
-it in her pocket.
-
-“Open! Open!” cried the voices outside. “Open in the king’s name!” and
-the raps were repeated.
-
-“Coming, good sirs, coming,” cried Polly. Then her eye fell on the
-young patriot’s greatcoat lying across the back of a chair. If seen,
-that would betray all. She snatched it up and plunged it into the great
-kettle of scarlet dye. Then throwing the door open and courtesying
-low, as was the custom of those days, she cried: “Good-evening, Cousin
-Charles. Welcome, good gentlemen. My mother has gone to Natick for the
-day. Ne’theless you are right welcome.”
-
-“Ay!” grumbled the young officer. “After my knuckles are skinned with
-knocking. But prithee, Polly, have you seen naught of this insolent
-knave?”
-
-“Indeed, Cousin Charles, this is but a sorry jest!” exclaimed Polly
-Callendar. “Since when has my family been aught but loyal to the king?”
-
-“True,” assented the Briton. “Yet the rascal may be lurking about.”
-
-“Enter, then, and see for yourselves,” cried Polly. “My mother would
-earnestly desire you to purge her house of rebels!”
-
-They came noisily in--while the young patriot’s heart beat fast--they
-peered into nooks and corners, and presently ascended to the attic.
-
-“Do not forget the cellar!” cried Polly gaily, opening the door and
-handing her cousin a lighted candle. “Perchance the knave is hiding in
-some bin or box.”
-
-The quest there proved as fruitless as in the chambers; but on emerging
-one of the party noted the closed door by the chimney and tried it.
-“Why locked?” he exclaimed. “The key, fair mistress.”
-
-“For that you will do well to ask my mother,” replied Polly carelessly.
-“The closet is my mother’s keeping-room; and it is ever her custom to
-carry the key in her pocket.”
-
-“True,” remarked her cousin, who knew the ways of the household. “The
-rogue will hardly have got into madam’s keeping-room. Doubtless he has
-slipped away.”
-
-“If ever he were here,” flashed back Polly. “But beyond doubt, good
-cousin and gentlemen, you must be hungry after your hard ride. Will you
-not partake of our cheer?”
-
-Nothing loath, the young redcoats gathered about the supper-table,
-where for an hour or more Polly maintained the reputation of the house
-for loyalty and good entertainment. In truth, the soldiers were slow
-to depart, and would hardly have gone by nine o’clock had not Polly
-adroitly reminded her kinsmen that the “Knave” they were pursuing would
-surely get clear away. Thereupon they took leave and rode off with
-much laughter.
-
-But fearful lest they might return, Polly waited long listening, and
-not until old Rastus had come in to bar the outer door for the night
-and close the shutters would she release her prisoner.
-
-“Come forth, sir,” she at last commanded, with assumed austerity. “What
-have we here? A rebel, I fear me, from all I am told.”
-
-“But one profoundly grateful to his preserver,” replied the young man;
-and to old Rastus’s great astonishment he took Mistress Polly’s hand
-and gallantly kissed the tips of her fingers, albeit they were tinged
-with scarlet from her dye.
-
-“Methinks, sir, it but ill becomes me to accept such thanks from one
-who confesses his disloyalty to King George,” Polly replied, still with
-seeming severity, “and whose name I do not even know. But since you are
-here, prithee take seat before the fire. For of necessity, sir, I have
-made a good Royalist of you, so far as your greatcoat covers you. See!”
-And with the clothes-stick she lifted the coat out of the kettle. “Not
-Cousin Charles’s own is a brighter scarlet!”
-
-The stranger burst into a hearty laugh.
-
-“Good faith, I had not thought to wear a scarlet coat!” he exclaimed.
-
-“Yet, sir, it may stand you in good stead as you ride into Boston
-to-morrow,” replied Polly. “It was of that I thought as I dipped it.
-And now let us powder a little alum in the mortar to set the hue. I
-would not have thy loyalty wash out, sir, in the first shower that
-falls on you.”
-
-As a consequence, one young patriot found himself powdering alum to dye
-his own coat scarlet. And midnight came and passed as he and Polly sat
-in front of the great brass kettle, and old Rastus nodded in the corner.
-
-Beyond doubt they became better acquainted in this time; and Polly
-certainly learned the stranger’s name, for as the tall old clock in the
-corner struck one, she said, “It is now time to wring thy coat, John
-Fenderson.”
-
-When wrung, it had still to be dried; and Polly put it for an hour into
-the warm brick oven.
-
-Somewhat puckered from the dye, the garment still required pressing
-out; and to heat a sad-iron and accomplish this occupied yet another
-hour. The old clock struck three.
-
-“Truly, John Fenderson, making a king’s man of thee has been a long
-task!” exclaimed Polly, as at last she held up the scarlet coat for
-inspection. “Don it, sir! I would even desire to mark the effect.”
-And what John Fenderson would not have done at the king’s command
-he appears now to have done without hesitation at Polly Callendar’s
-request. For between these two young people the grievous differences of
-Tory and Patriot had already been dispelled--in the dyeing of a coat
-before a fireplace.
-
-“Good luck, John Fenderson, in thy brave coat,” said Polly at four
-o’clock, as the young man took leave, after she had given him
-breakfast. “May the color hold,” she added. “But if it fades----”
-
-“I shall come back to you,” said John.
-
-“Ah, but it will grieve me when I hear that thou art to be hanged for a
-rebel!” cried Polly from the door.
-
-“Nay, Mistress Polly, I should have but to send for thee to teach me
-how to dye!” replied John Fenderson.
-
-So he rode away, and had cause to be thankful for the disguise the coat
-offered him; for while riding through Newton a little before noon, he
-was hailed by three redcoats, two of whom raised their muskets; but the
-third held them back, saying, “Nay, by his coat he must be one of our
-men.”
-
-There is much reason to believe that Mistress Polly’s loyalty to King
-George was ever afterward open to question. At any rate, the records of
-John Fenderson’s native town show that he married in 1779, and that the
-bride’s name was Polly Callendar.
-
-
-
-
-NEIL DAVIDSON IN DISGUISE[X]
-
-By MARY TRACY EARLE
-
- A boy in General Greene’s army sets out to capture a famous Tory
- marauder and finds him to be his own brother. What does he do?
-
-
-In the early days of March, 1781, Neil Davidson was thirteen years
-old and had been five months in the patriot army. He had taken part
-in several skirmishes and had lived in camps where food was scarce
-and clothing scarcer, where a blanket for four men was a prize, and
-companies were sometimes obliged to stay away from review because their
-uniform had been worn through to that of mother nature. He had shared
-the hard marches by which Greene and Morgan kept the prisoners taken
-at Cowpens from recapture by Cornwallis, and during which Greene had
-reported that the naked feet of his men marked their way with blood.
-
-It was a strange experience for a boy, and Neil had become such a queer
-combination of outspoken child and shrewd veteran as can be matched
-in these days only by the gamins who fight their battles in the city
-streets. Without losing his boyishness he had acquired a military
-swagger which he knew enough to suppress when there was any advantage
-to be gained by acting like a child, and underneath swagger and
-boyishness there burned the revengeful, deep-seated hatred of Tories
-which marked all but a few of the patriots of those days. In Neil
-it was an unchildlike passion, giving him strength on long marches,
-putting a keen barb to his wit, making him trusted in the army beyond
-his years.
-
-Before the real beginning of the Revolution his father had been hanged
-by the Tory government for taking part in a popular outbreak, and his
-mother had been crazed by grief. From the shadow of such an early
-childhood Neil had emerged almost a man in purpose at thirteen and very
-fierce at heart.
-
-Yet, in spite of a bronzed face, he was still exceedingly coltish
-and immature in appearance, with round, wide-open blue eyes, a shock
-of long, sunburned hair, and legs that also were long and sunburned,
-having seldom been covered by a substantial, untorn garment. There was
-a great amount of speed available in the bare legs, and under the shock
-of hair there was plenty of boyish logic and common sense.
-
-Altogether, he was handy to have about, and he was sent on so many
-errands from officer to officer that he was known around all the
-cheerless campfires in Greene’s army. Even the general kept him in
-mind, and at times permitted him to undertake important missions. He
-had carried more than one of the appeals for reënforcements which
-Greene kept sending to the governors of North and South Carolina and
-Virginia, and to the military leaders of the three states. His way had
-lain through a country swarming with enemies, and he had come safely
-through encounters in which a man’s errand would have been investigated.
-
-One night, during the anxious two weeks before the Battle of Guilford
-Court House, Greene sent for him again. The army was moving stealthily
-along muddy roads through the dusk of starlight, for the general
-thought his force still too weak to risk an engagement and evaded
-Cornwallis by shifting his camp every twenty-four hours, in the dark.
-The footsore men plodded forward silently. Loss of sleep was wearing
-them out. Greene himself had hardly slept for a week, and physical
-exhaustion united with his judgment in declaring that the strain could
-not last much longer. If sufficient reënforcements did not arrive
-soon, he would have to fight without them, and disaster would result.
-He sighed and settled himself wearily in the saddle. For a moment his
-overburdening anxiety slipped from him, and he dozed as he rode. Then
-he straightened himself with a start. A small lanky figure had bobbed
-up beside his horse out of the obscurity of the night, and he caught
-the motion of a salute.
-
-“Ah, Neil,” he said, “I sent for you to see if you are ready to
-undertake another dangerous errand. I fear my last message to Colonel
-William Campbell has been intercepted. I want some one to go out, try
-to meet him, and hurry him forward. If he has not heard of our recent
-movements, he may be marching toward the Dan River.”
-
-He hesitated a moment, as if he had more to say, but Neil did not wait
-for it. “I’m your man, sir!” he declared.
-
-The general smiled at the boy’s confidence. “That was my impression,
-too,” he admitted. “Yet there is one strong argument against your
-going. Gillespie, one of the scouts, has just come in. He’s been
-hanging around Tarleton’s Legion and he’s heard you spoken of. It seems
-that the enemy took notice of you in the affair at the mill the other
-day, and that rascal who has your name, Davidson, the bushwhacker, is
-with the Legion, and he swears to capture you; so if any of Tarleton’s
-men come across a boy of your size and description, he will have hard
-work to get away from them.”
-
-“But even if they are on the lookout for a boy, they’re just as much
-on the lookout for every grown man in your army,” Neil urged. “Anybody
-that the Tories get hold of will have to give a good account of
-himself.”
-
-“So I reasoned,” the general said, “and at the same time I am unwilling
-to have you undertake this without some safeguard. You are about the
-height of an ordinary young woman, and when we reach Mrs. Bynum’s
-plantation, where we shall make our next camp, I shall have her furnish
-you with clothing and a side-saddle, and you will go disguised as a
-girl. That is all for the present. Report to me at the Bynum house as
-soon as you reach the plantation, and keep this to yourself in the
-meantime.”
-
-Neil saluted and dropped back. As soon as he was at a safe distance he
-gave a long whistle of surprise. Then he began to laugh. The dismay
-with which he first thought of concealing his military identity in
-petticoats gave way to excitement. He began softly to hum the air and
-words of a rude ballad which celebrated the victory of King’s Mountain,
-five months before, and was passing from mouth to mouth through the
-patriot army.
-
-“Stop that singing!” a gruff voice said in his ear. “Are you signalling
-to Cornwallis?”
-
-In the darkness it was impossible to see if the speaker were officer or
-man from the ranks. Neil took the risk and answered like an equal: “Who
-are you that are giving me orders? I left General Greene ahead there,
-and just now I’m taking orders direct from him.”
-
-“Oh!” the voice returned ironically, but without apparent offense,
-“then I reckon you’re the great Neil Davidson. I’m merely Joe
-Gillespie, scout.”
-
-“I have heard of you,” Neil said good-naturedly. “The general was
-speaking of you just now.”
-
-“Do you know who was speaking of you lately?” Gillespie asked. He took
-the boy by the arm and walked along with him through the dark. “That
-namesake of yours, Sandy Davidson. He’s taken a notion to capture you,
-and you want to be as wary as you know how. He’s the worst of the Tory
-bushwhackers, and the most daredevil. If he’s decided to capture you
-because your name’s the same as his, he’s likely to walk right into
-Greene’s camp and do it. It’s nothing to him that there’s a reward out
-for his life.”
-
-“I reckon he’ll not find it as easy to catch me as he thinks,” Neil
-said. A tremor of fierceness came into his voice. He threw back his
-shoulders, and his companion could feel his arm grow tense. “But if
-I live long enough I’ll capture him and see him hanged. He has my
-brother’s name.”
-
-“The name is common.”
-
-“It shan’t be common among Tories!” the boy declared. “They killed my
-brother. They shan’t have his name.”
-
-“How did they kill him?” Gillespie’s voice was stirred. It was an old
-story, the loss of life on either side in the bitter Civil War that
-tore the Carolinas, but it was a story that never found dull ears.
-
-“I don’t know,” Neil said. “I was a very little boy and the Indians had
-carried me off. When I was exchanged and brought home my mother told me
-that the Tories had killed Sandy. She didn’t say how--she never would
-tell me how. She’d had so much trouble that she was--well, queer, and
-she never would tell anything very much. I was so scared and lonesome
-that I ran away to the Indians, and stayed with them again a long time.
-Mother was just the same when I came back. She didn’t need me and I
-couldn’t do anything for her, and that’s why I followed the army to
-fight the Tories in Sandy’s place. And I don’t intend to let any Tory
-live with his name.”
-
-Gillespie had been seasoned in border warfare, yet he felt
-uncomfortable at hearing a mere child use the fierce language of the
-war. “Pshaw, now,” he said, “it’s an ugly business to plan to kill men
-one at a time! When a whole army gets up before you and you shoot at
-it, that’s a different matter. And you want to be careful; besides,
-he’s a good deal more likely to get hold of you and do what he pleases
-with you than you are with him.”
-
-“I’ll be careful,” Neil agreed--“careful to capture him.”
-
-There were so many things to occupy the general’s attention that it
-was nearly daybreak before the messenger was despatched; but at last,
-with his length and thinness encased in linsey-woolsey petticoats and a
-sunbonnet on his head, the boy rode off through the cold morning chill.
-
-Before Neil started the sunbonnet had been ripped open, and Greene had
-slipped a letter to Colonel Campbell in between the lining and one of
-the slats which stiffened its brim. Neil was as conscious of the letter
-as he was of the rattling of the bonnet round his ears and of the
-imprisoned feeling which it gave him to wear it. The general had told
-him to treat the bonnet carelessly if he fell into trouble; to swing
-it by the strings as a girl might, and to swing it into a fire if
-possible; but for the first hour Neil was in no trouble except from the
-bonnet and the petticoats and the necessity of sitting sidewise on his
-horse.
-
-He was riding through woodland; day began to sift slowly down among
-the dark tree-trunks. The branches above him grew astir with wakening
-birds; the cold air was sweet from unseen jasmine flowers.
-
-The world seemed so quiet, and there was such a sense of peace abroad,
-that Neil did one of the few imprudent things of his service. His
-side-saddle continually troubled him; he felt insecurely perched on it,
-and his back was twisted in an unfamiliar way. If he rode astride for
-a while, during this secure, peaceful time, he reasoned that the rest
-of the journey would be easier for him when in full daylight he was
-obliged to play the girl decorously and be constantly on his guard.
-
-One leg swung over. He pressed his knees into the horse’s sides, and
-gave a suppressed whoop of joy. The horse sped forward, and just for
-practice, he jerked off his sunbonnet and swung it round and round his
-head by the strings; the blood danced in him; he leaned forward and
-gave a hissing chirrup to the horse; his petticoats flapped in the
-wind, and the trees fled hastily to the rear. Now was his chance for
-making time. To feel himself firmly and naturally seated on the horse
-was glorious. He swung the bonnet round his head again. One of the
-strings slipped from his hand and the other tore from the bonnet. The
-bonnet flew to the roadside, and before Neil could check his horse it
-was rods behind.
-
-As he rode back for it, a man stepped out of the woods and picked it
-from the bush where it had lodged. At sight of him Neil flung his stray
-leg back where it belonged, and blushed to a depth of embarrassment
-which would have done credit to any girl.
-
-“If you please, sir,” he said, “I just lost that bonnet.”
-
-The stranger held the bonnet behind him and laughed. He was a tall,
-broad-shouldered fellow with a face which made Neil sure that he was a
-man to be reckoned with. The features were large, yet mobile, and his
-pale, greenish eyes had a spark of mischief in them which looked as if
-it might turn to fire. Neil felt sorely perturbed, and he had no need
-to play a part in order to show timidity. Sandy Davidson came back
-into his mind; but if this were Sandy, there would be small chance to
-capture him in such a meeting, and the most Neil could hope was to get
-away.
-
-Whoever the stranger might be, his first object was to tease. “What’ll
-you give me for it, Miss Tomboy?” he asked.
-
-“I--I don’t have anything to give you,” Neil stammered.
-
-“Then you’ll not get it,” the other said, slipping the bonnet inside
-his blouse. “You don’t really want it you know. Anybody can see from
-your brown face that you’re not used to wearing a bonnet.”
-
-“But I do want it!” Neil declared. He was wild with anxiety and had no
-idea what to do. If the man had not slipped it into his tunic, he might
-have ridden closer, snatched it, and galloped off.
-
-The man stood laughing at him. “I’ll swap it for a kiss,” he offered.
-
-Neil drew back. “No, you’ll not!” he cried angrily. His indignation was
-for himself rather than for the girl he pretended to be. As far as he
-could remember, neither his mother nor the Indians nor the soldiers had
-ever offered him a bargain of this kind. He had never been kissed since
-his babyhood. His face set, his blue eyes turned fierce, and he lifted
-the switch which he used as a riding whip.
-
-The stranger fell back a pace and stared with a look which was first
-startled and then keen. “You’re not a girl; you’re Neil Davidson!” he
-said abruptly.
-
-Neil’s hand dropped. He stared back at the stranger. Something far away
-and dimly remembered, something which had made the boy tremble from
-the first, was in the man’s features. There was no question now. This
-was Sandy Davidson, and he had not only borrowed a name from Neil’s
-brother, he had borrowed a face.
-
-As they stood bewildered a faint sound reached them. Although distant,
-there was no mistaking the murmurous trample of many feet.
-
-The man took Neil’s horse by the bridle. “You don’t deny that you’re
-Neil Davidson, and you’re my prisoner,” he said. “That’s Tarleton’s
-Legion. I was waiting here till it came by.”
-
-“Why do you think I’m Neil Davidson?”
-
-“Can’t you guess?” For the first time the man’s voice had a troubled
-sound. “It was when you got so mad. Your eyes blazed just as _hers_
-always did, and then all at once I could see your baby face--changed a
-lot, but looking right out at me. You always looked like mother.”
-
-Neil’s hand closed on the horn of the side-saddle. The name “Sandy
-Davidson” had not prepared him; the resemblance had seemed only an
-added insult.
-
-“You needn’t be afraid,” the other said, noticing how pale he had grown
-under his tan. “Since I heard of you in Greene’s army I’ve vowed I’d
-catch you, and now I have. Our family has done enough against the king.
-But I’ll see that nobody hurts you.”
-
-Neil straightened himself with a jerk. His timidity was gone and his
-bewilderment was yielding to an understanding of what his mother had
-meant when she said that the Tories had killed Sandy. “And since I’ve
-heard of a Tory with my brother’s name, I’ve vowed to capture _him_!”
-he cried. “I’ve vowed that no Tory named Sandy Davidson should live,
-for mother said they’d killed you.”
-
-The other gave an impatient laugh. “Why don’t you capture me, then?” he
-asked. “Here I am. I told mother I was on the king’s side, and she said
-I was dead to her. She was growing crazy and driving me crazy begging
-me to revenge father’s death, when father was a rebel and deserved
-what he got. She drove me out of the house when I said I was a king’s
-man.” He shrugged his shoulders as if to put an end to accounting
-for himself. “Of course you’ve got messages on you, or you’d not be
-disguised. Hand them over and it will save you trouble. I’m your very
-affectionate brother, though you would like to collect that reward
-for me, but I can tell you Tarleton’s a very affectionate brother to
-nobody!”
-
-The sunbonnet with the letter in it was still in the front of Sandy’s
-hunting-shirt. “You can search me,” Neil said. “You’ll find no letters.”
-
-“Then what were you sent for?”
-
-“To practise riding on a side-saddle. You noticed that I don’t take
-very kindly to sitting this way.”
-
-“You’re pretty cool for a prisoner,” Sandy said approvingly. “I’ll
-search you fast enough, but I reckon we’ll be as good friends as when
-you wore dresses all the time.”
-
-“Don’t think it!” Neil cried out. “Don’t think I’ll ever----” He
-checked himself, remembering that he was absolutely powerless in
-the hands of a man whose name stood for that all was unmerciful. If
-there was any kindly feeling left in such a man, Neil would need it.
-The trample of feet grew louder, and the brothers waited in silence,
-half-concealed by the clump of bushes on which the bonnet had caught.
-
-Neil was busy with the possibilities of getting away. He looked at his
-brother critically, trying to judge what might be expected of him. Hard
-living, hard fighting, and cruelty had left strangely slight marks upon
-Sandy. His face was almost noble, suggesting possibilities which he was
-fast outliving.
-
-The boy’s head began to whirl with remembrance of the days when he had
-toddled at Sandy’s heels; the two had shunned the house where their
-mother’s half-crazed talk of revenge left them no peace; they had
-stayed in the fields together; sometimes the big boy had teased the
-little one, but sometimes he had snatched Neil up and tossed and played
-with him, making him blissfully certain that they were of one age and
-stature--rough, loving mates.
-
-Neil’s only bright memories of home were of Sandy. It was because they
-were so bright that he had hated the Tory Sandy so much more than any
-other Tory; and yet this man, this bushwhacker and marauder, had spoken
-of the old days.
-
-Once Neil leaned forward to ask him if he recalled some trifling
-circumstance which stood out with special plainness in his own
-recollection, but he could not form the words. Relive the past with a
-Tory? He shook his head savagely and looked in the direction of the
-approaching troops.
-
-The soldiers were coming into view round a curve in the road--not
-Tarleton’s Legion, but a body of plainly dressed militia such as might
-be found in either army, such as might have reinforced Tarleton. For
-the space of a breath Sandy and Neil watched them. Then an officer
-galloped forward. The brightening daylight struck across his red hair
-and large, high-boned face. It was Col. William Campbell leading his
-riflemen to Greene.
-
-Before Sandy could stir Neil caught him by the arm. In their partial
-shelter they had not yet been seen. “If you run, I’ll call out your
-name and you’ll be a dead man!” he whispered. “That’s Campbell’s
-regiment, and you’re my prisoner! Give me back that bonnet. There’s a
-message in it to Colonel Campbell from General Greene!” His words grew
-swifter with triumph. “Oh, you laughed when I said I’d vowed to capture
-you. You were sure it was Tarleton’s regiment----”
-
-Sandy nodded. For once a surprise had dazed him and he stood quiescent,
-realizing that if Neil gave the alarm those grim-faced men would scour
-the woods and hunt him down. “Oh, I’m caught!” he acknowledged grimly.
-“You’ll have the pleasure of seeing me shot or hanged.”
-
-“I said I’d capture you,” Neil repeated. “I said no Tory should
-live----” Something unexpected choked his words. The vision of deaths
-he had seen in the army passed before him, and then of two boys romping
-together in a field. It was only an instant, but the love and the hate
-of his life struggled together. He began to tremble.
-
-“The bonnet!” he begged. “If I have the bonnet I can hold their
-notice.”
-
-“You mean you’ll help me off?” Sandy’s voice broke huskily. “Little
-Neil--I’ll remember this, I’ll----” But there was no time for words.
-He pulled the bonnet from his tunic, turned and walked coolly into the
-woods, just as the soldiers caught sight of Neil’s higher figure on the
-horse.
-
-Neil rode to meet the regiment, holding his bonnet in his hands. He
-forgot his disguise and saluted like a soldier.
-
-“Colonel Campbell, I’m not a girl. I’m Neil Davidson, and I’ve brought
-you a message from General Greene,” he said. “It’s sewed inside the
-bonnet.”
-
-But the colonel had caught a motion between the trees. “Who’s that
-moving off there?” he asked sharply.
-
-“A man I was talking to,” Neil said. “I was riding fast and my bonnet
-flew off. A stranger stepped out of the woods and picked it up for me.
-He thought I was a girl, of course, and teased me at first. He wanted
-me to kiss him before he’d give it back. I was nearly wild on account
-of the message. Then we heard you coming. He stopped teasing and waited
-with me until I told him you were my friends.”
-
-“Humph! It’s pretty evident we weren’t his friends; but I reckon he’s
-not worth following!” the colonel commented. He tore open the bonnet,
-found the message in it, and troubled himself no more about the man in
-the woods.
-
-“Ah, Neil, you brought them in!” the general said, when Neil reported
-to him. As it chanced, the regiment would have arrived just as safely
-without the message, yet he let his grave, tired eyes rest approvingly
-on the boy.
-
-Neil had on his own tattered clothes again. His head was as shaggy
-and bare as usual, and his brown legs nearly as bare, but there was
-something unfamiliar in his face. “Yes, sir,” he answered impetuously.
-“I brought them in, but I let the worst Tory in the country go free.”
-
-Greene smiled half-incredulously. “Why was that?” he asked.
-
-Neil was silent a moment, and the general saw tears rising in the blue
-eyes that he had supposed were always shrewd or fierce.
-
-“He was my brother!” Neil broke out at last, and because his heart was
-so full that he had to tell some one, he told the big, considerate
-general the whole story. “And you may do what you please with me,
-general,” he ended. “I had to let him go free.”
-
-The general took the boy’s small, shaking hand. “I don’t think you let
-him go _free_, exactly, Neil,” he said. “That minute of mercy will make
-him more or less your captive all his life.”
-
-
-
-
-JOHN PAUL JONES: THE BOY OF THE ATLANTIC[Y]
-
-By RUPERT S. HOLLAND
-
- A little Scottish lad dreamed of a great sea fight--of a flag with
- red and white stripes, and white stars on a blue field. This story
- tells how his dream came true.
-
-
-The summer afternoon was fair, and the waves that rolled upon the north
-shore of Solway Firth in the western Lowlands of Scotland were calm and
-even. But the tide was coming in, and inch by inch was covering the
-causeway that led from shore to a high rock some hundred yards away.
-The rock was bare of vegetation, and sheer on the landward side, but on
-the face toward the sea, were rough jutting points that would give a
-climber certain footholds, and near the top smooth ledges.
-
-On one or two of these ledges sea-gulls had built their nests, tucked
-in under projecting points where they would be sheltered from wind and
-rain. Now the gulls would sweep in from sea, curving in great circles
-until they reached their homes, and then would sit on the ledge calling
-to their mates across the water. Except for the cries of the gulls,
-however, the rock was very quiet. The lazy, regular beat of the waves
-about its base was very soothing. On the longest ledge, below the
-sea-gulls’ nests, lay a boy about twelve years old, sound asleep, his
-face turned toward the ocean.
-
-Either the gulls’ cries or the sun, now slanting in the west, disturbed
-him. He did not open his eyes, but he clenched his fists, and muttered
-incoherently. Presently with a start he awoke. He rubbed his eyes, and
-then sat up. “What a queer dream!” he said aloud.
-
-The ledge where he sat was not a very safe place. There was scarcely
-room for him to move, and directly below him was the sea. But this boy
-was quite as much at home on high rocks or in the water as he was on
-land, and he was very fond of looking out for distant sailing-vessels
-and wondering where they might be bound.
-
-He glanced along the north shore to the little fishing hamlet of
-Arbigland where he lived. He saw that the tide had come in rapidly
-while he slept, and that the path to the shore was now covered. He
-stood up and stretched his bare arms, brown with sunburn, high over
-his head. Then he started to climb down from the ledge by the jutting
-points of rock.
-
-He was as sure-footed as any mountaineer. His clothes were old, so
-neither rock nor sea could do them much harm; his feet were bare. He
-was short but very broad, and his muscles were strong and supple. When
-he came to the foot of the rock he stood a moment, hunting for the
-deepest pool at its base, then, loosing his hold, he dove into the
-water.
-
-In a few seconds he was up again, floating on his back; and a little
-later he struck out, swimming hand over hand, toward a sandy beach to
-the south.
-
-A young man, wearing the uniform of a lieutenant in the British navy,
-stood on the beach, watching the boy swim. When the latter had landed
-and shaken the water from him much as a dog would, the man approached
-him. “Where on earth did you come from, John Paul?” he asked with a
-laugh. “The first thing I knew I saw you swimming in from sea.”
-
-“I was out on the rock asleep,” said the boy. “The tide came up and cut
-me off. And oh, Lieutenant Pearson, I had the strangest dream! I dreamt
-I was in the middle of a great sea fight. I was captain of a ship, and
-her yard-arms were on fire, and we were pouring broadsides into the
-enemy, afraid any minute that we’d sink. How we did fight that ship.”
-
-The young officer’s eyes glowed. “And I hope you may some day, John!”
-he exclaimed.
-
-“But the strangest part was that our ship didn’t fly the English flag,”
-said the boy. “At the masthead was a flag I’d never seen, red and white
-with a blue field filled with stars in the corner. What country’s flag
-is that?”
-
-Pearson thought for a moment. “There’s no such flag,” he said finally.
-“I know them all, and there’s none like that. The rest of your dream
-may come true, but not that about the flag. Come, let’s be walking
-back to Arbigland.”
-
-Although John Paul’s father came of peaceful farmer and fisher folk
-who lived about Solway Firth, his mother had been a “Highland lassie,”
-descended from one of the fighting clans in the Grampian Hills. The
-boy had much of the Highlander’s love of wild adventure, and found it
-hard to live the simple life of the fishing village. The sea appealed
-to him, and he much preferred it to the small Scotch parish school. His
-family were poor, and as soon as he was able he was set to steering
-fishing yawls and hauling lines. At twelve he was as sturdy and capable
-as most boys at twenty.
-
-Many men in Arbigland had heard John Paul beg his father to let him
-cross the Solway to the port of Whitehaven and ship on some vessel
-bound for America, where his older brother William had found a new
-home. But his father saw no opening for his younger son in such a life.
-All the way back to town that afternoon the boy told Lieutenant Pearson
-of his great desire, and the young officer said he would try to help
-him.
-
-The boy’s chance, however, came in another way. A few days later
-it chanced that Mr. James Younger, a big ship-owner, was on the
-landing-place of Arbigland when some of the villagers caught sight of a
-small fishing yawl beating up against a stiff northeast squall, trying
-to gain the shelter of the little tidal creek that formed the harbor of
-the town.
-
-Mr. Younger looked long at the boat and then shook his head. “I don’t
-think she’ll do it,” he said dubiously.
-
-Yet the boat came on, and he could soon see that the only crew were a
-man and a boy. The boy was steering, handling the sheets and giving
-orders, while the man simply sat on the gunwale to trim the boat.
-
-“Who’s the boy?” asked the ship-owner.
-
-“John Paul,” said a bystander. “That’s his father there.”
-
-Mr. Younger looked at the man pointed out, who was standing near,
-and who did not seem to be in the least alarmed. “Are you the lad’s
-father?” he asked.
-
-The man looked up and nodded. “Yes, that’s my boy John conning the
-boat,” said he. “He’ll fetch her in. This isn’t much of a squall for
-him!”
-
-The father spoke with truth. The boy handled his small craft with
-such skill that he soon had her alongside the wharf. As soon as John
-Paul had landed Mr. Younger stepped up to the father and asked to be
-introduced to the son. Then the ship-owner told him how much he had
-admired his seamanship, and asked if he would care to sail as master’s
-apprentice in a new vessel he owned, which was fitting out for a voyage
-to Virginia and the West Indies. The boy’s eyes danced with delight; he
-begged his father to let him go, and finally Mr. Paul consented. The
-twelve-year-old boy had won his wish to go to sea.
-
-A few days later the brig _Friendship_ sailed from Whitehaven,
-with small John Paul on board, and after a slow voyage which lasted
-thirty-two days dropped anchor in the Rappahannock River of Virginia.
-
-The life of a colonial trader was very pleasant in 1760. The
-sailing-vessels usually made a triangular voyage, taking some six
-months to go from England to the colonies, then to the West Indies, and
-so east again. About three of the six months were spent at the small
-settlements on shore, discharging goods from England, taking on board
-cotton and tobacco, and bartering with the merchants.
-
-The Virginians who lived on their great plantations with many servants
-were the most hospitable people in the world, always eager to entertain
-a stranger, and the English sailors were given the freedom of the
-shore. The _Friendship_ anchored a short distance down the river from
-where John Paul’s older brother lived, and the boy immediately went to
-see him and stayed as his guest for some time.
-
-This brother William had been adopted by a wealthy planter named Jones,
-and the latter was delighted with the young John Paul, and tried to get
-him to leave the sailor’s life and settle on the Rappahannock. But much
-as John liked the easy life of the plantation, the fine riding horses,
-the wide fields and splendid rivers, the call of the sea was dearer to
-him, and when the _Friendship_ dropped down the Rappahannock bound for
-Tobago and the Barbadoes he was on board of her.
-
-Those were adventurous days for sailors and merchants. Money was to be
-made in many ways, and consciences were not overcareful as to the ways.
-The prosperous traders of Virginia did not mind taking an interest in
-some ocean rover bound on pirates’ business, or in the more lawful
-slave-trade with the west coast of Africa. For a time, however, young
-John Paul sailed for Mr. Younger, and was finally paid by being given a
-one-sixth interest in a ship called _King George’s Packet_.
-
-The boy was now first mate, and trade with England being dull, he
-and the captain decided to try the slave-trade. They made prosperous
-voyages between Jamaica and the coast of Guinea, helping to found the
-fortunes of some of the best-known families of America by importing
-slaves.
-
-After a year, however, John Paul tired of the business, and sold his
-share of the ship to the captain for about one thousand guineas. He was
-not yet twenty-one, but his seafaring life had already made him fairly
-well-to-do. He planned to go home and see his family in Scotland, and
-took passage in the brig _John o’ Gaunt_.
-
-Life on shipboard was full of perils then, and very soon after the
-brig had cleared the Windward Islands the terrible scourge of yellow
-fever was found to be on the vessel. Within a few days the captain, the
-mate, and all of the crew but five had died of the disease. John Paul
-was fully exposed to it, but he and the five men escaped it. He was
-the only one of those left who knew anything about navigation, so he
-took command, and after a stormy passage, with a crew much too small
-to handle the brig, he managed to bring her safely to Whitehaven with
-all her cargo. He handled her as skilfully as he had the small yawl in
-Solway Firth.
-
-The owners of the _John o’ Gaunt_ were delighted and gave John Paul and
-his five sailors the ten per cent. share of the cargo which the salvage
-laws entitled them to. In addition they offered him the command of a
-splendid full-rigged new merchantman which was to sail between England
-and America, and a tenth share of all profits. It was a very fine offer
-to a man who had barely come of age, but the youth had shown that he
-had few equals as a mariner.
-
-Good fortune shone upon him. He had no sooner sailed up the
-Rappahannock again and landed at the plantation where his brother
-lived than he learned that the rich old Virginian, William Jones, had
-recently died and in his will had named him as one of his heirs. He
-had always cherished a fancy for the sturdy, black-haired boy who had
-made him that visit. The will provided that John Paul should add the
-planter’s name to his own. The young captain did not object to this,
-and so henceforth he was known as John Paul Jones.
-
-Scores of stories are told of the young captain’s adventures. He loved
-danger, and it was his nature to enjoy a fight with men or with the
-elements. On a voyage to Jamaica he met with serious trouble. Fever
-again reduced the crew to six men, and Jones was the only officer able
-to be on deck. A huge negro named Maxwell tried to start a mutiny and
-capture the ship for his own uses. He rushed at Jones, and the latter
-had to seize a belaying-pin and hit him over the head. The man fell,
-badly hurt, and soon after reaching Jamaica died.
-
-Jones gave himself up to the authorities and was tried for murder
-on the high seas. He said to the court: “I had two brace of loaded
-pistols in my belt, and could easily have shot him. I struck with a
-belaying-pin in preference, because I hoped that I might subdue him
-without killing him.” He was acquitted, and soon after offered command
-of a new ship built to trade with India.
-
-The charm of life in Virginia appealed more and more strongly to the
-sailor. He liked the new country, the society of the young cities along
-the Atlantic Coast, and he spent less time on the high seas and more
-time fishing and hunting on his own land and in Chesapeake Bay. He
-might have settled quietly into such prosperous retirement had not the
-minute-men of Concord startled the new world into stirring action.
-
-John Paul Jones loved America and he loved ships. Consequently he was
-one of the very first to offer his services in building a new navy.
-Congress was glad to have him; he was known as a man of the greatest
-courage and of supreme nautical skill.
-
-On September 23, 1779, Paul Jones, on board the American ship _Bon
-Homme Richard_, met the British frigate _Serapis_ off the English
-coast. A battle of giants followed, for both ships were manned by brave
-crews and commanded by extraordinarily skilful officers. The short,
-black-haired, agile American commander saw his ship catch fire, stood
-on his quarter-deck while the blazing spars, sails, and rigging fell
-about him, while his men were mowed down by the terrific broadsides of
-the _Serapis_, and calmly directed the fire of shot at the enemy.
-
-Terribly as the _Bon Homme Richard_ suffered, the _Serapis_ was in
-still worse plight. Two thirds of her men were killed or wounded when
-Paul Jones gave the signal to board her. The Americans swarmed over the
-enemy’s bulwarks, and, armed with pistol and cutlass, cleared the deck.
-
-The captain of the _Serapis_ fought his ship to the last, but when he
-saw the Americans sweeping everything before them and already heading
-for the quarter-deck, he himself seized the ensign halyards and struck
-his flag. Both ships were in flames, and the smoke was so thick that
-it was some minutes before the men realized his surrender. There was
-little to choose between the two vessels; each was a floating mass of
-wreckage.
-
-A little later the English captain went on board the _Bon Homme
-Richard_ and tendered his sword to the young American. The latter
-looked hard at the English officer. “Captain Pearson?” he asked
-questioningly. The other bowed.
-
-“Ah, I thought so. I am John Paul Jones, once small John Paul of
-Arbigland in the Firth. Do you remember me?”
-
-Pearson looked at the smoke-grimed face, the keen black eyes, the fine
-figure. “I shouldn’t have known you. Yes, I remember now.”
-
-Paul Jones took the sword that was held out to him, and asked one of
-his midshipmen to escort the British captain to his cabin. He could not
-help smiling as a curious recollection came to him. He looked up at the
-masthead above him. There floated a flag bearing thirteen red and white
-stripes and a blue corner filled with stars. It was the very flag of
-his dream as a boy.
-
-Thus it was that the sturdy Scotch boy, full of the daring spirit of
-his Highland ancestors, became the great sea-fighter of a new country,
-and ultimately wrote his name in history as the Father of the American
-Navy.
-
-
-THE END
-
-
-
-
- [Illustration]
-
- THE COUNTRY LIFE PRESS
- GARDEN CITY, N. Y.
-
-
-
-
-FOOTNOTES:
-
-
-[A] From the _Youth’s Companion_, November 1, 1906.
-
-[B] From “Chivalric Days,” copyright, 1886, G. P. Putnam’s Sons.
-
-[C] Reprinted from “Twice Told Tales,” by permission of the Houghton
-Mifflin Company.
-
-[D] From _Harper’s Round Table_, June 25, 1895.
-
-[E] From WIDE AWAKE, July, 1886.
-
-[F] From the “Life of George Washington.”
-
-[G] From the _Youth’s Companion_, February 21, 1907.
-
-[H] From _Wide Awake_, July, 1890.
-
-[I] From the “Life of George Washington.”
-
-[J] From _Wide Awake_, July, 1886.
-
-[K] Reprinted by permission of the Houghton, Mifflin Company.
-
-[L] From _Harper’s Young People_. February 21, 1882.
-
-[M] Copyright by George W. Jacobs & Co.
-
-[N] From “Around the Hub,” copyright, 1881, by Samuel Adams Drake.
-Reprinted by permission of Little, Brown & Company.
-
-[O] From the _Youth’s Companion_, March 23, 1899.
-
-[P] From the _Youth’s Companion_, April 20, 1899.
-
-[Q] From _Harper’s Round Table_, July 9, 1895.
-
-[R] From “Around the Hub,” copyright, 1881, by Samuel Adams Drake.
-Reprinted by permission of Little, Brown & Company.
-
-[S] From “The Spy.”
-
-[T] From _Wide Awake_, July, 1886.
-
-[U] From the _Youth’s Companion_, June 11, 1908.
-
-[V] From “Stories of the War for Independence.”
-
-[W] From the _Youth’s Companion_, September 6, 1900.
-
-[X] From the _Youth’s Companion_, November 22, 1900.
-
-[Y] From “Historic Boyhoods,” copyright, 1900, by George W. Jacobs &
-Company.
-
-
-
-
-TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:
-
-
- Italicized text is surrounded by underscores: _italics_.
-
- Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.
-
- Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.
-
- Archaic or variant spelling has been retained.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHILDREN'S BOOK OF PATRIOTIC
-STORIES ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/69235-0.zip b/old/69235-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index 2a883f1..0000000
--- a/old/69235-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h.zip b/old/69235-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index e5187cd..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h/69235-h.htm b/old/69235-h/69235-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index bff3a2a..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/69235-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,11136 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html lang="en">
-<head>
- <meta charset="utf-8">
- <title>
- Children’s book of patriotic stories, by Various—A Project Gutenberg eBook
- </title>
- <link rel='icon' href='images/cover.jpg' type='image/x-cover'>
- <style>
-
-body {
- margin-left: 10%;
- margin-right: 10%;
-}
-
- h1,h2,h3 {
- text-align: center;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-p {
- margin-top: .51em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: .49em;
-}
-
-hr {
- width: 33%;
- margin-top: 2em;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
- margin-left: 33.5%;
- margin-right: 33.5%;
- clear: both;
-}
-
-hr.tb {width: 45%; margin-left: 27.5%; margin-right: 27.5%;}
-hr.chap {width: 65%; margin-left: 17.5%; margin-right: 17.5%;}
-@media print { hr.chap {display: none; visibility: hidden;} }
-
-div.chapter {page-break-before: always;}
-h2.nobreak {page-break-before: avoid;}
-
-table {
- margin-left: auto;
- margin-right: auto;
-}
-
-.tdl {text-align: left; text-indent: 0.5em;}
-.tdr {text-align: right;}
-
-.pagenum {
- position: absolute;
- left: 92%;
- font-size: smaller;
- text-align: right;
- font-style: normal;
- font-weight: normal;
- font-variant: normal;
- text-indent: 0;
-}
-
-.blockquot {
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
-}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .blockquot {
- margin-left: 7.5%;
- margin-right: 7.5%;
- margin-bottom: 2em;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap {
- text-indent: -0.35em;
-}
-p.drop-cap2 {
- text-indent: -0.75em;
-}
-
-p.drop-cap3 {
- text-indent: -0.75em;
- text-align: justify;
- margin-bottom: 0em;}
-
-p.drop-cap:first-letter, p.drop-cap2:first-letter, p.drop-cap3:first-letter
-{
- float: left;
- margin: 0em 0.15em 0em 0em;
- font-size: 250%;
- line-height:0.85em;
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap, .x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap2, .x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap3 {
- text-indent: 0em;
-}
-.x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap:first-letter, .x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap2:first-letter, .x-ebookmaker p.drop-cap3:first-letter
-{
- float: none;
- margin: 0;
- font-size: 100%;
-}
-
-.gap {padding-left: 4em;}
-
-.center {text-align: center;}
-
-.right {text-align: right;}
-
-.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;}
-
-.ph1 {text-align: center; font-size: large; font-weight: bold;}
-.ph2 {text-align: center; font-size: xx-large; font-weight: bold;}
-
-div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always; page-break-after: always;}
-div.titlepage p {text-align: center; font-weight: bold; line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 2em;}
-
-.xxlarge {font-size: 175%;}
-.xlarge {font-size: 150%;}
-.large {font-size: 125%;}
-
-.caption {font-weight: bold; text-align: center;}
-
-.x-ebookmaker .hide {display: none; visibility: hidden;}
-
-.figcenter {
- margin: auto;
- text-align: center;
- page-break-inside: avoid;
- max-width: 100%;
-}
-
-.footnote {margin-left: 20%; margin-right: 10%; font-size: 0.9em;}
-
-.footnote .label {position: absolute; right: 75%; text-align: right;}
-
-.fnanchor {
- vertical-align: super;
- font-size: .5em;
- text-decoration:
- none;
-}
-
-.poetry-container {text-align: center;}
-.poetry {display: inline-block; text-align: left;}
-.poetry .verse {text-indent: -2.5em; padding-left: 3em;}
-.poetry .stanza {margin: 1em auto;}
-.poetry .indent {text-indent: 1.5em;}
-.poetry .indent2 {text-indent: 2.5em;}
-.poetry .verseright { text-align: right;}
-
-.poetry .center {text-align: center;}
-@media print { .poetry {display: block;} }
-.x-ebookmaker .poetry {display: block;}
-
-.transnote {background-color: #E6E6FA;
- color: black;
- font-size:smaller;
- margin-left: 17.5%;
- margin-right: 17.5%;
- padding: 1em;
- margin-bottom: 1em;
- font-family:sans-serif, serif; }
-
- </style>
-</head>
-<body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Children&#039;s book of patriotic stories, by Asa Don Dickinson</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: Children&#039;s book of patriotic stories</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:1em;'>The spirit of &#039;76</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Editors: Asa Don Dickinson</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em;'>Helen Winslow Dickinson</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: October 25, 2022 [eBook #69235]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Tim Lindell, David E. Brown, and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive/American Libraries.)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHILDREN&#039;S BOOK OF PATRIOTIC STORIES ***</div>
-
-<div class="figcenter hide"><img src="images/coversmall.jpg" width="450" alt=""></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<h1>CHILDREN’S BOOK OF<br>
-PATRIOTIC STORIES</h1>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="ph1"><i>In the Same Series</i></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_ii.jpg" alt=""></div>
-
-<p class="center">
-CHILDREN’S BOOK OF CHRISTMAS STORIES<br>
-Edited by <span class="smcap">Asa Don Dickinson</span> and <span class="smcap">Ada M. Skinner</span><br>
-<br>
-CHILDREN’S BOOK OF THANKSGIVING STORIES<br>
-Edited by <span class="smcap">Asa Don Dickinson</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_frontispiece.jpg" alt=""></div>
-<p class="caption">THE SPIRIT OF ’76</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_title.jpg" alt=""></div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="titlepage">
-<p><span class="xxlarge">CHILDREN’S BOOK OF<br>
-PATRIOTIC STORIES</span></p>
-
-<p><span class="xlarge"><i>The Spirit of ’76</i></span></p>
-
-<p>EDITED BY<br>
-<span class="large">ASA DON DICKINSON</span><br>
-AND<br>
-<span class="large">HELEN WINSLOW DICKINSON</span></p>
-
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_titlelogo.jpg" alt=""></div>
-
-<p><i>Frontispiece</i></p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Garden City</span><span class="gap"><span class="smcap">New York</span></span><br>
-DOUBLEDAY, PAGE &amp; COMPANY<br>
-1918</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="center"><i>Copyright, 1917, by</i><br>
-<span class="smcap">Doubleday, Page</span> &amp; <span class="smcap">Company</span><br>
-<br>
-<i>All rights reserved, including that of<br>
-translation into foreign languages,<br>
-including the Scandinavian</i></p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">ACKNOWLEDGMENT</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>The Publishers desire to acknowledge the kindness
-of G. P. Putnam’s Sons, the Houghton
-Mifflin Company, Harper &amp; Brothers, the Perry
-Mason Company, the Lothrop, Lee &amp; Shepard
-Company, Little, Brown &amp; Company, George W.
-Jacobs &amp; Company, Silver, Burdett &amp; Company,
-and others, who have granted permission to
-reproduce herein selections from works bearing
-their copyright.</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak">PREFACE</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p>Here is a book of Patriotic Stories for children, to
-stand beside the similar collections of Christmas
-Stories and Thanksgiving Stories, which have already
-been welcomed by many parents, librarians, and
-teachers. Those seeking material appropriate to
-Washington’s Birthday and the Fourth of July will
-find here a goodly store, ready to their hands. The
-brief descriptive note at the head of each story will
-help the reader to choose one well suited to his audience.
-And the Table of Contents, as in the previous collections,
-indicates which tales will best please older, and
-which younger children.</p>
-
-<p>The Editors hope that a book of stirring tales like
-these—not history, but stories such as children love,
-that yet ring true in spirit—will serve to help,
-though ever so little, the Cause of Liberty and will aid
-in keeping aglow in the hearts of our young people the
-ardent spark which inspired our forefathers—the
-Spirit of ’76.</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse"><i>Napoleon was great, I know,</i></div>
-<div class="indent"><i>And Julius Cæsar, and all the rest,</i></div>
-<div class="verse"><i>But they didn’t belong to us, and so</i></div>
-<div class="indent"><i>I like George Washington the best.</i></div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verseright">—<span class="smcap">Anonymous.</span></div>
-</div></div></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xi">[xi]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">CONTENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<p class="center">(<i>Note.</i>—The stories marked with a star (*) will be most enjoyed
-by younger children; those marked with a dagger(†) are
-better suited to older children.)</p>
-
-<table>
-<tr><td class="tdr" colspan="2"><small>PAGE</small></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">Jabez Rockwell’s Powder-horn. <i>By Ralph D. Paine</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_3"> 3</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">The Little Lord of the Manor. <i>By Elbridge S.
-Brooks</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_19"> 19</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†Old Esther Dudley. <i>By Nathaniel Hawthorne</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_40"> 40</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*Betty’s Ride. <i>By Henry S. Canby</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_55"> 55</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">The First Blow for American Liberty. <i>By
-Emma W. Demeritt</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_64"> 64</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†The Battle of Bunker’s Hill. <i>By Washington
-Irving</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_79"> 79</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*Her Punishment. <i>By Elizabeth Gibson</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_91"> 91</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">Famous Words at Great Moments</td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_95"> 95</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*The Little Fifer. <i>By Helen M. Winslow</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_102"> 102</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†Ethan Allen and the Green Mountain Boys. <i>By
-Washington Irving</i> &#160; &#160; &#160; </td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_111"> 111</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">The Capture of the Hennepin Gun. <i>By Margaret
-Emma Ditto</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_117"> 117</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">Paul Revere’s Ride. <i>By Henry Wadsworth
-Longfellow</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_132"> 132</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*Tony’s Birthday and George Washington’s. <i>By
-Agnes Repplier</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_138"> 138</a><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xii">[xii]</span></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">A Venture in 1777. <i>By S. Weir Mitchell</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_145"> 145</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">A Tempest in a Big Tea-pot. <i>By Samuel Adams
-Drake</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_189"> 189</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†How the Warning Was Given. <i>By Mabel Nelson
-Thurston</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_192"> 192</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†Susan Tongs. <i>By Ethel Parton</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_206"> 206</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*The Little Minute-man. <i>By H. G. Paine</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_217"> 217</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*General Gage and the Boston Boys. <i>By Samuel
-Adams Drake</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_225"> 225</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†Washington and the Spy. <i>By James Fenimore
-Cooper</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_227"> 227</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*Three Washington Anecdotes. <i>Adapted from
-M. L. Weems</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_236"> 236</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">“When George the Third Was King.” <i>By
-Elbridge S. Brooks</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_241"> 241</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>*Their Flag Day. <i>By Herbert O. McCrillis</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_256"> 256</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">A True Story of the Revolution. <i>By Everett T.
-Tomlinson</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_260"> 260</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†Polly Callendar: Tory. <i>By Margaret Fenderson</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_270"> 270</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td class="tdl">Neil Davidson in Disguise. <i>By Mary Tracy Earle</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_279"> 279</a></td></tr>
-
-<tr><td>†John Paul Jones. <i>By Rupert S. Holland</i></td><td class="tdr"><a href="#Page_295"> 295</a></td></tr>
-</table>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<p class="ph2">CHILDREN’S BOOK OF<br>
-PATRIOTIC STORIES</p>
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">[3]</span>
-
-<p class="ph2">CHILDREN’S BOOK OF<br>
-PATRIOTIC STORIES</p>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">JABEZ ROCKWELL’S POWDER-HORN<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">[A]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Ralph D. Paine</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p>A story of the “Powder-horn rebellion” at Valley Forge, and of how
-gallant young Jabez Rockwell rallied a retreating regiment at the
-battle of Monmouth.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">“POOH, you are not tall enough to carry a musket.
-Go with the drums, and tootle on that fife you
-blew at the Battle of Saratoga. Away with you,
-little Jabez, crying for a powder-horn, when grown men
-like me have not a pouch amongst them for a single
-charge of powder!”</p>
-
-<p>A tall, gaunt Vermonter, whose uniform was a woolen
-bedcover draped to his knees, laughed loudly from the
-doorway of his log hut as he flung these taunts at the
-stripling soldier.</p>
-
-<p>A little way down the snowy street of these rude
-cabins a group of ragged comrades was crowding at the
-heels of a man who hugged a leather apron to his chest
-with both arms. Jabez Rockwell was in hot haste<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">[4]</span>
-to join the chase; nevertheless he halted to cry back at
-his critic:</p>
-
-<p>“It’s a lie! I put my fife in my pocket at Saratoga,
-and I fought with a musket as long and ugly as yourself.
-And a redcoat shot me through the arm. If the camp
-butcher has powder-horns to give away, I deserve one
-more than those raw militia recruits, so wait until you
-are a veteran of the Connecticut line before you laugh
-at us old soldiers.”</p>
-
-<p>The youngster stooped to tighten the clumsy wrappings
-of rags which served him for shoes, and hurried on
-after the little shouting mob which had followed the
-butcher down to the steep hillside of Valley Forge,
-where he stood at bay with his back to the cliff.</p>
-
-<p>“There are thirty of you desperate villains,” puffed
-the fat fugitive, “and I have only ten horns, which
-have been saved from the choicest of all the cattle
-I’ve killed these two months gone. I would I had my
-maul and skinning-knife here to defend myself. Take
-me to headquarters, if there is no other way to end
-this riot. I want no pay for the horns. They are my
-gift to the troops, but, Heaven help me! who is to decide
-how to divide them amongst so many!”</p>
-
-<p>“Stand him on his bald head, and loose the horns
-from the apron. As they fall, he who finds keeps!”
-roared one of the boisterous party.</p>
-
-<p>“Toss them all in the air and let us fight for them,”
-was another suggestion.</p>
-
-<p>The hapless butcher glared round him with growing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">[5]</span>
-dismay. At this rate half the American army would
-soon be clamoring round him, drawn by the chance to
-add to their poor equipment.</p>
-
-<p>By this time Jabez Rockwell had wriggled under the
-arms of the shouting soldiers, twisting like an uncommonly
-active eel, until he was close to the red-faced
-butcher. With ready wit the youngster piped up a
-plan for breaking the deadlock:</p>
-
-<p>“There are thirty of us, you say, that put you to
-rout, Master Ritter. Let us divide the ten horns by
-lot. Then you can return to your cow-pens with a
-whole skin and a clear conscience.”</p>
-
-<p>“There is more sense in that little carcass of yours
-than in all those big, hulking troopers that could spit
-you on a bayonet like a sparrow!” rumbled Master
-Ritter. “How shall the lots be drawn?”</p>
-
-<p>“Away with your lottery!” cried a burly rifleman,
-whose long hunting-shirt whipped in the bitter wind.
-“The road up the valley is well beaten down. The old
-forge is half a mile away. Do you mark a line, old
-beef-killing Jack, and we will run for our lives. The
-first ten to touch the stone wall of the smithy will take
-the ten prizes.”</p>
-
-<p>Some yelled approval, others fiercely opposed, and
-the wrangling was louder than before. Master Ritter,
-who had plucked up heart, began to steal warily from
-the hillside, hoping to escape in the confusion. A dozen
-hands clutched his collar and leather apron, and jerked
-him headlong back into the argument.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">[6]</span>Young Jabez scrambled to the top of the nearest
-boulder, and ruffled with importance like a turkey-cock
-as he waved his arms to command attention.</p>
-
-<p>“The guard will be turned out and we shall end this
-fray by cooling our heels in the prison huts on the hill,”
-he declaimed. “If we run a foot-race, who is to say
-which of us first reaches the forge? Again—and I say
-I never served with such thick-witted troops, when I
-fought under General Arnold at Saratoga—those
-with shoes to their feet have the advantage over those
-that are bound up in bits of cloth and clumsy patches
-of hide. Draw lots, I say, before the picket is down
-upon us!”</p>
-
-<p>The good-natured crowd cheered the boy orator,
-and hauled him from his perch with such hearty thumps
-that he feared they would break him in two.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly the noise was hushed as if the wranglers
-had been stricken dumb. Fur-capped heads turned to
-face down the winding valley, and without need of an
-order the company spread itself along the roadside in a
-rude, uneven line. Every man stood at attention, his
-head up, his shoulders thrown back, hands at his sides.
-Thus they stood while they watched a little group of
-horsemen trot toward them.</p>
-
-<p>In front rode a commanding figure in buff and blue.
-The tall, lithe frame sat the saddle with the graceful
-ease of the hard-riding Virginia fox-hunter. The stern,
-smooth-shaven face, reddened and roughened by exposure
-to all weathers, lighted with an amiable curiosity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">[7]</span>
-at sight of this motley and expectant party, the central
-figure of which was the butcher, Master Ritter, who
-had dropped to his knees as if praying for his life.</p>
-
-<p>General Washington turned to a sprightly looking,
-red-haired youth who rode at his side, as if calling his
-attention to this singular tableau. The Marquis de
-Lafayette shrugged his shoulders after the French manner,
-and said, laughingly:</p>
-
-<p>“It ees vat you t’ink? Vill they make ready to kill
-’im? Vat they do?”</p>
-
-<p>Just behind them pounded General Mühlenberg, the
-clergyman who had doffed his gown for the uniform of a
-brigadier, stalwart, swarthy, laughter in his piercing
-eyes as he commented:</p>
-
-<p>“To the rescue! The victim is a worthy member of
-my old Pennsylvania flock. This doth savor of a soldier’s
-court-martial for honest Jacob Ritter.”</p>
-
-<p>The cavalcade halted, and the soldiers saluted,
-tongue-tied and embarrassed, scuffling, and prodding
-one another’s ribs in an attempt to urge a spokesman
-forward, while General Washington gazed down at
-them as if demanding an explanation.</p>
-
-<p>The butcher was about to make a stammering attempt
-when the string of his apron parted, and the ten
-cow-horns were scattered in the snow. He dived in
-pursuit of them, and his speech was never made.</p>
-
-<p>Because Jabez Rockwell was too light and slender to
-make much resistance, he was first to be pushed into the
-foreground, and found himself nearest the commander-in-chief.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">[8]</span>
-He made the best of a bad matter, and his
-frank young face flushed hotly as he doffed his battered
-cap and bowed low.</p>
-
-<p>“May it please the general, we were in a good-natured
-dispute touching the matter of those ten cow-horns
-which the butcher brought amongst us to his peril.
-There are more muskets than pouches in our street,
-and we are debating a fair way to divide them. It is—it
-is exceedingly bold, sir, but dare we ask you to
-suggest a way out of the trouble which preys sorely
-on the butcher’s mind and body?”</p>
-
-<p>A fleeting frown troubled the noble face of the chief,
-and his mouth twitched, not with anger but in pain, for
-the incident brought home to him anew that his soldiers,
-these brave, cheerful, half-clothed, freezing followers,
-were without even the simplest tools of warfare.</p>
-
-<p>The cloud cleared and he smiled, such a proud, affectionate
-smile as a father shows to sons of his who
-have deemed no sacrifice too great for duty’s sake.
-His eyes softened as he looked down at the straight
-stripling at his bridle-rein, and replied:</p>
-
-<p>“You have asked my advice as a third party, and it
-is meet that I share in the distribution. Follow me to
-the nearest hut.”</p>
-
-<p>His officers wheeled and rode after him, while the bewildered
-soldiers trailed behind, two and two, down
-the narrow road, greatly wondering whether reward
-or punishment was to be their lot.</p>
-
-<p>As for Jabez Rockwell, he strode proudly in the van<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">[9]</span>
-as guide to the log cabin, and felt his heart flutter as he
-jumped to the head of the charger, while the general
-dismounted with the agility of a boy.</p>
-
-<p>Turning to the soldiers, who hung abashed in the
-road, Washington called:</p>
-
-<p>“Come in, as many of you as can find room!”</p>
-
-<p>The company filled the hut, and made room for
-those behind by climbing into the tiers of bunks filled
-with boughs to soften the rough-hewn planks.</p>
-
-<p>In one corner a wood-fire smoldered in a rough stone
-fireplace, whose smoke made even the general cough
-and sneeze. He stood behind a bench of barked logs,
-and took from his pocket a folded document. Then he
-picked up from the hearth a bit of charcoal, and announced:</p>
-
-<p>“I will write down a number between fifteen hundred
-and two thousand, and the ten that guess nearest this
-number shall be declared the winners of the ten horns.”</p>
-
-<p>He carefully tore the document into strips, and then
-into small squares, which were passed among the delighted
-audience. There was a busy whispering and
-scratching of heads. Over in one corner, jammed
-against the wall until he gasped for breath, Jabez
-Rockwell said to himself:</p>
-
-<p>“I must guess shrewdly. Methinks he will choose a
-number halfway between fifteen hundred and two
-thousand. I will write down seventeen hundred and
-fifty. But, stay! Seventeen seventy-six may come
-first into his mind, the glorious year when the independence<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">[10]</span>
-of the colonies was declared. But he will
-surely take it that we, too, are thinking of that number,
-wherefore I will pass it by.”</p>
-
-<p>As if reading his thoughts, a comrade curled up in a
-bunk at Rockwell’s elbow muttered:</p>
-
-<p>“Seventeen seventy-six, I haven’t a doubt of it!”</p>
-
-<p>Alas for the cunning surmise of Jabez, the chief
-did write down Independence year, “1776,” and when
-this verdict was read aloud, the boy felt deep disappointment.
-This was turned to joy, however, when
-his guess of “1750” was found to be among the ten
-nearest the fateful choice, and one of the powder-horns
-fell to him.</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers pressed back to make way for General
-Washington as he went out of the hut, stooping low
-that his head might escape the roof-beams. Before the
-party mounted, the boyish Lafayette swung his hat
-round his head and shouted:</p>
-
-<p>“A huzza for ze wise general!”</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers cheered lustily, and General Mühlenberg
-followed with:</p>
-
-<p>“Now a cheer for the Declaration of Independence
-and for the soldier who wrote down ‘Seventeen seventy-six.’”</p>
-
-<p>General Washington bowed in his saddle, and the
-shouting followed his clattering train up the valley on
-his daily tour of inspection. He left behind him a
-new-fledged hero in the person of Jabez Rockwell
-whose bold tactics had won him a powder-horn and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">[11]</span>
-given his comrades the rarest hour of the dreary winter
-at Valley Forge.</p>
-
-<p>In his leisure time he scraped and polished the horn,
-fitted it with a wooden stopper and cord, and with
-greatest care and labor scratched upon its gleaming
-surface these words:</p>
-
-<p class="center">
-<i>Jabez Rockwell, Ridgeway, Conn.—His Horn.<br>
-Made in Camp at Valley Forge</i></p>
-
-<p>Thin and pale, but with unbroken spirit, this sixteen-year-old
-veteran drilled and marched and braved
-picket duty in zero weather, often without a scrap of
-meat to brace his ration for a week on end; but he survived
-with no worse damage than sundry frostbites.
-In early spring he was assigned to duty as a sentinel
-of the company which guarded the path that led up the
-hill to the headquarters of the commander-in-chief.
-Here he learned much to make the condition of his comrades
-seem more hopeless and forlorn than ever.</p>
-
-<p>Hard-riding scouting parties came into camp with
-reports of forays as far as the suburbs of Philadelphia,
-twenty miles away. Spies disguised as farmers returned
-with stories of visits into the heart of the capital
-city held by the enemy. This gossip and information,
-which the young sentinel picked up bit by bit, he
-pieced together to make a picture of an invincible,
-veteran British army, waiting to fall upon the huddled
-mob of “rebels” at Valley Forge, and sweep them away
-like chaff. He heard it over and over again, that the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">[12]</span>
-Hessians, with their tall and gleaming brass hats and
-fierce moustaches, “were dreadful to look upon,” that
-the British Grenadiers, who tramped the Philadelphia
-streets in legions, “were like moving ranks of stone wall.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Jabez would look out across the valley, and
-perhaps see an American regiment at drill, without
-uniforms, ranks half-filled, looking like an array of
-scarecrows. His heart would sink, despite his memories
-of Saratoga; and in such dark hours he could not
-believe it possible even for General Washington to
-win a battle in the coming summer campaign.</p>
-
-<p>It was on a bright day of June that Capt. Allan
-McLane, the leader of scouts, galloped past the huts
-of the sentinels, and shouted as he rode:</p>
-
-<p>“The British have marched out of Philadelphia!
-I have just cut my way through their skirmishers over
-in New Jersey!”</p>
-
-<p>A little later orderlies were buzzing out of the old
-stone house at headquarters like bees from a hive, with
-orders for the troops to be ready to march. As Jabez
-Rockwell hurried to rejoin his regiment, men were
-shouting the glad news along the green valley, with
-songs and cheers and laughter. They fell in as a
-fighting army, and left behind them the tragic story
-of their winter at Valley Forge, as the trailing columns
-swept beyond the Schuylkill into the wide and smiling
-farm lands of Pennsylvania.</p>
-
-<p>Summer heat now blistered the dusty faces that had
-been for so long blue and pinched with hunger and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">[13]</span>
-cold. A week of glad marching and full rations carried
-Washington’s awakened army into New Jersey, by
-which time the troops knew their chief was leading
-them to block the British retreat from Philadelphia.</p>
-
-<p>Jabez Rockwell, marching with the Connecticut
-Brigade, had forgotten his fears of the brass-capped
-Hessians and the stone-wall Grenadiers. One night
-they camped near Monmouth village, and scouts
-brought in the tidings that the British were within
-sight. In the long summer twilight Jabez climbed a
-little knoll hard by, and caught a glimpse of the white
-tents of the Queen’s Rangers, hardly beyond musketshot.
-Before daybreak a rattle of firing woke him and
-he scrambled out, to find that the pickets were already
-exchanging shots.</p>
-
-<p>He picked up his old musket, and chewing a hunk
-of dry bread for breakfast, joined his company drawn
-up in a pasture. Knapsacks were piled near Freehold
-Meeting-house, and the troops marched ahead, not
-knowing where they were sent.</p>
-
-<p>Across the wooded fields Jabez saw the lines of red
-splotches which gleamed in the early sunlight and he
-knew these were British troops. The rattling musket-fire
-became a grinding roar, and the deeper note of
-artillery boomed into the tumult. A battle had begun,
-yet the Connecticut Brigade was stewing in the heat
-hour after hour, impatient, troubled, wondering why
-they had no part to play. As the forenoon dragged
-along the men became sullen and weary.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">[14]</span>When at last an order came it was not to advance,
-but to retreat. Falling back, they found themselves
-near their camping-place. Valley Forge had not
-quenched the faith of Jabez Rockwell in General Washington’s
-power to conquer any odds, but now he felt
-such dismay as brought hot tears to his eyes. On
-both sides of his regiment American troops were streaming
-to the rear, their columns broken and straggling.
-It seemed as if the whole army was fleeing from the
-veterans of Clinton and Cornwallis.</p>
-
-<p>Jabez flung himself into a cornfield, and hid his
-face in his arms. Round him his comrades were muttering
-their anger and despair. He fumbled for his
-canteen, and his fingers closed round his powder-horn.
-“General Washington did not give you to me to run
-away with,” he whispered; and then his parched lips
-moved in a little prayer:</p>
-
-<p>“Dear Lord, help us to beat the British this day,
-and give me a chance to empty my powder-horn before
-night. Thou hast been with General Washington and
-me ever since last year. Please don’t desert us now.”</p>
-
-<p>Nor was he surprised when, as if in direct answer to
-his petition, he rose to see the chief riding through the
-troop lines, but such a chief as he had never before
-known. The kindly face was aflame with anger, and
-streaked with dust and sweat. The powerful horse he
-rode was lathered, and its heaving flanks were scarred
-from hard-driven spurs.</p>
-
-<p>As the commander passed the regiment, his staff in a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">[15]</span>
-whirlwind at his heels, Jabez heard him shout in a
-great voice vibrant with rage and grief:</p>
-
-<p>“I cannot believe the army is retreating. I ordered
-a general advance. Who dared to give such an order!
-Advance those lines——”</p>
-
-<p>“It was General Lee’s order to retreat,” Jabez heard
-an officer stammer in reply.</p>
-
-<p>Washington vanished in a moment, with a storm of
-cheers in his wake. Jabez was content to wait for
-orders now. He believed the Battle of Monmouth as
-good as won.</p>
-
-<p>His recollection of the next few hours was jumbled and
-hazy. He knew that the regiment went forward,
-and then the white smoke of musket-fire closed down
-before him. Now and then the summer breeze made
-rifts in this stifling cloud, and he saw it streaked with
-spouting fire. He aimed his old musket at that other
-foggy line beyond the rail fence, whose top was lined
-with men in coats of red and green and black.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly his officers began running to and fro, and
-a shout ran down the thin line:</p>
-
-<p>“Stand steady, Connecticut! Save your fire! Aim
-low! Here comes a charge!”</p>
-
-<p>A tidal wave of red and brass broke through the gaps
-in the rail fence, and the sunlight rippled along a wavering
-line of British bayonets. They crept nearer,
-nearer, until Jabez could see the grim ferocity, the bared
-teeth, the staring eyes of the dreaded Grenadiers.</p>
-
-<p>At the command to fire he pulled trigger, and the kick<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">[16]</span>
-of his musket made him grunt with pain. Pulling the
-stopper from his powder-horn with his teeth, Jabez
-poured in a charge, and was ramming the bullet home
-when he felt his right leg double under him and burn
-as if red-hot iron had seared it.</p>
-
-<p>Then the charging tide of Grenadiers swept over him.
-He felt their hobnailed heels bite into his back; then
-his head felt queer, and he closed his eyes. When he
-found himself trying to rise, he saw, as through a mist,
-his regiment falling back, driven from their ground by
-the first shock of the charge. He groaned in agony of
-spirit. What would General Washington say?</p>
-
-<p>Jabez was now behind the headlong British column,
-which heeded him not. He was in a little part of the
-field cleared of fighting, for the moment, except for
-the wounded, who dotted the trampled grass. The
-smoke had drifted away, for the swaying lines in
-front of him were locked in the frightful embrace of
-cold steel.</p>
-
-<p>The boy staggered to his feet, with his musket as a
-crutch, and his wound was forgotten. He was given
-strength to his need by the spirit of a great purpose.</p>
-
-<p>Alone he stood and reeled, while he beckoned, passionately,
-imploringly, his arm outstretched toward his
-broken regiment. The lull in the firing made a moment
-of strange quiet, broken only by groans, and the hard,
-gasping curses of men locked in the death-grip. Therefore,
-the shrill young voice carried far, as he shouted:</p>
-
-<p>“Come back, Connecticut! I’m waiting for you!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">[17]</span>His captain heard the boy, and waved his sword with
-hoarse cries to his men. They caught sight of the lonely
-little figure in the background, and his cry went to their
-hearts, and a great wave of rage and shame swept the
-line like a prairie fire. Like a landslide the men of
-Connecticut swept forward to recapture the ground
-they had yielded. Back fell the British before a countercharge
-they could not withstand, back beyond the
-rail fence. Nor was there refuge even there, for, shattered
-and spent, they were smashed to fragments in a
-flank attack driven home in the nick of time by the
-American reserves.</p>
-
-<p>From a low hill to the right of this action General
-Washington had paused to view the charge just when
-his line gave way. He sent an officer in hot haste for
-reserves, and waited for them where he was.</p>
-
-<p>Thus it happened that his eye swept the littered field
-from which Jabez Rockwell rose, as one from the dead,
-to rally his comrades, alone, undaunted, pathetic beyond
-words. A little later two privates were carrying
-to the rear the wounded lad, who had been picked
-up alive and conscious. They halted to salute their
-commander-in-chief, and laid their burden down as the
-general drew rein and said:</p>
-
-<p>“Take this man to my quarters, and see to it that he
-has every possible attention. I saw him save a regiment
-and retake a position.”</p>
-
-<p>The limp figure on the litter of boughs raised itself on
-an elbow, and said very feebly:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">[18]</span>“I didn’t want to see that powder-horn disgraced,
-sir.”</p>
-
-<p>With a smile of recognition General Washington responded:</p>
-
-<p>“The powder-horn? I remember. <i>You</i> are the lad
-who led the powder-horn rebellion at Valley Forge.
-And I wrote down ‘Seventeen seventy-six.’ You have
-used it well, my boy. I will not forget.”</p>
-
-<p>When Jabez Rockwell was able to rejoin his company,
-he scratched upon the powder-horn this addition
-to the legend he had carved at Valley Forge:</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>First used at Monmouth, June 28, 1778.</i></p>
-
-<p>A hundred years later the grandson of Jabez Rockwell
-hung the powder-horn in the old stone house at
-Valley Forge which had been General Washington’s
-headquarters. And if you should chance to see it
-there you will find that the young soldier added one
-more line to the rough inscription:</p>
-
-<p class="center"><i>Last used at Yorktown, 1781.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">[19]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THE LITTLE LORD OF THE MANOR<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">[B]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">E. S. Brooks</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>A picture of Evacuation Day in New York, in 1783, when the
-British troops hauled down their flag and sailed away from free
-America. A little lost lord, his distracted Tory grandfather, and
-some kind-hearted American children are the principal characters.
-And we are told how little Mistress Dolly Duane “won the distinguished
-honor of being kissed by both Commanders-in-Chief
-on the same eventful day.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT WAS the 25th of November, 1783—a brilliant
-day, clear, crisp, and invigorating, with just
-enough of frosty air to flush the eager cheeks and nip
-the inquisitive noses of every boy and girl in the excited
-crowd that filled the Bowery lane from Harlem to the
-barriers, and pressed fast upon the heels of General
-Knox’s advance detachment of Continental troops
-marching to the position assigned them, near the “tea-water
-pump.” In the Duane mansion a fire was
-blazing brightly and Mistress Dolly’s pet cat was purring
-comfortably in the cheerful light. But Mistress
-Dolly herself cared just now for neither cat nor comfort.
-She, too, was on the highway watching for the exciting
-events that were to make this Evacuation Day in New<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">[20]</span>
-York one of the most memorable occasions in the history
-of the chief American city.</p>
-
-<p>At some points the crowd was especially pushing and
-persistent, and Mistress Dolly Duane was decidedly
-uncomfortable. For little Dolly detested crowds, as,
-in fact, she detested everything that interfered with the
-comfort of a certain dainty little maiden of thirteen.
-And she was just on the point of expressing to her
-cousin, young Edward Livingston, her regret that they
-had not stayed to witness the procession from the tumbledown
-gateway of the Duane country-house, near
-the King’s Bridge road, when, out from the crowd, came
-the sound of a child’s voice, shrill and complaining.</p>
-
-<p>“Keep off, you big, bad man!” it said; “keep off and
-let me pass! How dare you crowd me so, you wicked
-rebels?”</p>
-
-<p>“Rebels, hey?” a harsh and mocking voice exclaimed.
-“Rebels! Heard ye that, mates? Well crowed, my
-little cockerel. Let’s have a look at you,” and a burly
-arm rudely parted the pushing crowd and dragged out of
-the press a slight, dark-haired little fellow of seven or
-eight, clad in velvet and ruffles.</p>
-
-<p>“Put me down! Put me down, I say!” screamed the
-boy, his small face flushed with passion. “Put me
-down, I tell you, or I’ll bid Angevine horsewhip you!”</p>
-
-<p>“Hark to the little Tory,” growled his captor. “A
-rare young bird, now, isn’t he? Horsewhip <i>us</i>, d’ye
-say—us, free American citizens? And who may you
-be, my little beggar?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">[21]</span>“I am no beggar, you bad man,” cried the child
-angrily. “I am the little lord of the manor.”</p>
-
-<p>“Lord of the manor! Ho, ho, ho!” laughed the big
-fellow. “Give us grace, your worship,” he said, with
-mock humility. “Lord of the manor! Look at
-him, mates,” and he held the struggling little lad toward
-the laughing crowd. “Why, there are no lords nor
-manors now in free America, my bantam.”</p>
-
-<p>“But I am, I tell you!” protested the boy. “That’s
-what my grandfather calls me—oh, where is he? Take
-me to him, please: he calls me the little lord of the
-manor.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s your grandfather?” demanded the man.</p>
-
-<p>“Who? Why, don’t you know?” the “little lord”
-asked incredulously. “Everybody knows my grandfather,
-I thought. He is Colonel Phillipse, Baron of
-Phillipsbourg, and lord of the manor; and he’ll kill you
-if you hurt me,” he added defiantly.</p>
-
-<p>“Phillipse, the king of Yonckers! Phillipse, the fat
-old Tory of West Chester! A prize, a prize, mates!”
-shouted the bully. “What say you? Shall we hold
-this young bantling hostage for the tainted Tory, his
-grandfather, and when once we get the old fellow serve
-him as we did the refugee at Wall-kill t’ other day?”</p>
-
-<p>“What did you do?” the crowd asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Faith, we tarred and feathered him well, put a hog-yoke
-on his neck and a cow-bell, too, and then rode
-him on a rail till he cheered for the Congress.”</p>
-
-<p>“Treat my grandfather like that—my good grandfather?<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">[22]</span>
-You shall not! you dare not!” cried the small
-Phillipse, with a flood of angry tears, as he struggled and
-fought in his captor’s clutch.</p>
-
-<p>Dolly Duane’s kindly heart was filled with pity at
-the rough usage of the “little lord.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, sir,” she said, as she pushed through the crowd
-and laid her hand on the big bully’s arm, “let the child
-go. ’Tis unmannerly to treat him as you do, and
-you’re very, very cruel.”</p>
-
-<p>The fellow turned roughly around and looked down
-into Dolly’s disturbed and protesting face.</p>
-
-<p>“What, another of ’em?” he said surlily. “Why, the
-place is full of little Tories.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, no; no Tory I!” said indignant Dolly. “My
-father is Mr. Duane, and he is no Tory.”</p>
-
-<p>“Mr. Duane, of the Congress?” “Give up the lad
-to the maid.” “Why harm the child?” came mingled
-voices from the crowd.</p>
-
-<p>“What care I for Duane!” said the bully contemptuously.
-“One man’s as good as another now in free America—isn’t
-he? Bah! you’re all cowards; but I know
-when I’ve got a good thing. You don’t bag a Phillipse
-every day, I’ll warrant you.”</p>
-
-<p>“No; but we bag other game once in a while,” said
-Dolly’s cousin, young Edward Livingston, pushing his
-way to her side. “We bag turncoats, and thieves, and
-murthering runagates sometimes, even in ‘free America’;
-and we know what to do with them when we do
-bag them. Friends,” he cried, turning to the crowd,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">[23]</span>
-“do you know this fellow? He’s a greater prize than
-the little Phillipse. ’Tis Big Jake of the Saw-mill—a
-‘skinner’ one day and a ‘cow-boy’ next, as it suits his
-fancy and as it brings him booty. I know him, and so
-does the water-guard. I am Livingston, of Clermont
-Manor. Let down the lad, man, or we’ll turn you over
-to the town-major. He’d like rarely to have a chance
-at you.”</p>
-
-<p>The crowd uttered a cry of rage as it closed excitedly
-around the burly member of the lawless gang that had
-preyed upon the defenceless people of the lower Hudson
-during the years of war and raid. The bully paled at
-the sound, and loosed his hold upon the little Phillipse.
-Without waiting to see the issue, young Livingston
-dragged the “little lord” from the throng, while his
-companion, Master Clinton, hurried Dolly along, and
-they were soon free from the crowd that was dealing
-roughly enough with Big Jake of the Saw-mill.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Dolly, let us go back to the farm before we
-get into further trouble,” said Cousin Ned, a pleasant
-young fellow of eighteen, who looked upon himself as
-the lawful protector of “the children.”</p>
-
-<p>“But what shall we do with our little lord of the
-manor, Cousin Ned?” asked Dolly.</p>
-
-<p>“The safest plan is to take him with us,” he replied.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, no, sir; no,” pleaded the little boy. “We sail
-to-day with Sir Guy Carleton, and what will grandfather
-do without me?” And then he told them how,
-early that morning, he had slipped away from Angevine,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">[24]</span>
-Colonel Phillipse’s body-servant, passed through the
-barriers and strolled up the Bowery lane to see the
-“rebel soldiers”; how he had lost his way in the crowd,
-and was in sore distress and danger until Dolly interfered;
-and how he thanked them “over and over again”
-for protecting him. But “Oh, please, I must go back
-to my grandfather,” he added.</p>
-
-<p>Little Mistress Dolly had a mind of her own, and she
-warmly championed the cause of the “lost little lord,”
-as she called him.</p>
-
-<p>“Cousin Ned,” she said, “of course he must go to his
-grandfather, and of course we must take him. Think
-how I should feel if they tried to keep me from my
-father!” and Dolly’s sympathetic eyes filled at the
-dreadful thought.</p>
-
-<p>“But how can we take him?” asked Cousin Ned.
-“How can we get past the barriers?”</p>
-
-<p>A hundred years ago New York City proper extended
-northward only as far as the present post-office,
-and during the Revolution a line of earthworks was
-thrown across the island at that point to defend it
-against assault from the north. The British sentinels
-at these barriers were not to give up their posts to the
-Americans until one o’clock on this eventful Evacuation
-Day, and Cousin Ned, therefore, could not well see
-how they could pass the sentries.</p>
-
-<p>But young Master Clinton, a bright, curly-haired
-boy of thirteen, said confidently: “Oh, that’s easily
-done.” And then, with a knowledge of the highways<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">[25]</span>
-and byways which many rambles through the dear
-old town had given him, he unfolded his plan. “See
-here,” he said; “we’ll turn down the Monument lane,
-just below us, cut across through General Mortier’s
-woods to Mr. Nicholas Bayard’s, and so on to the Ranelagh
-Gardens. From there we can easily get over to the
-Broad Way and the Murray Street barrier before General
-Knox gets to the Fresh Water, where he has been
-ordered to halt until one o’clock. When the guard
-at the barrier knows that we have the little Baron of
-Phillipsbourg with us, and has handled the two York
-sixpences you will give him, of course he’ll let us pass.
-So, don’t you see, we can fix this little boy all right,
-and, better yet, can see King George’s men go out and
-our troops come in, and make just a splendid day of it.”</p>
-
-<p>Dolly, fully alive to these glorious possibilities,
-clapped her hands delightedly.</p>
-
-<p>“What a brain the boy has!” said young Livingston.
-“Keep on, my son,” he said patronizingly, “and you’ll
-make a great man yet.”</p>
-
-<p>“So I mean to be,” said De Witt Clinton cheerily, and
-then, heading the little group, he followed out the route
-he had proposed. Ere long the barriers were safely passed,
-Cousin Ned was two York sixpences out of pocket, and
-the young people stood within the British lines.</p>
-
-<p>“And now, where may we find your grandfather,
-little one?” Cousin Ned inquired, as they halted on
-the Broad Way beneath one of the tall poplars that
-lined that old-time street.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">[26]</span>The little Phillipse could not well reply. The noise
-and confusion that filled the city had well-nigh turned
-his head. For what with the departing English troops,
-the disconsolate loyalist refugees hurrying for transportation
-to distant English ports, and the zealous
-citizens who were making great preparations to welcome
-the incoming soldiers of the Congress, the streets of the
-little city were full of bustle and excitement. The
-boy said his grandfather might be at the fort; he
-might be at the King’s Arms Tavern, near Stone Street;
-he might be—he <i>would</i> be—hunting for him.</p>
-
-<p>So Master Clinton suggested: “Let’s go down to Mr.
-Day’s tavern here in Murray Street. He knows me,
-and, if he can, will find Colonel Phillipse for us.” Down
-into Murray Street therefore they turned, and, near
-the road to Greenwich, saw the tavern—a long, low-roofed
-house, gable end to the street—around which an
-excited crowd surged and shouted.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, look there,” Master Clinton cried; “look
-there; and the king’s men not yet gone!” and, following
-the direction of his finger, they saw with surprise
-the stars and stripes, the flag of the new republic, floating
-from the pole before the tavern.</p>
-
-<p>“Huzza!” they shouted with the rest, but the “little
-lord” said, somewhat contemptuously, “Why, ’tis the
-rebel flag—or so my grandfather calls it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rebel no longer, little one,” said Cousin Ned, “as
-even your good grandfather must now admit. But
-surely,” he added anxiously, “Mr. Day will get himself<span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">[27]</span>
-in trouble by raising his flag before our troops come
-in.”</p>
-
-<p>An angry shout now rose from the throng around the
-flag-staff, and as the fringe of small boys scattered and
-ran in haste, young Livingston caught one of them by
-the arm. “What’s the trouble, lad?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Let go!” said the boy, struggling to free himself.
-“You’d better scatter, too, or Cunningham will catch
-you. He’s ordered down Day’s flag and says he’ll
-clear the crowd.”</p>
-
-<p>They all knew who Cunningham was—the cruel and
-vindictive British provost-marshal; the starver of
-American prisoners and the terror of American children.
-“Come away, quick,” said Cousin Ned. But
-though they drew off at first, curiosity was too strong,
-and they were soon in the crowd again.</p>
-
-<p>Cunningham, the marshal, stood at the foot of the
-flag-pole. “Come, you rebel cur,” he said to Mr. Day.
-“I give you two minutes to haul down that rag—two
-minutes, d’ye hear, or into the Provost you go. Your
-beggarly troops are not in possession here yet, and I’ll
-have no such striped rag as that flying in the faces of
-His Majesty’s forces!”</p>
-
-<p>“There it is, and there it shall stay,” said Day,
-quietly but firmly.</p>
-
-<p>Cunningham turned to his guard.</p>
-
-<p>“Arrest that man,” he ordered. “And as for this
-thing here, I’ll haul it down myself,” and seizing the
-halyards, he began to lower the flag. The crowd broke<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">[28]</span>
-out into fierce murmurs, uncertain what to do. But
-in the midst of the tumult the door of the tavern flew
-open, and forth sallied Mrs. Day, “fair, fat, and forty,”
-armed with her trusty broom.</p>
-
-<p>“Hands off that flag, you villain, and drop my husband!”
-she cried, and before the astonished Cunningham
-could realize the situation, the broom came down
-thwack! thwack! upon his powdered wig. Old men
-still lived, not thirty years ago, who were boys in that
-excited crowd, and remembered how the powder flew
-from the stiff white wig and how, amidst jeers and
-laughter, the defeated provost-marshal withdrew from
-the unequal contest, and fled before the resistless sweep
-of Mrs. Day’s all-conquering broom. And the flag did
-not come down.</p>
-
-<p>From the vantage-ground of a projecting “stoop”
-our young friends had indulged in irreverent laughter,
-and the marshal’s quick ears caught the sound.</p>
-
-<p>Fuming with rage and seeking some one to vent his
-anger on, he rushed up the “stoop” and bade his guard
-drag down the culprits.</p>
-
-<p>“What pestilent young rebels have we here?” he
-growled. “Who are you?” He started as they gave
-their names. “Livingston? Clinton? Duane?” he
-repeated. “Well, well—a rare lot this of the rebel
-brood! And who is yon young bantling in velvet and
-ruffles?”</p>
-
-<p>“You must not stop us, sir,” said the boy, facing the
-angry marshal. “I am the little lord of the manor,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">[29]</span>
-and my grandfather is Colonel Phillipse. Sir Guy
-Carleton is waiting for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, well,” exclaimed the surprised marshal;
-“here’s a fine to-do! A Phillipse in this rebel lot!
-What does it mean? Have ye kidnapped the lad? Here
-may be some treachery. Bring them along!” and with
-as much importance as if he had captured a whole
-corps of Washington’s dragoons, instead of a few harmless
-children, the young prisoners were hurried off, followed
-by an indignant crowd. Dolly was considerably
-frightened, and dark visions of the stocks, the whipping-post,
-and the ducking-stool by the Collect pond rose
-before her eyes. But Cousin Ned whispered: “Don’t
-be afraid, Dolly—’twill all be right”; and Master Clinton
-even sought to argue with the marshal.</p>
-
-<p>“There are no rebels now, sir,” he said, “since your
-king has given up the fight. You yourselves are rebels,
-rather, if you restrain us of our freedom. I know
-your king’s proclamation word for word. It says:
-‘We do hereby strictly charge and command all our
-officers, both at sea and land, and all other our subjects
-whatsoever, to forbear all acts of hostility, either by
-sea or land, against the United States of America,
-their vassals or subjects, under the penalty of incurring
-our highest displeasure.’ Wherefore, Sir,” concluded
-this wise young pleader, “if you keep us in unlawful
-custody, you do brave your king’s displeasure.”</p>
-
-<p>“You impudent young rebel——” began Cunningham;
-but the “little lord” interrupted him with: “You<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">[30]</span>
-shall not take us to jail, sir, I will tell my grandfather,
-and he will make Sir Guy punish you.” And upon
-this the provost-marshal, whose wrath had somewhat
-cooled, began to fear that he might, perhaps, have
-exceeded his authority, and ere long, with a sour look
-and a surly word, he set the young people free.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>Sir Guy Carleton, K. C. B., commander-in-chief of
-all His Majesty’s forces in the colonies, stood at the
-foot of the flag-staff on the northern bastion of Fort
-George. Before him filed the departing troops of his
-king, evacuating the pleasant little city they had occupied
-for more than seven years. “There might be
-seen,” says one of the old records, “the Hessian, with
-his towering, brass-fronted cap, moustache colored with
-the same blacking which colored his shoes, his hair
-plastered with tallow and flour, and reaching in whip-form
-to his waist. His uniform was a blue coat, yellow
-vest and breeches, and black gaiters. The Highlander,
-with his low checked bonnet, his tartan or plaid, short
-red coat, his kilt above his knees, and they exposed, his
-hose short and parti-colored. There were also the
-grenadiers of Anspach, with towering yellow caps; the
-gaudy Waldeckers, with their cocked hats edged with
-yellow scallops; the German yägers, and the various
-corps of English in glittering and gallant pomp.” The
-white-capped waves of the beautiful bay sparkled in the
-sunlight, while the whale-boats, barges, gigs, and
-launches sped over the water, bearing troops and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_31">[31]</span>
-refugees to the transports, or to the temporary camp on
-Staten Island. The last act of the evacuation was
-almost completed. But Sir Guy Carleton looked
-troubled. His eye wandered from the departing troops
-at Whitehall slip to the gate at Bowling Green, and
-then across the parade to the Governor’s gardens and
-the town beyond.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, sir, what word from Colonel Phillipse?” he
-inquired, as an aide hurried to his side.</p>
-
-<p>“He bids you go without him, General,” the aide reported.
-“The boy is not yet found, but the Colonel says
-he will risk seizure rather than leave the lad behind.”</p>
-
-<p>“It cannot well be helped,” said the British commander.
-“I will myself dispatch a line to General
-Washington, requesting due courtesy and safe conduct
-for Colonel Phillipse and his missing heir. But see—whom
-have we here?” he asked, as across the parade
-came a rumbling coach, while behind it a covered cariole
-came tearing through the gateway. Ere the bastion
-on which the General stood was reached the cariole
-drew up with sudden stop. Angevine, the black body-servant,
-sprang to the horses’ heads, and a very large
-man hatless, though richly dressed, descended hastily
-and flung open the door of the coach just as Mistress
-Dolly was preparing to descend, and as he helped her out
-he caught in his ample arms the little fellow who followed
-close at her heels.</p>
-
-<p>“Good; the lost is found!” exclaimed Sir Guy, who
-had been an interested spectator of the pantomime.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_32">[32]</span>“All is well, General,” Colonel Phillipse cried joyfully,
-as the commander came down from the bastion
-and welcomed the new-comers. “My little lord of
-the manor is found; and, faith, his loss troubled me
-more than all the attainder and forfeiture the rebel
-Congress can crowd upon me.”</p>
-
-<p>“But how got he here?” Sir Guy asked.</p>
-
-<p>“This fair little lady is both his rescuer and protector,”
-replied the grandfather.</p>
-
-<p>“And who may you be, little mistress?” asked the
-commander-in-chief.</p>
-
-<p>Dolly made a neat little curtsy, for those were the
-days of good manners, and she was a proper little damsel.
-“I am Dolly Duane, your Excellency,” she said,
-“daughter of Mr. James Duane of the Congress.”</p>
-
-<p>“Duane!” exclaimed the Colonel; “Well, well,
-little one, I did not think a Phillipse would ever acknowledge
-himself debtor to a Duane, but now do I
-gladly do it. Bear my compliments to your father,
-sweet Mistress Dolly, and tell him that his old enemy,
-Phillipse, of Phillipsbourg, will never forget the kindly
-aid of his gentle little daughter, who has this day restored
-a lost lad to a sorrowing grandfather. And let
-me thus show my gratitude for your love and service,”
-and the very large man, stooping in all courtesy before
-the little girl, laid his hand in blessing on her head, and
-kissed her fair young face.</p>
-
-<p>“A rare little maiden, truly,” said gallant Sir Guy:
-“and though I have small cause to favor so hot an enemy<span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">[33]</span>
-of the king as is Mr. James Duane, I admire his
-dutiful little daughter; and thus would I, too, render
-her love and service,” and the gleaming scarlet and
-gold-laced arms of the courtly old commander encircled
-fair Mistress Dolly, and a hearty kiss fell upon her
-blushing cheeks. But she was equal to the occasion.
-Raising herself on tiptoe, she dropped a dainty kiss
-upon the General’s smiling face, and said, “Let this,
-sir, be America’s good-bye kiss to your Excellency.”</p>
-
-<p>“A right royal salute,” said Sir Guy. “Mr. De
-Lancy, bid the band-master give us the farewell march,”
-and to the strains of appropriate music the commander-in-chief
-and his staff passed down to the boats and
-the little lord of Phillipse Manor waved Mistress Dolly
-a last farewell.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Red Cross of St. George, England’s royal
-flag, came fluttering down from its high staff on the
-north bastion, and the last of the rear-guard wheeled
-toward the slip. But Cunningham, the provost-marshal,
-still angered by the thought of his discomfiture at
-Day’s tavern, declared roundly that no rebel flag should
-go up that staff in sight of King George’s men. “Come
-lively now, you blue jackets,” he shouted, turning to
-some of the sailors from the fleet. “Unreeve the halyards,
-quick; slush down the pole; knock off the stepping-cleats!
-Then let them run their rag up if they
-can.” His orders were quickly obeyed. The halyards
-were speedily cut, the stepping-cleats knocked from
-the staff, and the tall pole covered with grease, so that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">[34]</span>
-none might climb it. And with this final act of unsoldierly
-discourtesy, the memory of which has lived
-through a hundred busy years, the provost-marshal
-left the now liberated city.</p>
-
-<p>Even Sir Guy’s gallant kiss could not rid Dolly of
-her fear of Cunningham’s frown; but as she scampered
-off she heard his final order, and, hot with indignation,
-told the news to Cousin Ned and Master Clinton, who
-were in waiting for her on the Bowling Green. The
-younger lad was for stirring up the people to instant
-action, but just then they heard the roll of drums,
-and, standing near the ruins of King George’s statue,
-watched the advance-guard of the Continental troops
-as they filed in to take possession of the fort. Beneath
-the high gateway and straight toward the north
-bastion marched the detachment—a troop of horse,
-a regiment of infantry, and a company of artillery. The
-batteries, the parapets, and the ramparts were thronged
-with cheering people, and Colonel Jackson, halting
-before the flag-staff, ordered up the stars and stripes.</p>
-
-<p>“The halyards are cut, Colonel,” reported the color-sergeant;
-“the cleats are gone, and the pole is slushed.”</p>
-
-<p>“A mean trick, indeed,” exclaimed the indignant
-Colonel. “Hallo there, lads, will you be outwitted
-by such a scurvy trick! Look where they wait in their
-boats to give us the laugh. Will you let tainted Tories
-and buttermilk Whigs thus shame us? A gold jacobus
-to him who will climb the staff and reeve the halyards
-for the stars and stripes.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">[35]</span>Dolly’s quick ear caught the ringing words. “Oh,
-Cousin Ned,” she cried, “I saw Jacky Van Arsdale on
-the Bowling Green. Don’t you remember how he
-climbed the greased pole at Clermont, in the May merrying?”
-and with that she sped across the parade and
-through the gateway, returning soon with a stout sailor-boy
-of fifteen. “Now tell the Colonel you’ll try it,
-Jacky.”</p>
-
-<p>“Go it, Jack!” shouted Cousin Ned. “I’ll make the
-gold jacobus two if you but reeve the halyards.”</p>
-
-<p>“I want no money for the job, Master Livingston,”
-said the sailor-lad. “I’ll do it if I can for Mistress
-Dolly’s sake.”</p>
-
-<p>Jack was an expert climber, but if any of my boy
-readers think it a simple thing to “shin up” a greased
-pole, just let them try it once—and fail.</p>
-
-<p>Jack Van Arsdale tried it manfully once, twice,
-thrice, and each time came slipping down covered with
-slush and shame. And all the watchers in the boats
-off-shore joined in a chorus of laughs and jeers. Jack
-shook his fist at them angrily. “I’ll fix ’em yet,” he
-said. “If ye’ll but saw me up some cleats, and give me
-hammer and nails, I’ll run that flag to the top in spite
-of all the Tories from ’Sopus to Sandy Hook!”</p>
-
-<p>Ready hands and willing feet came to the assistance
-of the plucky lad. Some ran swiftly to Mr. Goelet’s,
-“the iron-monger’s” in Hanover Square, and brought
-quickly back “a hand-saw, hatchet, hammer, gimlets,
-and nails”; others drew a long board to the bastion, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">[36]</span>
-while one sawed the board into lengths, another split
-the strips into cleats, others bored the nail-holes, and
-soon young Jack had material enough.</p>
-
-<p>Then, tying the halyards around his waist, and filling
-his jacket pockets with cleats and nails, he worked his
-way up the flag-pole, nailing and climbing as he went.
-And now he reaches the top, now the halyards are
-reeved, and as the beautiful flag goes fluttering up the
-staff a mighty cheer is heard, and a round of thirteen
-guns salutes the stars and stripes and the brave sailor-boy
-who did the gallant deed!</p>
-
-<p>From the city streets came the roll and rumble of
-distant drums, and Dolly and her two companions, following
-the excited crowd, hastened across Hanover
-Square, and from an excellent outlook in the Fly Market
-watched the whole grand procession as it wound down
-Queen (now Pearl) Street, making its triumphal entry
-into the welcoming city. First came a corps of dragoons,
-then followed the advance-guard of light infantry
-and a corps of artillery, then more light infantry, a
-battalion of Massachusetts troops, and the rear-guard.
-As the veterans, with their soiled and faded uniforms,
-filed past, Dolly could not help contrasting them with
-the brilliant appearance of the British troops she had
-seen in the fort. “Their clothes <i>do</i> look worn and
-rusty,” she said. “But then,” she added, with beaming
-eyes, “they are <i>our</i> soldiers, and that is everything.”</p>
-
-<p>And now she hears “a great hozaing all down the
-Fly,” as one record queerly puts it, and as the shouts<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">[37]</span>
-increase, she sees a throng of horsemen, where, escorted
-by Captain Delavan’s “West Chester Light Horse,”
-ride the heroes of that happy hour, General George
-Washington and Governor George Clinton. Dolly
-added her clear little treble to the loud huzzas as the
-famous commander-in-chief rode down the echoing
-street. Behind their excellencies came other officials,
-dignitaries, army officers, and files of citizens, on horseback
-and afoot, many of the latter returning to dismantled
-and ruined homes after nearly eight years of
-exile.</p>
-
-<p>But Dolly did not wait to see the whole procession.
-She had spied her father in the line of mounted citizens
-and flying across Queen Street, and around by Golden
-Hill (near Maiden Lane), where the first blood of the
-Revolution was spilled, she hurried down the Broad
-Way, so as to reach Mr. Cape’s tavern before their excellencies
-arrived.</p>
-
-<p>Soon she was in her father’s arms relating her adventures,
-and as she received his chidings for mingling in
-such “unseemly crowds,” and his praise for her championship
-and protection of the little Phillipse, a kindly
-hand was laid upon her fair young head, and a voice
-whose tones she could never forget said: “So may
-our children be angels of peace, Mr. Duane. Few
-have suffered more, or deserved better from their
-country, sir, than you; but the possession of so rare a
-little daughter is a fairer recompense than aught your
-country can bestow. Heaven has given me no children,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">[38]</span>
-sir; but had I thus been blessed, I could have
-wished for no gentler or truer-hearted little daughter
-than this maid of yours.” And with the stately courtesy
-that marked the time, General Washington bent
-down and kissed little Dolly as she sat on her father’s
-knee. Touched by his kindly words, Dolly forgot all
-her awe of the great man. Flinging two winsome arms
-about his neck, she kissed him in return, and said
-softly: “If Mr. Duane were not my father, sir, I would
-rather it should be you than any one else.”</p>
-
-<p>In all her after-life, though she retained pleasant
-memories of Sir Guy Carleton, and thought him a
-grand and gallant gentleman, Dolly Duane held still
-more firmly to her reverence and affection for General
-Washington, whom she described as “looking more
-grand and noble than any human being she had ever
-seen.”</p>
-
-<p>Next to General Washington, I think she held the
-fireworks that were set off in the Bowling Green in
-honor of the Peace to have been the grandest thing
-she had ever seen. The rockets, and the wheels, and
-the tourbillions, and the batteries, and the stars were
-all so wonderful to her, that General Knox said Dolly’s
-“ohs” and “ahs” were “as good as a play”; and staid
-Master Clinton and jolly Cousin Ned threatened to
-send to the Ferry stairs for an anchor to hold her down.
-Both these young gentlemen grew to be famous Americans
-in after years, and witnessed many anniversaries
-of this glorious Evacuation Day. But they never<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">[39]</span>
-enjoyed any of them quite as much as they did the
-exciting original, nor could they ever forget, amidst
-all the throng of memories, how sweet Mistress Dolly
-Duane championed and protected the lost “little lord
-of the manor,” and won the distinguished honor of
-being kissed by both the commanders-in-chief on the
-same eventful day.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">[40]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">OLD ESTHER DUDLEY<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">[C]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center"><span class="smcap">By NATHANIEL HAWTHORNE</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>The Province House in Boston was the home of the Royal Governors
-of Massachusetts. This is the story of how the stately, spectre-haunted
-old Housekeeper, even after the departure of the last
-Royal Governor and the triumph of the Colonies, remained “faithful
-unto death” to her Sovereign Lord King George.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE hour had come—the hour of defeat and humiliation—when
-Sir William Howe was to pass
-over the threshold of the Province House, and embark,
-with no such triumphal ceremonies as he once
-promised himself, on board the British fleet. He bade
-his servants and military attendants go before him, and
-lingered a moment in the loneliness of the mansion,
-to quell the fierce emotions that struggled in his bosom
-as with a death-throb. Preferable, then, would he
-have deemed his fate had a warrior’s death left him a
-claim to the narrow territory of a grave within the soil
-which the king had given him to defend. With an
-ominous perception that, as his departing footsteps
-echoed adown the staircase, the sway of Britain was
-passing forever from New England, he smote his
-clinched hand on his brow, and cursed the destiny that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">[41]</span>
-had flung the shame of a dismembered empire upon
-him.</p>
-
-<p>“Would to God,” cried he, hardly repressing his tears
-of rage, “that the rebels were even now at the doorstep!
-A bloodstain upon the floor should then bear testimony
-that the last British ruler was faithful to his trust.”</p>
-
-<p>The tremulous voice of a woman replied to his exclamation.</p>
-
-<p>“Heaven’s cause and the King’s are one,” it said.
-“Go forth, Sir William Howe, and trust in Heaven to
-bring back a royal governor in triumph.”</p>
-
-<p>Subduing at once the passion to which he had yielded
-only in the faith that it was unwitnessed, Sir William
-Howe became conscious that an aged woman, leaning
-on a gold-headed staff, was standing betwixt him and
-the door. It was old Esther Dudley, who had dwelt
-almost immemorial years in this mansion, until her
-presence seemed as inseparable from it as the recollections
-of its history. She was the daughter of an ancient
-and once eminent family, which had fallen into
-poverty and decay, and left its last descendant no resource
-save the bounty of the king, nor any shelter
-except within the walls of the Province House. An
-office in the household, with merely nominal duties,
-had been assigned to her as a pretext for the payment of
-a small pension, the greater part of which she expended
-in adorning herself with an antique magnificence
-of attire. The claims of Esther Dudley’s gentle blood
-were acknowledged by all the successive governors;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">[42]</span>
-and they treated her with the punctilious courtesy which
-it was her foible to demand, not always with success,
-from a neglectful world. The only actual share which
-she assumed in the business of the mansion was to
-glide through its passages and public chambers, late
-at night, to see that the servants had dropped no fire
-from their flaring torches, nor left embers crackling
-and blazing on the hearths. Perhaps it was this invariable
-custom of walking her rounds in the hush
-of midnight that caused the superstition of the times
-to invest the old woman with attributes of awe and
-mystery; fabling that she had entered the portal of the
-Province House, none knew whence, in the train of
-the first royal governor, and that it was her fate to
-dwell there till the last should have departed. But
-Sir William Howe, if he ever heard this legend, had
-forgotten it.</p>
-
-<p>“Mistress Dudley, why are you loitering here?”
-asked he, with some severity of tone. “It is my pleasure
-to be the last in this mansion of the king.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not so, if it please your Excellency,” answered the
-time-stricken woman. “This roof has sheltered me
-long. I will not pass from it until they bear me to the
-tomb of my forefathers. What other shelter is there
-for old Esther Dudley save the Province House or the
-grave?”</p>
-
-<p>“Now Heaven forgive me!” said Sir William Howe to
-himself. “I was about to leave this wretched old
-creature to starve or beg. Take this, good Mistress<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">[43]</span>
-Dudley,” he added, putting a purse into her hands.
-“King George’s head on these golden guineas is sterling
-yet, and will continue so, I warrant you, even should
-the rebels crown John Hancock their king. That purse
-will buy a better shelter than the Province House can
-now afford.”</p>
-
-<p>“While the burden of life remains upon me, I will
-have no other shelter than this roof,” persisted Esther
-Dudley, striking her staff upon the floor with a gesture
-that expressed immovable resolve. “And when your
-Excellency returns in triumph, I will totter into the
-porch to welcome you.”</p>
-
-<p>“My poor old friend!” answered the British General;
-and all his manly and martial pride could no longer
-restrain a gush of bitter tears. “This is an evil hour
-for you and me. The province which the king intrusted
-to my charge is lost. I go hence in misfortune—perchance
-in disgrace—to return no more. And you,
-whose present being is incorporated with the past—who
-have seen governor after governor, in stately
-pageantry, ascend these steps—whose whole life has
-been an observance of majestic ceremonies, and a worship
-of the king—how will you endure the change?
-Come with us! Bid farewell to a land that has shaken
-off its allegiance, and live still under a royal government,
-at Halifax.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never, never!” said the pertinacious old dame.
-“Here will I abide; and King George shall still have one
-true subject in his disloyal province.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">[44]</span>“Beshrew the old fool!” muttered Sir William Howe,
-growing impatient of her obstinacy, and ashamed of
-the emotion into which he had been betrayed. “She
-is the very moral of old-fashioned prejudice, and could
-exist nowhere but in this musty edifice. Well, then,
-Mistress Dudley, since you will needs tarry, I give the
-Province House in charge to you. Take this key, and
-keep it safe until myself, or some other royal governor,
-shall demand it of you.”</p>
-
-<p>Smiling bitterly at himself and her, he took the heavy
-key of the Province House, and, delivering it into the
-old lady’s hands, drew his cloak around him for departure.
-As the General glanced back at Esther Dudley’s
-antique figure, he deemed her well fitted for such a
-charge, as being so perfect a representative of the
-decayed past—of an age gone by, with its manners,
-opinions, faith, and feelings all fallen into oblivion
-or scorn—of what had once been a reality, but was now
-merely a vision of faded magnificence. Then Sir William
-Howe strode forth, smiting his clenched hands
-together in the fierce anguish of his spirit; and old
-Esther Dudley was left to keep watch in the lonely
-Province House, dwelling there with memory; and if
-Hope ever seemed to flit around her, still it was Memory
-in disguise.</p>
-
-<p>The total change of affairs that ensued on the departure
-of the British troops did not drive the venerable
-lady from her stronghold. There was not, for
-many years afterward, a governor of Massachusetts;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">[45]</span>
-and the magistrates, who had charge of such matters,
-saw no objection to Esther Dudley’s residence in the
-Province House, especially as they must otherwise have
-paid a hireling for taking care of the premises, which
-with her was a labor of love. And so they left her, the
-undisturbed mistress of the old historic edifice. Many
-and strange were the fables which the gossips whispered
-about her, in all the chimney-corners of the town.
-Among the time-worn articles of furniture that had
-been left in the mansion there was a tall, antique
-mirror, which was well worthy of a tale by itself, and
-perhaps may hereafter be the theme of one. The
-gold of its heavily wrought frame was tarnished, and
-its surface so blurred that the old woman’s figure,
-whenever she paused before it, looked indistinct and
-ghostlike. But it was the general belief that Esther
-could cause the governors of the overthrown dynasty,
-with the beautiful ladies who had once adorned their
-festivals, the Indian chiefs who had come up to the
-Province House to hold council or swear allegiance,
-the grim, provincial warriors, the severe clergymen—in
-short, all the pageantry of gone days—all the figures
-that ever swept across the broad plate of glass in former
-times—she could cause the whole to reappear, and
-people the inner world of the mirror with shadows of
-old life. Such legends as these, together with the
-singularity of her isolated existence, her age, and the
-infirmity that each added winter flung upon her, made
-Mistress Dudley the object both of fear and pity; and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">[46]</span>
-it was partly the result of either sentiment that, amid
-all the angry license of the times, neither wrong nor
-insult ever fell upon her unprotected head. Indeed,
-there was so much haughtiness in her demeanor toward
-intruders, among whom she reckoned all persons
-acting under the new authorities, that it was really
-an affair of no small nerve to look her in the face.
-And to do the people justice, stern republicans as they
-had now become, they were well content that the old
-gentlewoman, in her hoop petticoat and faded embroidery,
-should still haunt the palace of ruined pride
-and overthrown power, the symbol of a departed
-system, embodying a history in her person. So Esther
-Dudley dwelt, year after year, in the Province House,
-still reverencing all that others had flung aside, still
-faithful to her king, who, so long as the venerable
-dame yet held her post, might be said to retain one
-true subject in New England, and one spot of the
-empire that had been wrested from him.</p>
-
-<p>And did she dwell there in utter loneliness? Rumor
-said, not so. Whenever her chill and withered heart
-desired warmth, she was wont to summon a black slave
-of Governor Shirley’s from the blurred mirror, and
-send him in search of guests who had long ago been
-familiar in those deserted chambers. Forth went the
-sable messenger, with the starlight or the moonshine
-gleaming through him, and did his errand in the burial-ground,
-knocking at the iron doors of tombs, or upon
-the marble slabs that covered them, and whispering<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">[47]</span>
-to those within, “My mistress, old Esther Dudley,
-bids you to the Province House at midnight.” And
-punctually as the clock of the Old South told twelve
-came the shadows of the Olivers, the Hutchinsons, the
-Dudleys, all the grandees of a bygone generation,
-gliding beneath the portal into the well-known mansion,
-where Esther mingled with them as if she likewise were
-a shade. Without vouching for the truth of such
-traditions, it is certain that Mistress Dudley sometimes
-assembled a few of the stanch though crestfallen old
-Tories who had lingered in the rebel town during those
-days of wrath and tribulation. Out of a cobwebbed
-bottle, containing liquor that a royal governor might
-have smacked his lips over, they quaffed healths to the
-king, and babbled treason to the Republic, feeling as
-if the protecting shadow of the throne were still flung
-around them. But, draining the last drops of their
-liquor, they stole timorously homeward, and answered
-not again if the rude mob reviled them in the street.</p>
-
-<p>Yet Esther Dudley’s most frequent and favored
-guests were the children of the town. Toward them
-she was never stern. A kindly and loving nature,
-hindered elsewhere from its free course by a thousand
-rocky prejudices, lavished itself upon these little ones.
-By bribes of gingerbread of her own making, stamped
-with a royal crown, she tempted their sunny sportiveness
-beneath the gloomy portal of the Province House,
-and would often beguile them to spend a whole play-day
-there, sitting in a circle round the verge of her hoop<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">[48]</span>
-petticoat, greedily attentive to her stories of a dead
-world. And when these little boys and girls stole
-forth again from the dark, mysterious mansion, they
-went bewildered, full of old feelings that graver people
-had long ago forgotten, rubbing their eyes at the
-world around them as if they had gone astray into
-ancient times, and become children of the past. At
-home, when their parents asked where they had loitered
-such a weary while, and with whom they had been
-at play, the children would talk of all the departed
-worthies of the province, as far back as Governor
-Belcher, and the haughty dame of Sir William Phipps.
-It would seem as though they had been sitting on the
-knees of these famous personages, whom the grave had
-hidden for half a century, and had toyed with the embroidery
-of their rich waistcoats, or roguishly pulled
-the long curls of their flowing wigs. “But Governor
-Belcher has been dead this many a year,” would the
-mother say to her little boy. “And did you really
-see him at the Province House?” “Oh, yes, dear
-mother! Yes!” the half-dreaming child would answer.
-“But when old Esther had done speaking about
-him he faded away out of his chair.” Thus, without
-affrighting her little guests, she led them by the hand
-into the chambers of her own desolate heart, and made
-childhood’s fancy discern the ghosts that haunted
-there.</p>
-
-<p>Living so continually in her own circle of ideas, and
-never regulating her mind by a proper reference to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">[49]</span>
-present things, Esther Dudley appears to have grown
-partially crazed. It was found that she had no right
-sense of the progress and true state of the Revolutionary
-War, but held a constant faith that the armies of
-Britain were victorious on every field, and destined
-to be ultimately triumphant. Whenever the town rejoiced
-for a battle won by Washington, or Gates, or
-Morgan, or Greene, the news, in passing through the
-door of the Province House, as through the ivory gate
-of dreams, became metamorphosed into a strange tale
-of the prowess of Howe, Clinton, or Cornwallis. Sooner
-or later, it was her invincible belief, the colonies would
-be prostrate at the footstool of the king. Sometimes
-she seemed to take for granted that such was already
-the case. On one occasion she startled the townspeople
-by a brilliant illumination of the Province House, with
-candles at every pane of glass, and a transparency of the
-king’s initials and a crown of light in the great balcony
-window. The figure of the aged woman, in the most
-gorgeous of her mildewed velvets and brocades, was
-seen passing from casement to casement, until she
-paused before the balcony, and flourished a huge key
-above her head. Her wrinkled visage actually gleamed
-with triumph, as if the soul within her were a festal
-lamp.</p>
-
-<p>“What means this blaze of light? What does old
-Esther’s joy portend?” whispered a spectator. “It is
-frightful to see her gliding about the chambers, and
-rejoicing there without a soul to bear her company.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">[50]</span>“It is as if she were making merry in a tomb,” said
-another.</p>
-
-<p>“Pshaw! It is no such mystery,” observed an old
-man, after some brief exercise of memory. “Mistress
-Dudley is keeping jubilee for the King of England’s
-birthday.” Then the people laughed aloud, and
-would have thrown mud against the blazing transparency
-of the king’s crown and initials, only that they
-pitied the poor old dame, who was so dismally triumphant
-amid the wreck and ruin of the system to which
-she appertained.</p>
-
-<p>Oftentimes it was her custom to climb the weary
-staircase that wound upward to the cupola, and thence
-strain her dimmed eyesight seaward and countryward,
-watching for a British fleet, or for the march of a grand
-procession, with the king’s banner floating over it.
-The passengers in the street below would discern her
-anxious visage, and send up a shout, “When the golden
-Indian on the Province House shall shoot his arrow,
-and when the cock on the Old South spire shall crow,
-then look for a royal governor again!”—for this had
-grown a byword through the town. And at last, after
-long, long years, old Esther Dudley knew, or perchance
-she only dreamed, that a royal governor was on the eve
-of returning to the Province House, to receive the
-heavy key which Sir William Howe had committed to
-her charge. Now it was the fact that intelligence bearing
-some faint analogy to Esther’s version of it was
-current among the townspeople. She set the mansion<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">[51]</span>
-in the best order that her means allowed, and, arraying
-herself in silks and tarnished gold, stood long before
-the blurred mirror to admire her own magnificence.
-As she gazed, the gray and withered lady moved her
-ashen lips, murmuring half aloud, talking to shapes that
-she saw within the mirror, to shadows of her own fantasies,
-to the household friends of memory, and bidding
-them rejoice with her, and come forth to meet the governor.
-And, while absorbed in this communion, Mistress
-Dudley heard the tramp of many footsteps in the
-street, and, looking out at the window, beheld what she
-construed as the royal governor’s arrival.</p>
-
-<p>“O happy day! O blessed, blessed hour!” she exclaimed.
-“Let me but bid him welcome within the
-portal, and my task in the Province House, and on
-earth, is done!”</p>
-
-<p>Then with tottering feet, which age and tremulous
-joy caused to tread amiss, she hurried down the grand
-staircase, her silks sweeping and rustling as she went, so
-that the sound was as if a train of spectral courtiers
-were thronging from the dim mirror. And Esther Dudley
-fancied that, as soon as the wide door should be
-flung open, all the pomp and splendor of bygone times
-would pace majestically into the Province House, and
-the gilded tapestry of the past would be brightened by
-the sunshine of the present. She turned the key,
-withdrew it from the lock, unclosed the door, and
-stepped across the threshold. Advancing up the
-courtyard appeared a person of most dignified mien,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">[52]</span>
-with tokens, as Esther interpreted them, of gentle
-blood, high rank, and long-accustomed authority, even
-in his walk and every gesture. He was richly dressed,
-but wore a gouty shoe, which, however, did not lessen
-the stateliness of his gait. Around and behind him
-were people in plain civic dresses, and two or three war-worn
-veterans, evidently officers of rank, arrayed in a
-uniform of blue and buff. But Esther Dudley, firm in
-the belief that had fastened its roots about her heart,
-beheld only the principal personage, and never doubted
-that this was the long-looked-for governor, to whom
-she was to surrender up her charge. As he approached,
-she involuntarily sank down on her knees, and tremblingly
-held forth the heavy key.</p>
-
-<p>“Receive my trust! take it quickly!” cried she; “for
-methinks Death is striving to snatch away my triumph.
-But he comes too late. Thank Heaven for this blessed
-hour! God save King George!”</p>
-
-<p>“That, madam, is a strange prayer to be offered up
-at such a moment,” replied the unknown guest of the
-Province House, and, courteously removing his hat,
-he offered his arm to raise the aged woman. “Yet, in
-reverence for your gray hairs and long-kept faith,
-Heaven forbid that any here should say you nay.
-Over the realms which still acknowledge his sceptre,
-God save King George!”</p>
-
-<p>Esther Dudley started to her feet, and, hastily clutching
-back the key, gazed with fearful earnestness at the
-stranger; and dimly and doubtfully, as if suddenly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">[53]</span>
-awakened from a dream, her bewildered eyes half recognized
-his face. Years ago she had known him among
-the gentry of the province. But the ban of the king
-had fallen upon him! How, then, came the doomed victim
-here? Proscribed, excluded from mercy, the monarch’s
-most dreaded and hated foe, this New England
-merchant had stood triumphantly against a kingdom’s
-strength; and his foot now trod upon humbled royalty
-as he ascended the steps of the Province House, the
-people’s chosen governor of Massachusetts.</p>
-
-<p>“Wretch, wretch that I am!” muttered the old
-woman, with such a heart-broken expression that
-the tears gushed from the stranger’s eyes. “Have
-I bidden a traitor welcome? Come, Death! come
-quickly!”</p>
-
-<p>“Alas, venerable lady!” said Governor Hancock,
-lending her his support with all the reverence that a
-courtier would have shown to a queen. “Your life
-has been prolonged until the world has changed around
-you. You have treasured up all that time has rendered
-worthless—the principles, feelings, manners,
-modes of being and acting, which another generation
-has flung aside—and you are a symbol of the past.
-And I, and these around me—we represent a new race
-of men—living no longer in the past, scarcely in the
-present—but projecting our lives forward into the
-future. Ceasing to model ourselves on ancestral superstitions,
-it is our faith and principle to press onward,
-onward! Yet,” continued he, turning to his attendants,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">[54]</span>
-“let us reverence, for the last time, the stately
-and gorgeous prejudices of the tottering Past!”</p>
-
-<p>While the republican governor spoke he had continued
-to support the helpless form of Esther Dudley;
-her weight grew heavier against his arm; but at last,
-with a sudden effort to free herself, the ancient woman
-sank down beside one of the pillars of the portal. The
-key of the Province House fell from her grasp, and
-clanked against the stone.</p>
-
-<p>“I have been faithful unto death,” murmured she.
-“God save the king!”</p>
-
-<p>“She hath done her office!” said Hancock solemnly.
-“We will follow her reverently to the tomb of her ancestors;
-and then, my fellow-citizens, onward, onward!
-We are no longer children of the Past!”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">[55]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">BETTY’S RIDE: A TALE OF THE REVOLUTION<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">[D]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Henry S. Canby</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>The story of a brave little Quaker girl’s perilous ride. How she
-saved the lives of many hard-pressed patriots, and won praise
-from the lips of General Washington, himself.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE sun was just rising and showering his first
-rays on the gambrel roof and solid stone walls of
-a house surrounded by a magnificent grove of walnuts,
-and overlooking one of the beautiful valleys so common
-in southeastern Pennsylvania. Close by the
-house, and shaded by the same great trees, stood a low
-building of the most severe type, whose time-stained
-bricks and timbers green with moss told its age without
-the aid of the half-obliterated inscription over the
-door, which read, “Built A. D. 1720.” One familiar
-with the country would have pronounced it without
-hesitation a Quaker meeting-house, dating back almost
-to the time of William Penn.</p>
-
-<p>When Ezra Dale had become the leader of the little
-band of Quakers which gathered here every First
-Day, he had built the house under the walnut trees,
-and had taken his wife Ann and his little daughter
-Betty to live there. That was in 1770, seven years<span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">[56]</span>
-earlier, and before war had wrought sorrow and desolation
-throughout the country.</p>
-
-<p>The sun rose higher, and just as his beams touched
-the broad stone step in front of the house, the door
-opened, and Ann Dale, a sweet-faced woman in the
-plain Quaker garb, came out, followed by Betty, a
-little blue-eyed Quakeress of twelve years, with a
-gleam of spirit in her face which ill became her plain
-dress.</p>
-
-<p>“Betty,” said her mother, as they walked out toward
-the great horse block by the roadside, “thee must keep
-house to-day. Friend Robert has just sent thy father
-word that the redcoats have not crossed the Brandywine
-since Third Day last, and thy father and I will
-ride to Chester to-day, that there may be other than
-corn-cakes and bacon for the friends who come to us
-after monthly meeting. Mind thee keeps near the
-house and finishes thy sampler.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, mother,” said Betty; “but will thee not come
-home early? I shall miss thee sadly.”</p>
-
-<p>Just then Ezra appeared, wearing his collarless
-Quaker coat, and leading a horse saddled with a great
-pillion, into which Ann laboriously climbed after her
-husband, and with a final warning and “farewell”
-to Betty, clasped him tightly around the waist lest
-she should be jolted off as they jogged down the rough
-and winding lane into the broad Chester highway.</p>
-
-<p>Friend Ann had many reasons for fearing to leave
-Betty alone for a whole day, and she looked back<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">[57]</span>
-anxiously at her waving “farewell” with her little bonnet.</p>
-
-<p>It was a troublous time.</p>
-
-<p>The Revolution was at its height, and the British,
-who had a short time before disembarked their army
-near Elkton, Maryland, were now encamped near
-White Clay Creek, while Washington occupied the
-country bordering on the Brandywine. His force,
-however, was small compared to the extent of the
-country to be guarded, and bands of the British sometimes
-crossed the Brandywine and foraged in the fertile
-counties of Delaware and Chester. As Betty’s
-father, although a Quaker and a non-combatant, was
-known to be a patriot, he had to suffer the fortunes of
-war with his neighbors.</p>
-
-<p>Thus it was with many forebodings that Betty’s
-mother watched the slight figure under the spreading
-branches of a great chestnut, which seemed to rustle
-its innumerable leaves as if to promise protection to the
-little maid. However, the sun shone brightly, the
-swallows chirped as they circled overhead, and nothing
-seemed farther off than battle and bloodshed.</p>
-
-<p>Betty skipped merrily into the house, and snatching
-up some broken corn-cake left from the morning meal,
-ran lightly out to the paddock where Daisy was kept,
-her own horse, which she had helped to raise from a
-colt.</p>
-
-<p>“Come thee here, Daisy,” she said, as she seated herself
-on the top rail of the mossy snake fence. “Come<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">[58]</span>
-thee here, and thee shall have some of thy mistress’s
-corn-cake. Ah! I thought thee would like it. Now
-go and eat all thee can of this good grass, for if the
-wicked redcoats come again, thee will not have another
-chance, I can tell thee.”</p>
-
-<p>Daisy whinnied and trotted off, while Betty, feeding
-the few chickens (sadly reduced in numbers by numerous
-raids), returned to the house, and getting her
-sampler, sat down under a walnut tree to sew on the
-stint which her mother had given her.</p>
-
-<p>All was quiet save the chattering of the squirrels
-overhead and the drowsy hum of the bees, when from
-around the curve in the road she heard a shot; then
-another nearer, and then a voice shouting commands,
-and the thud of hoof-beats farther down the valley.
-She jumped up with a startled cry: “The redcoats!
-The redcoats! Oh, what shall I do!”</p>
-
-<p>Just then the foremost of a scattered band of soldiers,
-their buff and blue uniforms and ill-assorted
-arms showing them to be Americans, appeared in full
-flight around the curve in the road, and springing over
-the fence, dashed across the pasture straight for the
-meeting-house. Through the broad gateway they
-poured, and forcing open the door of the meeting-house,
-rushed within and began to barricade the windows.</p>
-
-<p>Their leader paused while his men passed in, and
-seeing Betty, came quickly toward her.</p>
-
-<p>“What do you here, child?” he said hurriedly. “Go
-quickly, before the British reach us, and tell your father,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">[59]</span>
-that, Quaker or no Quaker, he shall ride to Washington,
-on the Brandywine, and tell him that we, but one
-hundred men, are besieged by three hundred British
-cavalry in Chichester meeting-house, with but little
-powder left. Tell him to make all haste to us.”</p>
-
-<p>Turning, he hastened into the meeting-house, now converted
-into a fort, and as the doors closed behind him
-Betty saw a black muzzle protruding from every window.</p>
-
-<p>With trembling fingers the little maid picked up her
-sampler, and as the thud of horses’ hoofs grew louder
-and louder, she ran fearfully into the house, locked
-and bolted the massive door, and then flying up the
-broad stairs, she seated herself in a little window overlooking
-the meeting-house yard. She had gone into
-the house none too soon. Up the road, with their
-red coats gleaming and their harness jangling, was
-sweeping a detachment of British cavalry, never stopping
-until they reached the meeting-house—and then
-it was too late.</p>
-
-<p>A sheet of flame shot out from the wall before them,
-and half a dozen troopers fell lifeless to the ground,
-and half a dozen riderless horses galloped wildly down
-the road. The leader shouted a sharp command, and
-the whole troop retreated in confusion.</p>
-
-<p>Betty drew back shuddering, and when she brought
-herself to look again the troopers had dismounted, had
-surrounded the meeting-house, and were pouring volley
-after volley at its doors and windows. Then for the
-first time Betty thought of the officer’s message, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">[60]</span>
-remembered that the safety of the Americans depended
-upon her alone, for her father was away, no neighbor
-within reach, and without powder she knew they could
-not resist long.</p>
-
-<p>Could she save them? All her stern Quaker blood
-rose at the thought, and stealing softly to the paddock
-behind the barn, she saddled Daisy and led her through
-the bars into the wood road, which opened into the
-highway just around the bend. Could she but pass the
-pickets without discovery there would be little danger
-of pursuit; then there would be only the long ride of
-eight miles ahead of her.</p>
-
-<p>Just before the narrow wood road joined the broader
-highway Betty mounted Daisy by means of a convenient
-stump, and starting off at a gallop, had just
-turned the corner when a voice shouted “Halt” and a
-shot whistled past her head. Betty screamed with
-terror, and bending over, brought down her riding whip
-with all her strength upon Daisy, then, turning for a
-moment, saw three troopers hurriedly mounting.</p>
-
-<p>Her heart sank within her, but, beginning to feel the
-excitement of the chase, she leaned over and patting
-Daisy on the neck, encouraged her to do her best.
-Onward they sped. Betty, her curly hair streaming in
-the wind, the color now mounting to, now retreating
-from, her cheeks, led by five hundred yards.</p>
-
-<p>But Daisy had not been used for weeks, and already
-felt the unusual strain. Now they thundered over
-Naaman’s Creek, now over Concord, with the nearest<span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">[61]</span>
-pursuer only four hundred yards behind; and now they
-raced beside the clear waters of Beaver Brook, and as
-Betty dashed through its shallow ford, the thud of horses’
-hoofs seemed just over her shoulder.</p>
-
-<p>Betty, at first sure of success, now knew that unless
-in some way she could throw her pursuers off her track
-she was surely lost. Just then she saw ahead of her a
-fork in the road, the lower branch leading to the
-Brandywine, the upper to the Birmingham Meeting-house.
-Could she but get the troopers on the upper
-road while she took the lower, she would be safe; and,
-as if in answer to her wish, there flashed across her mind
-the remembrance of the old cross-road which, long
-disused, and with its entrance hidden by drooping
-boughs, led from a point in the upper road just out of
-sight of the fork down across the lower, and through
-the valley of the Brandywine. Could she gain this
-road unseen she still might reach Washington.</p>
-
-<p>Urging Daisy forward, she broke just in time through
-the dense growth which hid the entrance, and sat trembling,
-hidden behind a dense growth of tangled vines,
-while she heard the troopers thunder by. Then, riding
-through the rustling woods, she came at last into the
-open, and saw spread out beneath her the beautiful
-valley of the Brandywine dotted with the white tents
-of the Continental army.</p>
-
-<p>Starting off at a gallop, she dashed around a bend in
-the road into the midst of a group of officers riding
-slowly up from the valley.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">[62]</span>“Stop, little maiden, before you run us down,” said
-one, who seemed to be in command. “Where are you
-going in such hot haste?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, sir,” said Betty, reining in Daisy, “can thee tell
-me where I can find General Washington?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, little Quakeress,” said the officer, who had first
-spoken to her, “I am he. What do you wish?”</p>
-
-<p>Betty, too exhausted to be surprised, poured forth
-her story in a few broken sentences, and (hearing as if
-in a dream the hasty commands for the rescue of the
-soldiers in Chichester Meeting-house) fell forward in
-her saddle, and, for the first time in her life, fainted,
-worn out by her noble ride.</p>
-
-<p>A few days later, when recovering from the shock of
-her long and eventful ride, Betty, waking from a deep
-sleep, found her mother kneeling beside her little bed,
-while her father talked with General Washington himself
-beside the fireplace; and it was the proudest and
-happiest moment of her life when Washington, coming
-forward and taking her by the hand, said, “You are the
-bravest little maid in America, and an honor to your
-country.”</p>
-
-<p>Still the peaceful meeting-house and the gambrel-roofed
-home stand unchanged, save that their time-beaten
-timbers and crumbling bricks have taken on a
-more sombre tinge, and under the broad walnut tree
-another little Betty sits and sews.</p>
-
-<p>If you ask it, she will take down the great key from
-its nail, and swinging back the new doors of the meeting-house,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">[63]</span>
-will show you the old worm-eaten ones inside,
-which, pierced through and through with bullet-holes,
-once served as a rampart against the enemy. And
-she will tell you, in the quaint Friends’ language, how
-her great-great-grandmother carried, more than a hundred
-years ago, the news of the danger of her countrymen
-to Washington, on the Brandywine, and at the risk
-of her own life, saved theirs.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">[64]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THE FIRST BLOW FOR AMERICAN LIBERTY<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">[E]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">(A STORY OF THE BUNKER HILL POWDER)</p>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Emma W. Demeritt</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Two little New Hampshire boys play a part in the patriots’ capture
-of a quantity of King George’s powder, and this very same powder
-was afterward used to fight the redcoats at the Battle of Bunker
-Hill.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">TONY sat on a bench in the corner of the great
-stone fireplace watching the big logs as they sang
-and crackled and the flames leaped upward filling the
-room with a cheerful glow. Now and then he turned
-his head and glanced at a tall woman who was bustling
-about, getting supper ready.</p>
-
-<p>“Aunt Mercy?”</p>
-
-<p>No answer.</p>
-
-<p>“Aunt Mercy,” he said, a little louder.</p>
-
-<p>But his aunt did not reply. She probably did not
-hear the boy so occupied was she with her thoughts.
-Her usually pleasant face wore an anxious look and
-several times Tony fancied from the movements of
-her lips that she was speaking to herself.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, dear!” he thought. “I wonder what it is that
-has made Aunt Mercy so sober for the last day or two!<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">[65]</span>
-She doesn’t answer me when I speak. She hardly notices
-Larry and me, and it’s just the same with Uncle
-Eben. They whisper together, and some of the neighbors
-have been here, and they have all been shut up
-in a room together, and they all look so solemn! I only
-hope that dreadful war isn’t going to come that they
-talk about.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tony,” said his aunt, as she took two shining pewter
-platters from the dresser and placed them on the table,
-“have you or Larry come across my spectacles anywhere?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, ma’am.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, perhaps I left them at meeting last Sunday.
-Never mind. I want you to go up garret and bring me
-that big bunch of herbs hanging by the east window.”</p>
-
-<p>Tony glanced toward the kitchen window and was
-relieved to find it was still quite light. He was always
-shy of the old, open garret even in the daytime. He
-never liked to play there as well as his brother Larry
-and the other boys. The long rows of cloaks and coats
-and gowns swinging from their pegs in the dimly lighted
-space under the rafters had a look that made him feel
-as if they might spring out at him as he passed.</p>
-
-<p>And there were certain other things there which
-helped to increase Tony’s dread of the garret. There
-were an old chest in the corner containing the uniform
-of Tony’s great uncle who had served as captain in the
-early French and Indian wars, and a rusty sword and
-tomahawk hanging from a nail in the huge beam<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">[66]</span>
-overhead. The sword had two or three suggestive
-notches in the long blade, and on the wooden handle of
-the tomahawk which had once belonged to a ferocious
-Indian chief were several suspicious-looking brown
-stains. Larry liked to handle these relics, but the mere
-sight of them always sent shivers creeping down Tony’s
-back.</p>
-
-<p>“Make haste, Tony, and bring the herbs before it
-grows any darker,” continued his aunt. “I never like
-to go up garret with a light; it’s dangerous business.
-I am worried and nervous, and I want a bowl of hot
-herb tea.”</p>
-
-<p>Tony stopped, his thumb on the latch. “What is it
-that worries you so?” he asked in his sweet, sympathetic
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>“A thousand things, child, you wouldn’t understand
-if I told you—the dread of what’s coming—the loss of
-property and friends—life itself perhaps. But we’ll
-hope for the best. The king may yet repent and try
-to do what is right by us. But we don’t know—we
-don’t know.”</p>
-
-<p>It was the December of 1774, five months before
-Lexington, the first battle of the American Revolution.
-Throughout the colonies there was a growing feeling
-of uneasiness and indignation. The colonists were too
-much attached to the mother country to wish for war.
-Morning and night they prayed that God would show
-them some peaceful way out of the trouble. But the
-king had taken away so many of their rights and laid<span class="pagenum" id="Page_67">[67]</span>
-taxes so heavy and unjust upon them that it began to
-look as if the only thing to do was to fight him. The
-people of New Hampshire, where Larry and Tony lived,
-were especially excited and alarmed, for they were so
-near Boston that they sympathized heartily with that
-much-wronged city which seemed to have been singled
-out as a mark for special spite.</p>
-
-<p>Tony passed through the cold hall and upstairs, and
-opening the garret door stumbled hastily to the top step.
-As he reached the landing his heart gave a sudden
-thump. He fancied he heard a noise. He stood listening,
-but there was not a sound. “I guess it was the
-branches of the big elm scraping against the roof,” he
-thought. Mustering his courage he darted by the row
-of clothes and was just reaching up for the herbs when a
-figure suddenly stepped from behind the chimney.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” gasped the frightened boy, stumbling back
-over the big chest and bumping his head with a clatter
-against the dreaded sword and tomahawk. Larry’s
-arm raised him to his feet and Larry’s bright face bent
-over him.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Tony! how little it takes to scare you! I
-was up here and heard some one coming and thought it
-one of the men and that I’d have some fun with him.
-See!” and Larry took down the rusty tomahawk and
-gave a whoop that made the rafters ring, and flourished
-the old relic in a way that caused Tony’s curly hair to
-stand on end. “This isn’t such a terrible thing, after
-all—it can’t hurt you.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_68">[68]</span>He got the herbs for his young brother and as he did
-so, happened to look out of the window. “Whew!”
-he whistled softly, “there are two men going into the
-meeting-house. And how queerly they act, looking
-all around as if they were afraid some one would see
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, Larry! can’t you run up and see if Aunt Mercy’s
-spectacles are in the pew? She thinks she left them
-there last Sunday.”</p>
-
-<p>“All right! you take the herbs downstairs and I
-will.”</p>
-
-<p>On his return to the kitchen Tony found that his
-aunt had left the room, and he sat down in the chimney
-corner to wait for supper. In a few moments the door
-opened, and Larry stood before him, his eyes flashing,
-his cheeks flushed.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you get the spectacles, Larry?”</p>
-
-<p>“Spectacles! I haven’t even thought of them.
-Listen, Tony! I have a secret—a <i>great</i> secret. After
-I left you I hurried up to the meeting-house and as I
-stepped inside the entry I thought I heard a queer
-noise, as if some one were digging. So I opened the
-door softly and peeped in—and there—<i>as sure as you
-are alive, I saw two men digging a great, deep hole under
-the pulpit</i>. They were talking so low I couldn’t hear
-more than half they said. But I made out that uncle
-and Captain Sullivan and some others are going to
-meet there to-night and go off in boats on some wonderful
-expedition. And, Tony, I am going to find out<span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">[69]</span>
-what it is. We’ll go to our room as usual after supper,
-but instead of going to bed, we’ll creep downstairs and
-go up to the meeting-house and hide inside, and wait
-there.”</p>
-
-<p>“But will it be right to listen, Larry?” asked Tony
-gravely. “You know Aunt Mercy says ‘Eavesdroppers
-hear no good of themselves.’”</p>
-
-<p>“But this isn’t eavesdropping, Tony. Listening is
-a mean trick. But this is different. Uncle is going
-into danger of some sort and I <i>ought</i> to learn what it is.
-I can’t believe <i>that</i> is wrong.”</p>
-
-<p>Tony finally consented, thinking he would rather
-watch with Larry in the church than stay in his room
-at home alone in the dark.</p>
-
-<p>When Aunt Mercy returned, she filled the big iron
-pot with water, hung it on the crane and swung it over
-the blazing logs. “We are going to have pudding and
-milk for supper,” she said, “and we won’t wait for your
-uncle; he’s away, and may not be back until late into
-the night.”</p>
-
-<p>At these words Larry glanced significantly at Tony
-and gave a wise little nod.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>With the going down of the sun the cold rapidly increased.
-The night was clear and frosty. In front of
-the little wooden meeting-house on Durham Hill
-stood the two brothers shivering with cold and excitement.
-“Whew!” exclaimed Larry, pulling his
-cap down over his ears, “it’s a sharp night, Tony.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">[70]</span>
-Come farther this way; the meeting-house will keep off
-the wind.”</p>
-
-<p>“Shall we have to wait long, Larry?” asked Tony.</p>
-
-<p>Larry glanced at the moon just rising above the
-treetops. “I think it’s past the time now. Oh, I
-wonder what it is they are going to do.”</p>
-
-<p>“P’raps they are going to cross the ocean and take
-the king prisoner. I don’t think he treats us very well
-nowadays,” said Tony plaintively.</p>
-
-<p>Larry laughed. “I guess they won’t go quite as far
-as that. Oh, Tony! if I were a man, they would take
-me. It’s so provoking to be only a boy. I’m just big
-enough to want to be of some use, but not old enough
-to be trusted.” He drew Tony back in the shelter of
-the church and waited with his eyes fixed on the flowing
-Piscataqua which swept around the base of the hill
-on which they stood, and at the next turn widened
-into the broad expanse known as “The Great Bay.”</p>
-
-<p>It was upon the banks of this river that some of the
-bloodiest scenes of the early Indian wars had been enacted.
-Again and again had its shores resounded with
-warwhoops as the red men under cover of night rowed
-their canoes up to the infant settlements of New
-Hampshire and spared neither man, woman, nor child in
-the slaughter which followed. Across the river, in full
-view of the meeting-house, was a log fort known
-as the “Old Block House” which had served on many
-occasions as a refuge for the early settlers and enabled
-them to keep their savage foes at bay.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">[71]</span>“It’s cold—and—lonesome out here,” said Tony
-with a shiver, glancing involuntarily at the “Block
-House.”</p>
-
-<p>“You don’t mean to say you’re afraid of the Block
-House, Tony! Why, you are always glad of a chance
-to play there, afternoons.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes—but that was in the daytime. Out here in
-the dark I don’t like to think of the people who have
-been killed there.”</p>
-
-<p>“Tony! If we come to blows with England you
-won’t make a very good soldier. Now I’d like no better
-fun than to be in the Block House with a lot of screeching
-Indians outside. But we mustn’t talk so loud—and
-remember—if we hear the least noise we are to
-scamper into the meeting-house and hide.”</p>
-
-<p>The moon climbed higher and higher in the heavens,
-and soon there came to the ears of the watchers by the
-church the plash of oars. Larry bent forward, and
-his keen eyes detected a small black speck on the surface
-of the river. At the same time the sound of rapid
-footsteps was heard, and the two boys hastily entered
-the church and stumbling through the dark entry felt
-their way along the aisle and crouched down in one
-of the pews.</p>
-
-<p>Meantime, a man closely wrapped in a military cloak
-had taken their place in front of the church and stood
-looking out on the water. He, too, saw the dark object.
-Raising his fingers to his lips he gave a shrill whistle,
-which was promptly answered from the river, and in a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">[72]</span>
-short time eleven men, armed with muskets, came
-creeping stealthily up the hill, single file.</p>
-
-<p>“We are late, Captain Sullivan,” called out a gay
-voice, “but His Majesty has several devoted subjects
-hereabouts, and we did not dare venture within range
-of their prying eyes until after dark.”</p>
-
-<p>“Peace, Scammel, or that merry voice of yours will
-be starting some of these same good folks from their
-firesides,” returned Sullivan. “My trusty men!”
-there was a triumphant ring in his voice as he greeted
-them each by name—“Captain Winborn Adams,
-Eleazer Bennett, Ebenezer Thompson, John Demeritt,
-Alpheus Chesley, Jonathan Chesley, John Spenser,
-Micah Davis, Isaac Small, Benjamin Small, Alexander
-Scammel—thank God! not one of you is missing. And
-now, is everything ready yonder?” He pointed to the
-church.</p>
-
-<p>“See for yourself, Captain,” answered one of the
-men; and opening the door he paused to light a lantern
-which stood in the little entry. The eleven men followed
-him, their heavy boots clattering on the bare
-floor—down the aisle, to the pulpit. Here he stopped,
-and held the lantern high above his head. By the
-dim light they saw the deep pit, the loosened boards,
-and the pile of earth standing ready for filling in again.</p>
-
-<p>“’Tis well planned,” said the Captain, nodding approvingly.
-“It is the last place the British will think
-of searching for their lost powder. When Paul Revere
-came riding in hot haste into Portsmouth town last<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">[73]</span>
-night, bearing despatches from the Massachusetts Committee
-of Safety saying the king had ordered the seizure
-of all the powder and arms in the provinces, and that
-two of Gage’s regiments were on their way to garrison
-Portsmouth and Fort William and Mary here in Piscataqua
-harbor, I made up my mind that what was
-done must be done quickly. For if England forces us
-to fight—and it looks that way now—’twere well to
-have something to fight with.”</p>
-
-<p>“In good sooth, Captain Sullivan,” returned Scammel,
-“we should have to fight with the butt-end of our
-muskets, for powder and bullets are as scarce as roses
-at Christmas.”</p>
-
-<p>Sullivan continued: “I made up my mind that if
-I could get a few trusty men to join me I would make a
-dash for the fort on my own responsibility, for the
-possession of that powder means <i>everything</i> to us. But
-I do not want one of you to stir a foot unless you have
-counted the cost. This is a deliberate assault on a
-royal fortress, and it exposes every one of us to the
-penalty for high treason. If any man shrinks, let him
-turn back now before it is too late.”</p>
-
-<p>“We have counted the cost,” answered John Demeritt,
-“and we are ready.”</p>
-
-<p>“Follow me, then,” cried Sullivan, “and may God
-speed the right!”</p>
-
-<p>At that instant Tony, who was doubled up under the
-seat like a jackknife, had a cramp in his leg, and in
-trying to move his foot hit a wooden stool—and over<span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">[74]</span>
-it went with a loud crash, causing the utmost confusion.
-The men began searching the church while Larry’s
-uncle rushed around shouting savagely: “A spy!
-A spy! Seize him! Take him, dead or alive!”</p>
-
-<p>“It’s only us—Larry and me,” piped Tony, frightened
-almost out of his wits by his uncle’s fury. “We
-wanted to find out what was going on. And won’t you
-please take Larry with you? He is so brave and wants
-to fight so much.”</p>
-
-<p>“Go home, boys, and to bed, both of you!” ordered
-Larry’s uncle. “I’ll settle with you for this to-morrow.
-Do not look so disturbed, Captain Sullivan—I’ll answer
-for their secrecy.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, uncle! Oh, Captain Sullivan!” begged Larry in
-an eager, excited tone, “do let me go. I know I can
-help in some way. I want to be of some use, and I’m
-not afraid any more than you are.”</p>
-
-<p>Sullivan was touched by the boy’s earnestness. “We
-cannot take you, my boy. It would not be prudent—but
-you can help if you really wish it—there <i>is</i> a way.”
-He turned and whispered with some of the men. “We
-may need a pair of oxen to cart the powder. We
-ought not to bury it all in one place.”</p>
-
-<p>“If the lad will have the oxen and some straw ready
-for us in yonder barn, I’ll cart the powder wherever you
-say,” said John Demeritt. “I’ll bury it in my own cellar
-if you can think of no better place.”</p>
-
-<p>Sullivan noted the disappointment in Larry’s answer.
-“We are trusting much to you, my boy,” he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">[75]</span>
-said gravely; “and remember, Larry, if you want to be
-a soldier you must first learn to <i>obey</i>. Now go take
-your little brother home, and then have the team ready
-for us by the time yonder bright star reaches that line
-of woods by the Block House.”</p>
-
-<p>When the boys left, the men quickened their pace
-almost to a run in order to keep up with the Captain
-as he strode down-hill to the “gondola.”</p>
-
-<p>“Gondola” was the name given by the colonists to
-the broad, flat-bottomed scows used on the Piscataqua
-in the transportation of stone and other heavy
-material.</p>
-
-<p>The members of the little party quietly took the
-places assigned them, and the scow swung off into the
-middle of the river and moved slowly down-stream.
-The only sounds to be heard were the moaning of the
-wind through the bare forests and the measured dip of
-oars. The trip was made for the most part in silence,
-the men bending eagerly over the oars too much engrossed
-with their thoughts to indulge in idle chat.
-As the scow approached Portsmouth and the lights of
-the town glimmered in the distance, Sullivan ordered
-the men to row slowly.</p>
-
-<p>“If discovered now,” said he, “all is lost.”</p>
-
-<p>In a few moments they rounded a little headland and
-found awaiting them in the cove beyond two gondolas
-and a small boat containing in all some eighteen men.
-These were under the leadership of Captain Pickering.</p>
-
-<p>“Let us be off!” exclaimed Sullivan impatiently.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">[76]</span>
-“We must cross Portsmouth harbor before the moon
-shows her face again.”</p>
-
-<p>They pulled out into the middle of the stream in the
-momentary darkness, and by the time the clouds had
-drifted away from the moon the little fleet was within
-a rod of the island on which stood Fort William and
-Mary. All was dark and still within, and the only
-sound outside was the wash of the waves on the narrow
-beach. After a whispered consultation the men disembarked
-at a signal from Sullivan. Wading through
-the icy water they arranged themselves in line at the rear
-of the fort, while Pickering with three others crept
-cautiously in the shadow of the wall and disappeared
-behind one of the bastions. In a moment more a sentinel’s
-challenge rang out sharp and clear: “Who goes
-there? Stand, and give the countersign!”</p>
-
-<p>Pickering seized the soldier’s gun and grasped him
-by the throat. “Not a word more or you are a dead
-man,” he whispered.</p>
-
-<p>The men then made their way to the commandant’s
-room. He looked up as Sullivan and Pickering entered,
-but his smile of recognition changed to a blank stare as
-the former said with much agitation: “Captain Cochran,
-you are our prisoner. Your little garrison has surrendered.
-You had better follow its example!”</p>
-
-<p>Cochran glanced at the resolute faces of his captors,
-then tendered his sword. He was left in charge of two
-of the men while the rest of the party proceeded to
-break open the magazine. In the course of an hour and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">[77]</span>
-a half the powder was safe in the gondolas and the
-little band left the fort and began the hard task of
-rowing up-stream. Absolute silence was maintained,
-and when they finally landed at the foot of meeting-house
-hill and found Larry with the oxen awaiting
-them, they took off their heavy, nailed shoes lest a
-spark from them should set fire to the powder.</p>
-
-<p>By dawn Larry was back in his room telling the
-wonderful story to Tony. One half of the king’s
-powder was buried deep beneath the pulpit of the
-meeting-house, and John Demeritt, with the other half
-snugly hidden under a load of straw, was on the road to
-Madbury driving along his oxen as unconcernedly as
-if nothing had happened.</p>
-
-<p>The next day Governor Wentworth issued a proclamation,
-declaring all those who took part in the capture
-of Fort William and Mary guilty of high treason.
-Four months later the news from Lexington and Concord
-spread from the White Hills of New Hampshire to
-the pine forests of the Carolinas arousing the people
-to a renewed determination to defend with their lives—their
-rights and liberties.</p>
-
-<p>Major Sullivan, accompanied by his faithful little
-band, started at once for the scene of action. Indeed
-the New Hampshire troops were among the earliest at
-the front, for Bancroft tells us “the ferries on the Merrimack
-were crowded with the men of New Hampshire,”
-and that “they finally paraded on Cambridge Common
-having <i>run</i> rather than walked the entire distance.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_78">[78]</span>Captain John Demeritt, after reserving a portion of
-the powder for the use of his own company, brought out
-the remainder from his cellar and once more concealing
-it beneath a load of straw carted it with his ox team all
-the way to the headquarters of the American Army at
-Cambridge. He arrived in time to have it sent out to
-the troops at Bunker Hill, and a local historian tells us
-that it was stated on the best authority, that had not
-the powder arrived at so opportune a moment the fate
-of the day would have been far different. It was with
-this powder that the New Hampshire troops with two
-regiments from Connecticut guarded the flank at Bunker
-Hill, twice driving back the British. And it was
-with the same powder that they held the enemy at bay
-until Prescott’s little band had left the redoubt and
-then they retreated in good order through a galling
-fire.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_79">[79]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THE BATTLE OF BUNKER’S HILL<a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">[F]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Washington Irving</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>“Don’t fire till you see the whites of their eyes” were the orders
-of “Old Put” to the Yankee farmers who first taught the enemy
-that they could and would stand and fight British regulars.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE sound of drum and trumpet, the clatter of
-hoofs, the rattling of gun-carriages, and all the
-other military din and bustle in the streets of Boston,
-soon apprised the Americans on their rudely fortified
-height of an impending attack. They were ill-fitted to
-withstand it, being jaded by the night’s labor and want
-of sleep; hungry and thirsty, having brought but scanty
-supplies, and oppressed by the heat of the weather.
-Prescott sent repeated messages to General Ward,
-asking reinforcements and provisions. Putnam seconded
-the request in person, urging the exigencies of
-the case. Ward hesitated. He feared to weaken his
-main body at Cambridge, as his military stores were
-deposited there, and it might have to sustain the principal
-attack. At length, having taken advice of the
-council of safety, he issued orders for Colonels Stark
-and Read, then at Medford, to march to the relief of
-Prescott with their New Hampshire regiments. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_80">[80]</span>
-orders reached Medford about eleven o’clock. Ammunition
-was distributed in all haste; two flints, a gill of
-powder, and fifteen balls to each man. The balls had
-to be suited to the different calibres of the guns; the
-powder to be carried in powder-horns, or loose in the
-pocket, for there were no cartridges prepared. It was
-the rude turn-out of yeoman soldiery destitute of regular
-accoutrements.</p>
-
-<p>In the meanwhile, the Americans on Breed’s Hill were
-sustaining the fire from the ships, and from the battery
-on Copp’s Hill, which opened upon them about ten
-o’clock. They returned an occasional shot from one
-corner of the redoubt, without much harm to the enemy,
-and continued strengthening their position until about
-eleven o’clock, when they ceased to work, piled their intrenching
-tools in the rear, and looked out anxiously
-and impatiently for the anticipated reinforcements and
-supplies.</p>
-
-<p>About this time General Putnam, who had been to
-headquarters, arrived at the redoubt on horseback.
-Some words passed between him and Prescott with regard
-to the intrenching tools, which have been variously
-reported. The most probable version is, that he urged
-to have them taken from their present place, where
-they might fall into the hands of the enemy, and carried
-to Bunker’s Hill, to be employed in throwing up a redoubt,
-which was part of the original plan, and which
-would be very important should the troops be obliged
-to retreat from Breed’s Hill. To this Prescott demurred<span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">[81]</span>
-that those employed to convey them, and who were
-already jaded with toil, might not return to his redoubt.
-A large part of the tools were ultimately carried to
-Bunker’s Hill, and a breastwork commenced by order
-of General Putnam. The importance of such a work
-was afterward made apparent.</p>
-
-<p>About noon the Americans descried twenty-eight
-barges crossing from Boston in parallel lines. They
-contained a large detachment of grenadiers, rangers,
-and light infantry, admirably equipped, and commanded
-by Major-general Howe. They made a
-splendid and formidable appearance with their scarlet
-uniforms, and the sun flashing upon muskets and bayonets,
-and brass fieldpieces. A heavy fire from the
-ships and batteries covered their advance, but no attempt
-was made to oppose them, and they landed about
-one o’clock at Moulton’s Point, a little to the north of
-Breed’s Hill.</p>
-
-<p>Here General Howe made a pause. On reconnoitering
-the works from this point, the Americans appeared
-to be much more strongly posted than he had imagined.
-He descried troops also hastening to their assistance.
-These were the New Hampshire troops, led on by
-Stark. Howe immediately sent over to General Gage
-for more forces, and a supply of cannon-balls; those
-brought by him being found, through some egregious
-oversight, too large for the ordnance. While awaiting
-their arrival, refreshments were served out to the
-troops, with “grog” by the bucketful; and tantalizing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">[82]</span>
-it was, to the hungry and thirsty provincials, to look
-down from their ramparts of earth, and see their invaders
-seated in groups upon the grass eating and drinking,
-and preparing themselves by a hearty meal for the
-coming encounter. Their only consolation was to take
-advantage of the delay, while the enemy were carousing,
-to strengthen their position. The breastwork on the
-left of the redoubt extended to what was called the
-Slough, but beyond this, the ridge of the hill, and the
-slope toward Mystic River, were undefended, leaving a
-pass by which the enemy might turn the left flank of the
-position and seize upon Bunker’s Hill. Putnam ordered
-his chosen officer, Captain Knowlton, to cover this
-pass with the Connecticut troops under his command.
-A novel kind of rampart, savoring of rural device, was
-suggested by the rustic general. About six hundred
-feet in the rear of the redoubt, and about one hundred
-feet to the left of the breastwork, was a post-and-rail
-fence, set in a low footwall of stone, and extending down
-to Mystic River. The posts and rails of another fence
-were hastily pulled up and set a few feet in behind
-this, and the intermediate space was filled up with
-new-mown hay from the adjacent meadows. This
-double fence, it will be found, proved an important
-protection to the redoubt, although there still remained
-an unprotected interval of about seven hundred feet.</p>
-
-<p>While Knowlton and his men were putting up this
-fence, Putnam proceeded with other of his troops to
-throw up the work on Bunker’s Hill, despatching his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">[83]</span>
-son, Captain Putnam, on horseback, to hurry up the
-remainder of his men from Cambridge. By this time
-his compeer in French and Indian warfare, the veteran
-Stark, made his appearance with the New Hampshire
-troops, five hundred strong. He had grown cool and
-wary with age, and his march from Medford, a distance
-of five or six miles, had been in character. He led
-his men at a moderate pace, to bring them into action
-fresh and vigorous. In crossing the Neck, which was
-enfiladed by the enemy’s ships and batteries, Captain
-Dearborn, who was by his side, suggested a quick step.
-The veteran shook his head: “One fresh man in action
-is worth ten tired ones,” replied he, and marched
-steadily on.</p>
-
-<p>Putnam detained some of Stark’s men to aid in throwing
-up the work on Bunker’s Hill, and directed him to
-reinforce Knowlton with the rest. Stark made a short
-speech to his men, now that they were likely to have
-warm work. He then pushed on, and did good service
-that day at the rustic bulwark.</p>
-
-<p>About two o’clock Warren arrived on the heights,
-ready to engage in their perilous defence, although he
-had opposed the scheme of their occupation. He had
-recently been elected a major-general, but had not received
-his commission; like Pomeroy, he came to serve
-in the ranks with a musket on his shoulder. Putnam
-offered him the command at the fence; he declined it,
-and merely asked where he could be of most service
-as a volunteer. Putnam pointed to the redoubt, observing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">[84]</span>
-that there he would be under cover. “Don’t
-think I seek a place of safety,” replied Warren quickly;
-“where will the attack be the hottest?” Putnam still
-pointed to the redoubt. “That is the enemy’s object;
-if that can be maintained, the day is ours.”</p>
-
-<p>Warren was cheered by the troops as he entered the
-redoubt. Colonel Prescott tendered him the command.
-He again declined. “I have come to serve
-only as a volunteer, and shall be happy to learn from a
-soldier of your experience.” Such were the noble spirits
-assembled on these perilous heights.</p>
-
-<p>The British now prepared for a general assault. An
-easy victory was anticipated; the main thought was,
-how to make it most effectual. The left wing, commanded
-by General Pigot, was to mount the hill and
-force the redoubt; while General Howe, with the right
-wing, was to push on between the fort and Mystic
-River, turn the left flank of the Americans, and cut
-off their retreat.</p>
-
-<p>General Pigot, accordingly, advanced up the hill
-under cover of a fire from fieldpieces and howitzers
-planted on a small height near the landing-place on
-Moulton’s Point. His troops commenced a discharge
-of musketry while yet at a long distance from the redoubts.
-The Americans within the works, obedient to
-strict command, retained their fire until the enemy were
-within thirty or forty paces, when they opened upon
-them with a tremendous volley. Being all marksmen,
-accustomed to take deliberate aim, the slaughter was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">[85]</span>
-immense, and especially fatal to officers. The assailants
-fell back in some confusion; but rallied on by their officers,
-advanced within pistol shot. Another volley, more effective
-than the first, made them again recoil. To add to
-their confusion, they were galled by a flanking fire from the
-handful of provincials posted in Charlestown. Shocked
-at the carnage, and seeing the confusion of his troops,
-General Pigot was urged to give the word for a retreat.</p>
-
-<p>In the meantime, General Howe, with the right wing,
-advanced along Mystic River toward the fence where
-Stark, Read, and Knowlton were stationed, thinking to
-carry this slight breastwork with ease, and so get in the
-rear of the fortress. His artillery proved of little avail,
-being stopped by a swampy piece of ground, while his
-columns suffered from two or three fieldpieces with
-which Putnam had fortified the fence. Howe’s men
-kept up a fire of musketry as they advanced; but, not
-taking aim, their shots passed over the heads of the
-Americans. The latter had received the same orders
-with those in the redoubt, not to fire until the enemy
-should be within thirty paces. Some few transgressed
-the command. Putnam rode up and swore he would
-cut down the next man that fired contrary to orders.
-When the British arrived within the stated distance
-a sheeted fire opened upon them from rifles, muskets,
-and fowling-pieces, all leveled with deadly aim. The
-carnage, as in the other instance, was horrible. The
-British were thrown into confusion and fell back; some
-even retreated to the boats.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">[86]</span>There was a general pause on the part of the British.
-The American officers availed themselves of it to prepare
-for another attack, which must soon be made.
-Prescott mingled among his men in the redoubt, who
-were all in high spirits at the severe check they had
-given “the regulars.” He praised them for their steadfastness
-in maintaining their post, and their good conduct
-in reserving their fire until the word of command,
-and exhorted them to do the same in the next attack.</p>
-
-<p>Putnam rode about Bunker’s Hill and its skirts, to
-rally and bring on reinforcements which had been
-checked or scattered in crossing Charlestown Neck by
-the raking fire from the ships and batteries. Before
-many could be brought to the scene of action the
-British had commenced their second attack. They
-again ascended the hill to storm the redoubt; their
-advance was covered as before by discharges of artillery.
-Charlestown, which had annoyed them on their
-first attack by a flanking fire, was in flames, by shells
-thrown from Copp’s Hill, and by marines from the
-ships. Being built of wood, the place was soon wrapped
-in a general conflagration. The thunder of artillery
-from batteries and ships; the bursting of bomb-shells;
-the sharp discharges of musketry; the shouts and yells
-of the combatants; the crash of burning buildings,
-and the dense volumes of smoke, which obscured the
-summer sun, all formed a tremendous spectacle. “Sure
-I am,” said Burgoyne in one of his letters—“Sure I
-am nothing ever has or ever can be more dreadfully<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">[87]</span>
-terrible than what was to be seen or heard at this time.
-The most incessant discharge of guns that ever was
-heard by mortal ears.”</p>
-
-<p>The American troops, although unused to war, stood
-undismayed amidst a scene where it was bursting upon
-them with all its horrors. Reserving their fire, as
-before, until the enemy was close at hand, they again
-poured forth repeated volleys with the fatal aim of
-sharpshooters. The British stood the first shock, and
-continued to advance; but the incessant stream of fire
-staggered them. Their officers remonstrated, threatened,
-and even attempted to goad them on with their
-swords, but the havoc was too deadly; whole ranks were
-mowed down; many of the officers were either slain or
-wounded, and among them several of the staff of
-General Howe. The troops again gave way and retreated
-down the hill.</p>
-
-<p>All this passed under the eye of thousands of spectators
-of both sexes and all ages, watching from afar every
-turn of a battle in which the lives of those most dear
-to them were at hazard. The British soldiery in Boston
-gazed with astonishment and almost incredulity at
-the resolute and protracted stand of raw militia whom
-they had been taught to despise, and at the havoc made
-among their own veteran troops. Every convoy of
-wounded brought over to the town increased their consternation;
-and General Clinton, who had watched the
-action from Copp’s Hill, embarking in a boat, hurried
-over as a volunteer, taking with him reinforcements.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">[88]</span>A third attack was now determined on, though some
-of Howe’s officers remonstrated, declaring it would be
-downright butchery. A different plan was adopted.
-Instead of advancing in front of the redoubt, it was to
-be taken in flank on the left, where the open space between
-the breastwork and the fortified fence presented a
-weak point. It having been accidentally discovered
-that the ammunition of the Americans was nearly expended,
-preparations were made to carry the works at
-the point of the bayonet; and the soldiery threw off
-their knapsacks, and some even their coats, to be more
-light for action.</p>
-
-<p>General Howe, with the main body, now made a feint
-of attacking the fortified fence; but, while a part of his
-force was thus engaged, the rest brought some of the
-fieldpieces to enfilade the breastwork on the left of the
-redoubt. A raking fire soon drove the Americans out
-of this exposed place into the enclosure. Much damage,
-too, was done in the latter by balls which entered the
-sally-port.</p>
-
-<p>The troops were now led on to assail the works;
-those who flinched were, as before, goaded on by the
-swords of the officers. The Americans again reserved
-their fire until their assailants were close at hand, and
-then made a murderous volley, by which several officers
-were laid low, and General Howe himself was wounded
-in the foot. The British soldiery this time likewise
-reserved their fire and rushed on with fixed bayonet.
-Clinton and Pigot had reached the southern and eastern<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">[89]</span>
-sides of the redoubt, and it was now assailed on three
-sides at once. Prescott ordered those who had no bayonets
-to retire to the back part of the redoubt and fire
-on the enemy as they showed themselves above the parapet.
-The first who mounted exclaimed in triumph,
-“The day is ours!” He was instantly shot down, and
-so were several others who mounted at the same time.
-The Americans, however, had fired their last round,
-their ammunition was exhausted; and now succeeded
-a desperate and deadly struggle, hand to hand, with
-bayonets, stones, and the stocks of their muskets.
-At length, as the British continued to pour in, Prescott
-gave the order to retreat. His men had to cut their
-way through two divisions of the enemy who were
-getting in rear of the redoubt, and they received a destructive
-volley from those who had formed on the captured
-works. By that volley fell the patriot Warren,
-who had distinguished himself throughout the action.
-He was among the last to leave the redoubt, and had
-scarce done so when he was shot through the head
-with a musket-ball, and fell dead on the spot.</p>
-
-<p>While the Americans were thus slowly dislodged
-from the redoubt, Stark, Read, and Knowlton maintained
-their ground at the fortified fence; which, indeed,
-had been nobly defended throughout the action.
-Pomeroy distinguished himself here by his sharp-shooting
-until his musket was shattered by a ball.
-The resistance at this hastily constructed work was
-kept up after the troops in the redoubt had given way,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">[90]</span>
-and until Colonel Prescott had left the hill; thus defeating
-General Howe’s design of cutting off the retreat
-of the main body, which would have produced a scene
-of direful confusion and slaughter. Having effected
-their purpose, the brave associates at the fence abandoned
-their weak outpost, retiring slowly, and disputing
-the ground inch by inch, with a regularity remarkable
-in troops many of whom had never before been in action.</p>
-
-<p>The main retreat was across Bunker’s Hill, where
-Putnam had endeavored to throw up a breastwork.
-The veteran, sword in hand, rode to the rear of the
-retreating troops, regardless of the balls whistling about
-him. His only thought was to rally them at the unfinished
-works. “Halt! make a stand here!” cried he,
-“we can check them yet. In God’s name form and
-give them one shot more.”</p>
-
-<p>Pomeroy, wielding his shattered musket as a truncheon,
-seconded him in his efforts to stay the torrent.
-It was impossible, however, to bring the troops to a
-stand. They continued on down the hill to the Neck,
-and across it to Cambridge, exposed to a raking fire
-from the ships and batteries, and only protected by a
-single piece of ordnance. The British were too exhausted
-to pursue them; they contented themselves
-with taking possession of Bunker’s Hill, were reinforced
-from Boston, and threw up additional works during
-the night.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">[91]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">HER PUNISHMENT<a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">[G]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Elizabeth Gibson</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>How a certain little girl prepared for General Washington the
-“best breakfast he had had in a month.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">LONG, long ago, when my mother was a little girl,
-there lived in her neighborhood an old lady whom
-all the children called “Aunt Prissy.”</p>
-
-<p>She was a quaint, funny little old lady, with her bobbing
-white curls, and always wore a small black lace
-cap, a black silk gown, a soft white kerchief, and fringed
-silk apron.</p>
-
-<p>The children loved to pay a visit to Aunt Prissy.
-After they were all carefully seated, each child with a
-small seed-cake, the eager little faces would turn toward
-her, and one of the children would say, “Now, Aunt
-Prissy, we won’t drop crumbs on the floor, and we are
-sitting up straight, and we haven’t got our knees
-crossed, so won’t you please tell us about the time you
-saw General Washington with your own eyes?”</p>
-
-<p>Aunt Prissy would count the stitches in her knitting,
-look up over her “specs,” and begin, “Well, well,
-children, it does seem to me you ought to know <i>that</i><span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">[92]</span>
-story by heart. But never mind; I s’pose you know
-which you like best.</p>
-
-<p>“Now let me see. It must have been in ’81, and I
-was nine years old, that our folks went to Salisbury to
-see General Washington.</p>
-
-<p>“I had been in disgrace for a whole day, and for punishment
-it was decided that I must stay at home.</p>
-
-<p>“My poor little heart almost broke, and I cried and
-made myself altogether disagreeable while the great
-lunch-baskets were being strapped behind the carriage,
-the huge bunches of roses to hurl at the general wrapped
-in wet cotton, and the family bundled into the carriages.</p>
-
-<p>“After they had gone I wandered disconsolately
-about house and garden. As I was swinging on the gate
-and wondering what I would do next, I heard a great
-clatter of horses’ feet up the road, and in a few minutes
-a party of men in uniform came in sight. I had seen
-enough soldiers to know that these were Continental
-officers, so I was not frightened, but waited until they
-came up.</p>
-
-<p>“A tall man on a white horse, with a cocked hat and
-plain uniform, rode forward, and with the kindest smile
-in the world, asked, ‘My little girl, can you give us a
-cup of coffee?’</p>
-
-<p>“Now I was very proud of being able to make coffee
-and batter-cakes, so I said I would try. The gentlemen
-rode into the yard, their servants came forward to
-take the horses, and I showed the party into the house.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">[93]</span>
-Mammy Dilsie had gone to the quarters on an errand,
-so I had things my own way.</p>
-
-<p>“A fire was blazing in the huge kitchen fireplace.
-We didn’t have cooking-stoves in those days, but did
-our baking in great round iron ovens, with lids to heap
-coals on, and our boiling in pots swung over the coals
-on cranes. I raked out a nice bed of coals, filled the
-big coffee-pot, and soon had it simmering, then put the
-pan for the batter-cakes on to heat, made them up,
-had them nicely browned in a trice, set out a cold ham,
-and then invited the gentlemen in to breakfast.</p>
-
-<p>“They came, laughing and talking, said the coffee
-was the best they had ever tasted, the cakes delicious.
-I poured the coffee, and the gentlemen laughed and
-joked me, and one of them asked how I happened to
-be at home all alone.</p>
-
-<p>“My eyes filled with tears and I could hardly speak,
-but managed to tell him that everybody had gone to
-Salisbury to see General Washington; and that I
-wanted to see him worst of all because in the picture
-of him in my red book one of his eyes was blue and the
-other brown, and I wanted to see if it was really true.
-The officers all laughed at this, but the leader raised
-his hand, and they did not say anything.</p>
-
-<p>“‘But why did you not go, little maid?’ he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Then I hung my head, but at last blurted out, ‘Because
-I tried to bury John’s ten little biddies in the
-sand.’</p>
-
-<p>“The men roared again at this; but the tall one said,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">[94]</span>
-‘Did you not know that it was very wrong to hurt the
-little chicks?’</p>
-
-<p>“I began to cry then, but the kind officer took me on
-his knee and kissed me.</p>
-
-<p>“‘And now, my little maid,’ he said, ‘you may tell
-your mother that you did see General Washington
-and gave him the best breakfast he has had in a month.
-And you see, his eyes are neither brown nor blue, but
-gray.’</p>
-
-<p>“And I looked into his kind face and saw that the
-red book was not even half right. Then Mammy Dilsie
-came in and courtesied to the floor when I told her who
-it was.</p>
-
-<p>“The gentlemen patted me on the head, General
-Washington kissed me again, and they rode away.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">[95]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">FAMOUS WORDS AT GREAT MOMENTS</h2>
-</div>
-
-<h3>PATRICK HENRY</h3>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">TEN years and more before the Declaration of
-Independence there was great excitement in the
-Colonies over the new Stamp Act. Patrick Henry,
-a young member of the General Assembly of Virginia,
-had the temerity to offer a resolution which declared
-that in the General Assembly lay the sole right and
-power to lay taxes upon the Colony. An excited
-debate followed this resolution, in the course of which
-Patrick Henry arose and addressed the assembly.
-His speech closed with the words which have made him
-famous: <i>Cæsar had his Brutus, Charles the First his
-Cromwell, and George the Third</i>—The hall rang with
-cries of <i>Treason! Treason!</i> The patriot orator paused
-for an impressive moment, and then continued calmly;—<i>may
-profit by their example. If this be treason make the
-most of it!</i></p>
-
-<p>(His resolution was carried.)</p>
-
-<p>A decade passed before the actual outbreak of the
-War in New England inspired Patrick Henry to the
-oration which concluded thus: <i>It is in vain, Sir, to
-extenuate the matter. Gentlemen may cry peace, peace—but<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">[96]</span>
-there is no peace. The war has actually begun!
-The next gale that sweeps from the North will bring to our
-ears the clash of resounding arms. Our brethren are
-already in the field! Why stand we here idle? What
-is it that gentlemen wish? What would they have?
-Is life so dear, or peace so sweet, as to be purchased at
-the price of chains or slavery? Forbid it, Almighty God!
-I know not what course others may take; but as for me,
-give me liberty, or give me death!</i></p>
-
-<h3>BATTLE OF LEXINGTON</h3>
-
-<p>Very early on the morning of April 19, 1775,
-Paul Revere, by his famous ride, had warned the men
-of Lexington of the coming of the redcoats. About
-half-past four the patriots’ drum beat to arms and the
-minute-men came hurrying from all directions, to receive
-the instructions of their stalwart Captain, John
-Parker. His orders were: <i>Stand your ground, don’t
-fire unless fired upon, but if they mean to have a war, let
-it begin here.</i> Then came Major Pitcairn’s insolent
-order, <i>Disperse, ye rebels, disperse!</i> Actually, the first
-trigger was pulled by a hot-headed young American.
-His gun, however, failed to go off. A British soldier
-then discharged his piece—and the War began.</p>
-
-<h3>BUNKER HILL</h3>
-
-<p>Dr. Joseph Warren, who was slain at Bunker Hill,
-when urged by Elbridge Gerry not to go into the fight,
-replied quietly, and we know sincerely: <i>Dulce et decorum<span class="pagenum" id="Page_97">[97]</span>
-est pro patria mori</i> (To die for one’s country is
-both agreeable and fitting). He had that very day
-been appointed a Major-General by Congress, but had
-not yet received his Commission. When he presented
-himself before Colonel Prescott, the latter naturally
-tendered him the command. But Warren replied with
-the modesty which so often characterizes the bravest
-of men, <i>I come as a volunteer with my musket to serve
-under you</i>.</p>
-
-<p>When the British General Gage heard of Warren’s
-death he is said to have remarked, <i>It is well; that one
-man was equal to five hundred ordinary soldiers</i>. It
-was probably General Israel Putnam—“Old Put”—commanding
-at the rail fence at Bunker Hill, who gave
-the famous order, <i>Don’t fire until you can see the whites
-of their eyes</i>. This was because the patriots’ powder
-was so pitifully short. Colonel Prescott’s injunction
-was, <i>Don’t waste a grain; make every shot tell</i>.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>Washington was journeying to New England to
-take command of the army when the Battle of Bunker
-Hill was fought. On hearing of it he inquired anxiously,
-<i>Did they stand the fire of the regulars?</i> <i>That
-they did</i>, was the response, and <i>held their own fire in
-reserve until the enemy was within eight rods</i>. <i>Then</i>,
-said Washington, <i>the liberties of the country are safe</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The Bunker Hill Monument, it will be remembered,
-inspired one of Daniel Webster’s greatest orations.
-This is its peroration: <i>When honored and decrepit<span class="pagenum" id="Page_98">[98]</span>
-age shall lean against the base of this monument, and
-troops of vigorous youths shall be gathered around it,
-and when the one shall speak to the other of its objects,
-the purposes of its construction, and the great and glorious
-events with which it was connected—then shall come from
-every youthful breast the ejaculation—Thank God!—I
-also—am an American!</i></p>
-
-<h3>NATHAN HALE</h3>
-
-<p>After Washington’s retreat, following the battle of
-Long Island, he was most anxious to discover the intentions
-of the British in New York. Nathan Hale, a
-young Captain from Connecticut—he had formerly
-been a schoolmaster—volunteered to try and secure
-this information. He was detected, arrested, and summarily
-condemned by the British, however, and as he
-stood under the fatal noose awaiting the ignominious
-death of a spy, the brutal British officer, Cunningham,
-who was in charge of the execution shouted at him,
-<i>Give us your dying speech, you young rebel.</i> And Hale
-replied in a calm, clear voice, <i>I only regret that I have
-but one life to lose for my country</i>.</p>
-
-<h3>WILLIAM PITT</h3>
-
-<p>Young people sometimes forget that the patriots’
-cause had many friends among the wiser statesmen of
-England. William Pitt was brave enough to say: <i>We
-are told that the Americans are obstinate, that they are in
-almost open rebellion against us. I rejoice that America<span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">[99]</span>
-has resisted. I rejoice that they are not so dead to all
-feelings of liberty as to be willing to submit like slaves!</i></p>
-
-<h3>GEORGE WASHINGTON</h3>
-
-<p>The winter at Valley Forge was a time of bitter discouragement
-for Washington and his cause. Tradition
-has preserved a touching picture of the great man
-in his lonely hour of trial.</p>
-
-<p>A Quaker farmer, Isaac Potts, one day returned home
-joyful and confident in the ultimate success of the
-Americans: <i>George Washington will succeed! George
-Washington will succeed!</i> he told his wife. <i>What makes
-thee think so, Isaac?</i> was her reply. <i>I have heard him
-pray, Hannah, alone out in the woods to-day. The
-Generals horse was tied to a sapling in a thicket. He
-himself was on his knees, praying most fervently. The
-Lord will surely hear his prayer. He will, Hannah;
-thee may rest assured, he will.</i></p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>Washington’s soldiers were often exasperated by
-the pettiness and tedious delays of Congress. On one
-occasion a group of them proposed to improve matters
-by making their leader King. His downright reply
-to the man who finally summoned sufficient courage
-to broach the matter to him is too little known: <i>I am at
-a loss to conceive what part of my conduct could have
-given encouragement to an address which seems to me big
-with the greatest mischief that can befall any country....
-Let me conjure you, if you have any regard for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">[100]</span>
-your country, concern for yourself or posterity, or respect
-for me, to banish these thoughts from your mind, and
-never communicate, as from yourself or any one else, a
-sentiment of the like nature!</i></p>
-
-<h3>ETHAN ALLEN</h3>
-
-<p>When Ethan Allen, the Green Mountain Boy, broke
-into Fort Ticonderoga at the head of a handful of
-followers and demanded its surrender, its bewildered
-and still sleepy Commandant began to stutter out a
-very natural inquiry as to the authority in whose name
-Allen acted. History has recorded Allen’s grandiloquent
-reply: <i>In the name of the Great Jehovah and
-the Continental Congress!</i> (But certain old Vermonters
-will have it that his actual words were, <i>Here, come out
-of that, you old rascal and give us the fort, quick, or we’ll
-smoke you out like rats!</i>)</p>
-
-<h3>ANTHONY WAYNE</h3>
-
-<p>Mad Anthony Wayne was wounded in the head by a
-musket-ball during his famous assault on Stony Point.
-He fell to the ground with blood streaming over his
-face, and for a moment supposed himself to be mortally
-wounded. His order to his aids was eminently characteristic,
-<i>Carry me into the fort and let me die at the
-head of the column</i>.</p>
-
-<h3>JOHN STARK</h3>
-
-<p>It was before the Battle of Bennington, fought and
-won in defiance of the orders of the too cautious Congress,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">[101]</span>
-that bold John Stark uttered his famous invocation
-to his men: <i>There they are, boys</i>, he shouted,
-waving his sword toward the enemy; <i>we’ll get ’em, or
-to-night Molly Stark’ll be a widow</i>.</p>
-
-<h3>BENEDICT ARNOLD</h3>
-
-<p>A pitiful story is told of the death in London, twenty
-years after the War, of Benedict Arnold, the traitor.
-His last request was for the old epaulettes and sword-knot
-given him by Washington. <i>Let me die</i>, said he,
-<i>in the old American uniform, in which I fought my battles.
-God forgive me for ever having put on any other!</i></p>
-
-<h3>GEORGE THE THIRD</h3>
-
-<p>It is well to remember, in these days, that George
-Washington was in reality an Englishman who fought
-a German king whom chance had seated on the throne
-of England. And it is well to recall also that George
-the Third, though obstinate and wrong-headed enough,
-gave in at last with a better grace than might have
-been expected. To John Adams, our first minister
-to England, he said: <i>Sir, I will be very free with you. I
-was the last to consent to the separation, but the separation
-having been made ... I have always said and I
-say now, that I would be the first to meet the friendship
-of the United States as an independent power.</i></p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">[102]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THE LITTLE FIFER<a id="FNanchor_8" href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">[H]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Helen M. Winslow</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>John Holden was lost. His mother’s faith that God would take care
-of her boy was rewarded, however, when it was discovered that
-John with his little fife was helping to drill the soldiers in
-Washington’s army.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">MORE than a hundred years ago there lived, in the
-town of Shirley, Mass., a bright, well-grown lad
-named John Holden. His father was a farmer, and the
-little fellow trudged about the farm, clad in home-spun
-and home-made clothing, feeding calves, driving cows,
-and doing whatever his hands found to do “with all his
-might.”</p>
-
-<p>One Saturday night John was early at the gate waiting
-for his father’s homecoming; for Saturday was the
-day when John Holden went to the village, and returned
-laden with packages and news from Boston—which to
-them was the centre of the world. A present was an
-unheard-of thing in little John’s life. What was his
-surprise, then, as his father rode up to the gate, to see
-him hand out a long black case, saying:</p>
-
-<p>“Here, my boy, see what I’ve brought you for a
-birthday present.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">[103]</span>And imagine his greater astonishment, on opening
-the case, to see a beautiful fife of dark wood with silver
-trimmings!</p>
-
-<p>The boy could hardly believe his own eyes; and as he
-was passionately fond of music he lost no time in beginning
-to learn the use of his newly acquired instrument.
-He carried the fife with him everywhere and
-practised on it in every spare moment, and before many
-months he was able to greatly astonish the villagers
-and won many a compliment by his skillful playing.</p>
-
-<p>Just before the Revolutionary War the whole country,
-as every boy and girl ought to know, was in a
-state of ferment and dread. War seemed inevitable,
-and the oppressive rule of the English was the theme of
-conversation everywhere.</p>
-
-<p>Little John heard much of it, and longed to be a man
-that he might join the “rebellious colonists.” And one
-day he received a compliment which set him thinking
-of matters in a way the older members of his family
-never mistrusted.</p>
-
-<p>A visitor from Boston was at the farmhouse, and the
-talk, as usual, ran on the prospect of war in the colonies.
-During a pause in the conversation, Mr. Holden asked
-John to play something on the fife. When he had
-played a stirring march or two, the stranger exclaimed,
-“Upon my word! But the boy has the soul of music in
-him! He will be ready for the British bulls and lions
-when it is necessary.”</p>
-
-<p>John sat quite still for some time. But before he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">[104]</span>
-went to bed he went to his father and said, “Father, if
-the British do come, shall I go to war with my fife?”</p>
-
-<p>“To be sure,” answered his father laughingly. “They
-could not get along without you.”</p>
-
-<p>Long after his father had forgotten this incident,
-John Holden took his dog Zip, and his darling fife,
-and went to a favorite hill on the place to practise.
-At night the dog came back alone and going straight
-up to the boy’s chamber began to moan and cry, and
-would not leave John’s bed.</p>
-
-<p>The family were greatly alarmed, and instantly divined
-that something had happened to John.</p>
-
-<p>Soon the whole town was in commotion; for the news
-that John Holden was lost flew like wildfire. Bands of
-men were organized and went searching the woods in
-every direction.</p>
-
-<p>Indians had been traveling through the town recently.
-Had they carried off the boy or had they
-stolen the valuable fife and thrown the boy into the
-river? The woods were hunted through and through;
-the river was dragged; notices of the lost boy were sent
-in every direction; but weeks lengthened into months
-and no clew was obtained that threw the faintest glimmer
-of light on the strange disappearance.</p>
-
-<p>Everybody believed him to be dead, or with the cruel
-Indians. Everybody but one. The boy’s mother
-never lost faith in his being safe somewhere.</p>
-
-<p>“My boy is in God’s hands,” she would say. “In
-his good time John will come home.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">[105]</span>And nothing could move her from this belief while
-two anxious years slipped by.</p>
-
-<p>In the meantime war had broken out, and Shirley
-had sent her full quota of men to fight for the country’s
-independence. It was through one of these that a
-rumor reached Mr. Holden that a boy of twelve was in
-General Washington’s army as fifer.</p>
-
-<p>Jonas Holden was impressed with the certainty that
-the boy in Washington’s army and his lost son were the
-same. He went home and told his wife the story, and
-she was certain of it. Accordingly Mr. Holden started
-for New York, where General Washington and his army
-were then stationed. There were no railroads or telegraphs
-then, remember; nothing but horses and stagecoaches.
-Mr. Holden chose the former, and the best
-he could do, by traveling on horseback, was to reach
-General Washington’s headquarters in seven days.</p>
-
-<p>When he finally drew rein at the outposts of the
-Continental Army, he made known his desire to see
-General Knox, who was with Washington at that time.</p>
-
-<p>General Knox received the Massachusetts farmer
-with a cordiality that put him at his ease in a moment;
-and Mr. Holden found no difficulty in stating his
-errand.</p>
-
-<p>“There is your boy, sir!” exclaimed the interested
-General, pointing to a young fellow in a soldier’s suit,
-gay with brass buttons, who was playing on a fife.
-“He is drilling some raw recruits. That boy is Captain-general
-of us all, sir. I have never known him to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">[106]</span>
-whimper or say ‘I can’t,’ although he is the youngest
-of us.”</p>
-
-<p>The fifer was sent for in the Colonel’s name. As he
-drew near, and lifting his cap, asked, “Did you send
-for me, sir?” his eye fell on his father sitting in a
-corner of the tent.</p>
-
-<p>In a moment the boy was in his father’s arms and
-sobbing like a baby. The father’s tears were mingled
-with the long-lost son’s and the redoubtable General
-was obliged to resort to his handkerchief as he withdrew,
-leaving father and son alone, with the remark:</p>
-
-<p>“I will see our Commander-in-chief.”</p>
-
-<p>“When did you come?” said John, when he could
-speak. “And how did you find me?”</p>
-
-<p>“Old Captain brought me,” was the reply, “and he
-can take us both home.”</p>
-
-<p>“And how is mother?” pursued the boy. “Oh! I
-have been so sorry for dear mother. I tell you, father,
-not a night have I camped down to sleep but I have
-thought of mother; and every time I thought of her
-the tears came. I thought perhaps she might die and
-I should never see her again.”</p>
-
-<p>“Your mother is well,” was the father’s answer.
-“And she has never for one moment lost faith in your
-being well and happy, and finally restored to us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, I shall return, father,” said John. “But I
-want this war ended first.”</p>
-
-<p>After the boy had inquired for all the family, he said:</p>
-
-<p>“But why didn’t you bring Zip along, too?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">[107]</span>“Poor Zip!” was the reply. “He mourned himself
-to death before you had been gone a week. He never
-touched another mouthful of food, and would only lie
-on your bed and moan.”</p>
-
-<p>General Knox soon returned with orders from the Commander-in-chief
-to conduct Mr. Holden and John to his
-headquarters—a summons that must be obeyed at once.</p>
-
-<p>General Washington received Mr. Holden very kindly
-and said smilingly:</p>
-
-<p>“I hear a story that sounds like a romance in the
-midst of war. Tell me, my little fifer, how you came
-to leave your parents without their knowledge, and to
-join my army at such a tender age?”</p>
-
-<p>John was somewhat abashed by this direct question
-from so dignified and august a personage; but the
-General added kindly:</p>
-
-<p>“You have the name of being one of my bravest boys.
-Tell me how it happened. You never ran away, did you?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir, never,” answered John with spirit. “I
-was playing with my dog Zip, on Sorrel Hill, when a
-big wagon, full of men, came along. They stopped
-when they saw me, and one of them called out, ‘Halloo,
-my little fifer! We are looking for you. Jump in.’
-I asked them if the British bulls and lions were here,
-and they said ‘Yes, hurry up!’ I jumped in, sir, and
-that was the way it happened.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Holden then remembered, for the first time, what
-he had said long ago, when John asked him if he would
-be needed when the British bulls and lions appeared.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">[108]</span>John’s story was met by a burst of laughter quite
-unusual with Washington. Then patting the boy’s
-rosy cheeks, the General said, “After this you must
-give us some music, my lad.”</p>
-
-<p>And John, quite elated, rendered a stirring march.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t see how we can part with this brave boy
-of yours,” said General Washington to Mr. Holden
-when the boy had finished playing; “but parents have
-the first claim.”</p>
-
-<p>John was just then ordered to go and dismiss the
-men he had been drilling, and he departed with a martial
-salute to his superiors, and “I will be back in five
-minutes,” to his father.</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Holden, left alone, told the story of the mother’s
-deep faith, and added, “John seems to be in his element
-here.”</p>
-
-<p>Then General Washington told the gratified parent
-an incident, showing the spirit of the lad.</p>
-
-<p>“When I, with a number of my suite, approached the
-vicinity of Monmouth Court House,” said he, “I was
-met by a little musician, who archly cried out, ‘They
-are all coming this way, your Honor!’”</p>
-
-<p>“‘Who are coming this way?’” said I.</p>
-
-<p>“‘Why, our boys, your Honor! Our boys! and the
-British are right after them!’”</p>
-
-<p>“‘Impossible!’ I cried; but spurring my horse, I
-found the boy’s words only too true.”</p>
-
-<p>“He is a good boy,” added General Knox, “and invaluable
-in training raw recruits. If they are homesick<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">[109]</span>
-he talks kindly with them and cheers them wonderfully
-with his ardent patriotism.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy just then returned and General Knox added,
-“Well, what did your men say when you told them you
-were going home?”</p>
-
-<p>John blushed and answered, “I could not tell them
-that, your Honor. Father, let me stay another year.
-Then I shall be thirteen and able to help you more
-on the farm. You know mother is well, and the war
-will soon be over.”</p>
-
-<p>What father in Revolutionary times could resist
-such an appeal?</p>
-
-<p>Washington smiled, and Mr. Holden consented.
-And after a kind farewell from the Father of his Country,
-and a loving one from the young fifer, Jonas Holden
-rode away, saying to himself:</p>
-
-<p>“My boy could not hold a more honored position.
-I leave him safe in the hands of General Washington—and
-of God.”</p>
-
-<p>When, after seven more days of horseback riding,
-Jonas Golden arrived at his own door in Shirley, he
-was met by his maiden sister with the words:</p>
-
-<p>“Disappointed again! So it wasn’t our John at all?
-I tell you, you’ll never see that boy again.”</p>
-
-<p>But Mr. Holden held out his hand to the boy’s
-mother.</p>
-
-<p>“My dear,” he said, “John is the happiest boy in
-the Continental Army.”</p>
-
-<p>It took a long time to tell the story of the journey;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">[110]</span>
-of his reception at Washington’s headquarters; of his
-finding the boy; of his growth, improvement, and popularity;
-of his close adherence to the principles of right
-and truth which they had taught him; and of the great
-Commander’s praise of their son. But at last the
-father said:</p>
-
-<p>“Have I done right in leaving him there?”</p>
-
-<p>“Just right,” said the mother.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>John Holden returned to his parents when the war
-was over and lived to a good old age. And his name
-may be seen, for the searching, even now, on the books
-at Washington, as a pensioner of 1776.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">[111]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">ETHAN ALLEN AND THE GREEN MOUNTAIN
-BOYS<a id="FNanchor_9" href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">[I]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Washington Irving</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>The story of the capture of Fort Ticonderoga by the Robin Hood
-of the New Hampshire Grants.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">AS affairs were now drawing to a crisis, and war
-was considered inevitable, some bold spirits in
-Connecticut conceived a project for the outset. This
-was the surprisal of the old forts of Ticonderoga and
-Crown Point, already famous in the French war.
-Their situation on Lake Champlain gave them the
-command of the main route to Canada; so that the
-possession of them would be all-important in case of
-hostilities. They were feebly garrisoned and negligently
-guarded, and abundantly furnished with, artillery
-and military stores so much needed by the patriot
-army.</p>
-
-<p>This scheme was set on foot in the purlieus, as it
-were, of the provincial Legislature of Connecticut,
-then in session. It was not openly sanctioned by that
-body, but secretly favored, and money lent from the
-treasury to those engaged in it. A committee was appointed,
-also, to accompany them to the frontier, aid<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">[112]</span>
-them in raising troops, and exercise over them a degree
-of superintendence and control.</p>
-
-<p>Sixteen men were thus enlisted in Connecticut, a
-greater number in Massachusetts, but the greatest
-accession of force was from what was called the “New
-Hampshire Grants.” This was a region having the
-Connecticut River on one side and Lake Champlain
-and the Hudson River on the other—being, in fact, the
-country forming the present State of Vermont. It had
-long been a disputed territory claimed by New York
-and New Hampshire. George II had decided in favor
-of New York; but the Governor of New Hampshire had
-made grants of between one and two hundred townships
-in it, whence it had acquired the name of the
-New Hampshire Grants. The settlers on those grants
-resisted the attempts of New York to eject them, and
-formed themselves into an association called “The
-Green Mountain Boys.” Resolute, strong-handed
-fellows they were, with Ethan Allen at their head, a
-native of Connecticut, but brought up among the
-Green Mountains. He and his lieutenants, Seth Warner
-and Remember Baker, were outlawed by the Legislature
-of New York, and rewards offered for their apprehension.
-They and their associates armed themselves,
-set New York at defiance, and swore they would
-be the death of any one who should attempt their
-arrest.</p>
-
-<p>Thus Ethan Allen was becoming a kind of Robin Hood
-among the mountains, when the present crisis changed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">[113]</span>
-the relative position of things as if by magic. Boundary
-feuds were forgotten amid the great questions of
-colonial rights. Ethan Allen at once stepped forward,
-a patriot, and volunteered with his Green Mountain
-Boys to serve in the popular cause. He was well
-fitted for the enterprise in question, by his experience
-as a frontier champion, his robustness of mind and body,
-and his fearless spirit. He had a kind of rough eloquence,
-also, that was very effective with his followers.
-“His style,” says one, who knew him personally, “was
-a singular compound of local barbarisms, Scriptural
-phrases, and oriental wildness; and though unclassic,
-and sometimes ungrammatical, was highly animated
-and forcible.” Washington, in one of his letters, says
-there was “an original something in him which commanded
-admiration.”</p>
-
-<p>Thus reinforced, the party, now two hundred and
-seventy strong, pushed forward to Castleton, a place
-within a few miles of the head of Lake Champlain.
-Here a council of war was held on the 2d of May.
-Ethan Allen was placed at the head of the expedition,
-with James Easton and Seth Warner as second and third
-in command. Detachments were sent off to Skenesborough
-(now Whitehall), and another place on the
-lake, with orders to seize all the boats they could find
-and bring them to Shoreham, opposite Ticonderoga,
-whither Allen prepared to proceed with the main body.</p>
-
-<p>At this juncture another adventurous spirit arrived
-at Castleton. This was Benedict Arnold, since so<span class="pagenum" id="Page_114">[114]</span>
-sadly renowned. He, too, had conceived the project
-of surprising Ticonderoga and Crown Point; or, perhaps,
-had caught the idea from its first agitators in
-Connecticut—in the militia of which province he held
-a captain’s commission. He had proposed the scheme
-to the Massachusetts committee of safety. It had
-met their approbation. They had given him a colonel’s
-commission, authorized him to raise a force in western
-Massachusetts not exceeding four hundred men, and
-furnished him with money and means. Arnold had
-enlisted but a few officers and men when he heard
-of the expedition from Connecticut being on the march.
-He instantly hurried on with one attendant to overtake
-it, leaving his few recruits to follow as best they could;
-in this way he reached Castleton just after the council
-of war.</p>
-
-<p>Producing the colonel’s commission received from
-the Massachusetts committee of safety, he now aspired
-to the supreme command. His claims were disregarded
-by the Green Mountain Boys; they would follow
-no leader but Ethan Allen. As they formed the majority
-of the party, Arnold was fain to acquiesce, and
-serve as a volunteer, with the rank, but not the command,
-of colonel.</p>
-
-<p>The party arrived at Shoreham, opposite Ticonderoga,
-on the night of the 9th of May. The detachment
-sent in quest of boats had failed to arrive. There
-were a few boats at hand, with which the transportation
-was commenced. It was slow work; the night wore<span class="pagenum" id="Page_115">[115]</span>
-away; day was about to break, and but eighty-three
-men, with Allen and Arnold, had crossed. Should
-they wait for the residue, day would dawn, the garrison
-wake, and their enterprise might fail. Allen drew up
-his men, addressed them in his own emphatic style, and
-announced his intention to make a dash at the fort
-without waiting for more force. “It is a desperate attempt,”
-said he, “and I ask no man to go against his
-will. I will take the lead, and be the first to advance.
-You that are willing to follow, poise your firelocks.”
-Not a firelock but was poised.</p>
-
-<p>They mounted the hill briskly but in silence, guided
-by a boy from the neighborhood. The day dawned as
-Allen arrived at a sally-port. A sentry pulled trigger
-on him, but his piece missed fire. He retreated through
-a covered way. Allen and his men followed. Another
-sentry thrust at Easton with his bayonet, but was struck
-down by Allen and begged for quarter. It was granted
-on condition of his leading the way instantly to the
-quarters of the commandant, Captain Delaplace, who
-was yet in bed. Being arrived there, Allen thundered
-at the door, and demanded a surrender of the fort.
-By this time his followers had formed into two lines on
-the parade-ground, and given three hearty cheers. The
-commandant appeared at his door half dressed, “the
-frightened face of his pretty wife peering over his shoulder.”
-He gazed at Allen in bewildered astonishment.
-“By whose authority do you act?” exclaimed he. “In
-the name of the great Jehovah and the Continental<span class="pagenum" id="Page_116">[116]</span>
-Congress,” replied Allen, with a flourish of his sword,
-and an oath which we do not care to subjoin.</p>
-
-<p>There was no disputing the point. The garrison,
-like the commander, had been startled from sleep, and
-made prisoners as they rushed forth in their confusion.
-A surrender accordingly took place.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">[117]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THE CAPTURE OF THE HENNEPIN GUN<a id="FNanchor_10" href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">[J]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Margaret Emma Ditto</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>The Fourth of July pranks of a young Ethan Allen and his friends—descendants
-of the Green Mountain Boys of Revolutionary days.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">ON THE evening of the third of July, somewhat
-more than fifty years ago, a number of boys were
-gathered in secret council at a deserted house on Otter
-Creek. The boys had come one by one in the gathering
-gloom of the early darkness, creeping along from bush
-to copse or hugging the shady side of the stone fences.
-They had come silently—no lilt of merry whistle or
-song, no wanton hoot or random stone-fling, had betrayed
-their presence on the road.</p>
-
-<p>“There are nine of us already,” whispered a tall
-boy of fifteen as he shoved aside the hingeless door and
-peered out. “That is Seneca Goodyear coming across
-the meadow. He is strong if he does limp. Come in,
-Senk, and shut the door quick, hang your coat over the
-crack, and I’ll stand against the lower part. Now,
-Martin, let out your lantern—just a narrow slit of
-light and throw it on the floor—not in our faces. Go
-on, Ethan, and tell them about it.”</p>
-
-<p>A heavy-shouldered boy with Saxon hair and eyes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">[118]</span>
-straightened himself up from the cobwebby wall against
-which he had been leaning and settled himself stolidly on
-his feet. This boy’s name was Ethan Allen and he was a
-descendant of the Revolutionary hero of the same name.</p>
-
-<p>“There isn’t much to tell,” he began. “The Ogden
-County boys have stolen our cannon—old ‘Ticonderoga’
-that belongs to Hennepin County, that we have fired
-off every Fourth of July, or our folks have, ever since
-there was a Fourth of July. It has been stolen and
-carried across the county line, and in less than four
-hours they will be banging it in our faces from the top
-of Horncliffe. And we’ve got to get that gun between
-this and midnight.”</p>
-
-<p>“How are we going to do it?” asked Seneca Goodyear.</p>
-
-<p>“That is what we have got to find out,” said Ethan.</p>
-
-<p>“Why don’t the men do something about it?” asked
-a conservative boy. “I should think it ought to be
-settled by law; the gun was given to the county by
-Eth’s grandfather, and it is county property the same
-as everything else on the court-house grounds.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it is county property,” said Seneca Goodyear.
-“And that is where the point lies. I’ve heard father
-talk about it. It is some kind of claim they set up on
-account of the new boundary line that has sliced off
-miles and miles of our county, and now they have got
-the ground they want everything that ever stood on
-the ground—their proportion of county property they
-call it, and they have begun by helping themselves to
-that gun. But there’s no right in their claim.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">[119]</span>“Of course there’s not!” said one indignantly.</p>
-
-<p>“Ogden County is the meanest lot that live on top
-of the State of Vermont anyway!” said another.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, the Ogden boys were smart enough to steal
-that gun,” said Ethan Allen, “and if Hennepin boys
-are any smarter we’d better show our stuff by getting it
-away from them.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t take it to be any question of smartness,”
-answered the conservative boy. “It is quite as smart
-to keep out of a hornet’s nest as it is to get into it, and
-then fight out stung half to death. The question is,
-what are our chances for doing it? I’m not going on a
-fool’s errand. To begin with, who took the gun?
-Where did they take it to? Where is it now? And
-how do you know anything about it, anyway?”</p>
-
-<p>“We have got all that straight enough, and here is
-the boy that will speak for himself. Come up here,
-Eph,” said Allen.</p>
-
-<p>Thus conjured, a boy arose from a dark corner and
-with a quick cat-like motion came to the front. He
-looked to be an artless little fellow of ten years, with
-his quiet eyes and his limp white locks hanging about
-his small face. But in truth he was fourteen years old,
-and the discipline of his life had made him shrewd and
-courageous. He showed very thin and imp-like as the
-ray of the lantern fell upon him. It seemed as if that
-sliver of light would go through him like a bayonet and
-come out on the other side.</p>
-
-<p>There was a murmur of voices. “Oh, him!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">[120]</span>“Eph Stearns—much he knows about it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Dodge down, you little white top, nobody wants
-to hear you!”</p>
-
-<p>But burly Ethan Allen shouldered up to the little
-fellow. “Go ahead, Eph,” he said, “tell it to ’em just
-as you told it to me. Don’t be scared.”</p>
-
-<p>“I wa’n’t scared last night, and I ain’t likely to be
-now,” said Eph with a grin up at Ethan’s broad face.</p>
-
-<p>“That’s so. Shake hands. After all there is nothing
-little about you, Eph—except yourself.”</p>
-
-<p>The little fellow looked bigger after this grip of good
-fellowship and he piped up and began his story.</p>
-
-<p>“I was out last night,” he said. “It was near midnight
-I reckon. Most all the lights was out in the
-village and everything was quiet. I was out—out
-looking for something——”</p>
-
-<p>“He was out looking for his drunken old father,”
-whispered one of the boys, nudging his neighbor.
-“That’s Eph’s regular beat nights. He is afraid the
-old man will get run over, or get sunstruck by moonlight.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hush up, you,” said the boy addressed. “Eph
-isn’t to blame.”</p>
-
-<p>“I had been down by the cross-roads,” Eph went on.
-“You know where that is.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think it’s likely we do—there is where General
-Stark buried a traitor and staked him down with a
-crowbar,” said one.</p>
-
-<p>“For some time I didn’t hear anything,” Eph went on.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">[121]</span>
-“Then I heard something coming along slow and still
-on the old turnpike. It didn’t seem like a wagon at
-first, nothing about it rattled and squeaked natural-like
-for a wagon. There must have been lots of axle
-grease onto them wheels and that harness was oiled up
-and strapped up, I tell you, and if them horses had a
-had smart-weed drafts onto their hoofs they couldn’t
-have set ’em down more soft and quiet-like. When I
-saw that it was a wagon and that there wa’n’t no signs
-of a driver to it—for whatever was driving of it was
-flat on the bottom—then it came over me that they
-was a-bringing home somebody dead in that wagon——”</p>
-
-<p>“And the Remains was driving itself home, quiet
-and respectable-like, and conducting its own funeral—that’s
-accommodating now—I like that, go on,” interrupted
-Martin.</p>
-
-<p>“Of course,” Eph admitted, looking a little “sheepish.”
-“Of course there wa’n’t no sense in that—not by
-daylight. But that’s what I thought of then, and I
-was hot and cold all to onct, I tell you, and I streaked
-after that wagon, for I meant to get home to mother
-ahead of it. I got up to the court house and lay
-down flat in that clump of pines by the horse block,
-’cause all the roads branch off from there and I could
-see which way it went next. There wa’n’t no moon
-last night, and precious few stars.</p>
-
-<p>“On come the wagon, slow and steady—just as if a
-chunk of the dark had got loose from the rest of the
-dark and was moving on by itself. It come close to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">[122]</span>
-horse block and I could see it wa’n’t going down any of
-the roads. Then I heard a clattering sound, and I knew
-they were going over the round stones of the gutter, and
-the off horse struck out a spark with his hoof. When
-I saw ’em a-following me up so close I thought certain
-it was me they was after. But I had a good place for
-dodging—out by the meeting-house sheds, or down the
-court-house steps into the cellar, or round the wood
-pile—good places all of them, and I thought I would
-chance it. But there wa’n’t no call for dodging. The
-wagon just rolled quietly on a few steps and then stood
-stockstill and six black shadows rose up one by one and
-got out on to the ground, and when I saw that, why I
-could have squealed right out a-laughing.</p>
-
-<p>“I meant to see what they were after, so I dragged
-myself along like a worm in the shadow of that bad-smelling
-green stuff that edges the driveway, and I
-found out they were boys from over the line and they
-had come for our gun. Phil Basset was bossing around—same
-as he tried to when he came to the academy
-before Ethan settled him. He was wheezing away
-like the croup, talking in big whispers full of wind,
-telling everybody else to keep still, and where to put
-the crowbars and how to lift all together when he give
-the word, one, two, three! But just as he got to ‘three,’
-there was a pin pointing toward the calf of his leg, and
-I braced myself against that pin and it naturally sent
-me off down the knoll, quiet-like and out of the way, and
-it left him hollering and kicking. Then everybody<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">[123]</span>
-dropped flat till they see whether any one in the village
-heard the noise. When they went to work again Phil
-said he’d been taken with cramp and couldn’t lift.
-But they got the gun onto the wagon and started for
-home. Phil drove ’cause his leg was lame and they
-was his father’s horses. The other five boys had gone
-on ahead.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, when I saw that gun moving off, and I thought
-how that was ours for sure, and we’d got it from the
-English and how we’d got ourselves from the English—Fourth
-of July and all, so that they couldn’t ever
-boss us again, and so that everybody was his own boss
-in this country—why something rose up in my throat
-and choked me. Then I thought about Eth, ’cause
-he’d had charge of the gun, and he’d been awful good
-and let me help clean her up, and how we’d dug the
-rust out of her and greased her and polished her, and
-he’d showed me the powder and things for to-morrow
-and said I might touch her off the first bang—then I
-nearly busted, only I saw that it wasn’t any time for
-busting. I just got myself together pretty quick and
-jumped for the tailboard of that wagon. I hung on—I
-thought I’d stick to that gun, and if I died a sticking
-there, well then I’d die.</p>
-
-<p>“The boys had told Phil to take the new road to
-Tadman’s Ferry, ’cause the hills were so steep on the
-old one, and the fellows were to go cross-lots and meet
-him on the other side, and then they were going to set
-the gun up as high as they could get it on Horncliffe.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">[124]</span>
-But Phil said he reckoned he knew what the horses
-could haul, and as soon as he was left to himself he
-struck off onto the old road. He was up high on the
-seat and I’d crawled in and was laying on the bottom,
-flatter than flat—froze on to the gun. We buzzed
-along lively at first. The down-hills were rather shaky
-work you guess, but the up-hills were worse, and they
-kept getting more so till we got to that awful steep
-pitch near the top of Smith’s hill. You know where
-that is?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes,” said Martin. “There is where you have
-to lean backward to keep from bumping your forehead
-when you go up. I suppose you rose to the occasion,
-Eph—it must have stood you and the gun right up on
-end.”</p>
-
-<p>“I got out,” Eph went on, “for the horses stood
-stockstill and couldn’t go an inch farther and then
-the wagon began to slip back, and Phil put stones back
-of the wheels. Then he went at his horses again,
-whipping and coaxing them. But it was no use.
-The road is slaty along there and the horses had
-no grip for their feet. He had to give it up at last and
-he left everything standing and went for the boys to
-get them to boost. As soon as I knew I was alone I
-hid the crowbars in a hollow tree, and I cut the traces
-and let the horses loose, and I took the linchpin out of
-one of the wheels—it wasn’t in very tight, and I took
-the ramrod of the gun, and I wrapped them traces
-around it and I dropped ’em into the brook at the foot<span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">[125]</span>
-of the hill. Then I put for home, and I waked up
-Ethan Allen and went to bed myself.”</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon you were in bed all the time, and saw all
-this with your eyes shut in the dark,” said a derisive
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Sure you didn’t dream it, Eph?” asked Seneca
-kindly.</p>
-
-<p>“It is a good yarn, anyway,” said Martin who had a
-taste for fancy sketches. “And it hangs together as
-well as most. I believe it is as true as any of us could
-make up unless we had facts or some little conveniences
-of that kind to go upon.”</p>
-
-<p>The little boy straightened up and leveled a look of
-indignant protest at the scoffers. Then, turning to
-Ethan Allen, he said, “You go on—you know about the
-rest of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“No chaffing about this not being true,” said Ethan,
-“we haven’t the time for it. Eph wakened me up at
-two o’clock this morning with a handful of gravel on
-my window, and I was over at Smith’s hill before daylight,
-and I found the crowbars rammed up a hollow
-tree just as he told me, and the gun is there by the roadside,
-tipped over in a kind of gully, and there is some
-gravel on top of it, and a pile of dry brushwood, so
-that any one driving along the road would not notice
-it, and I fished the ramrod and old Basset’s traces out
-of the brook. I reckon the Ogden boys are coming
-over for the gun to-night, and we want to get in ahead
-of them. I can go, for one. Who else?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">[126]</span>“Me, too,” piped in little Eph.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, of course,” said Ethan.</p>
-
-<p>“Me, three—that makes six,” said Martin.</p>
-
-<p>“I will go,” said Seneca Goodyear in his slow, heavy
-way, “and I reckon that father will let me have a team—our
-horses won’t have to work to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will your father make you tell what you are going
-to do with it?” asked the conservative boy.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, no—not if I had rather not,” said Seneca.
-“He’ll trust me—and that is the tightest tether I
-want to be fastened with. Sometimes I wish he didn’t.
-I wouldn’t like to get home minus the traces and linchpin
-and crowbars as Phil Basset did.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, if Seneca goes, that takes me,” said Mark
-Hemingway, the tall doorkeeper. “My folks said I
-might stay all night with Seneca and I shall stick like
-a tick.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll go, and I, and I,” chorused the rest—conservative
-boy and all.</p>
-
-<p>Then Seneca Goodyear moved that Ethan Allan be
-captain of the expedition. This was carried by acclaim.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Ethan in terse acceptance of the
-appointment. “Now we’ve got to be quicker than
-lightning and darker than thunder. We don’t want the
-Ogden boys to get there ahead of us, and have to fight
-them. No more we don’t want our folks stopping us
-nor helping us out as if we were babies. We want the
-glory of this ourselves. Quick and quiet is the word.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">[127]</span>
-All scatter and get ready and we’ll meet at the cross-roads
-and start when the town clock strikes nine.”</p>
-
-<p>The company at the cross-roads organized as follows:</p>
-
-<p>Ethan Allen, captain.</p>
-
-<p>Eph Stearns, with the court-house mule, mounted
-scout.</p>
-
-<p>Martin Fox, with a dark lantern, spy and light skirmisher.</p>
-
-<p>Mark Hemingway, with an old triggerless flintlock
-of 1812, high private.</p>
-
-<p>The rank and file consisted of two boys with pistols
-and no cartridges, and three boys with doughnuts and
-sweet apples, while the conservative boy with a pocket-compass,
-a lead pencil, some string, and a chunk of shoemaker’s
-wax, put in a bid as topographer, correspondent,
-and surgeon. But Seneca Goodyear, with his stout
-team and wagon, well equipped with ropes, crowbars,
-skids, and other lifting apparatus, was the mainstay of
-the expedition.</p>
-
-<p>Little Eph Stearns was, for the nonce, a glorified
-being. Hitherto the heroisms of his life had been of the
-obscure and pathetic kind. Angels had inspired them,
-and a cloud of witnesses beheld them, but here the
-chance had come for a heroism brilliant and jubilant.
-Ethan Allen told him to go ahead and the big boys
-would see him do it. No wonder that he wrought marvels.
-Besides lassoing the mule, he had got a bag of
-shavings larger than himself, and a stout clothes line;
-the last two were for some secret service of his own suggestion,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">[128]</span>
-though approved by the captain. But the mule
-seemed to be a purely ornamental feature of the occasion.
-He had been half-shoved, half-carried to the place
-of rendezvous; here he seemed unwilling to go any
-farther. He was hitched ignominiously to the tailboard
-of the wagon, and being pulled in front, and
-poked in the rear by his doughty rider who walked behind
-for this purpose, he moved off in spite of himself.</p>
-
-<p>Away into the darkness of that quiet summer night
-the expedition passed on. The sleepy lights twinkled
-in the distant farmhouses, the dewy winds came over
-the meadows and grain fields, and the stars looked down
-from their solemn depths. The boys were rather quiet,
-for boys. The secrecy of the affair, the chances for a
-fight which might prove dangerous, the honorable and
-important character of the undertaking all conspired to
-give a sombre coloring to the occasion. These were
-veritable Green Mountain Boys, too, with the legends
-of heroic ancestry all aglow in their young hearts and
-the strength of their own hills in their sturdy purpose.</p>
-
-<p>After a half-hour’s ride the boys reached the place and
-found everything all quiet. The gun was in bad shape,
-dislodged from the carriage and pitched into the gully.
-Nobody knew how to go at it and the darkness of the
-night added confusion to the situation. Now the
-Secret Service blazoned itself splendidly forth. Eph
-emptied his shavings on the ground in two piles, one or
-each side of the gun; upon these he heaped the brushwood
-and in less than two minutes he had two grand<span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">[129]</span>
-bonfires for the boys to work by. Then the little scout,
-with mule and clothes line, disappeared over the brow
-of the hill. A few rods below this point of vantage he
-stretched the clothes line across the road; it was about
-a foot from the ground and fastened on either side to
-the trunk of a tree. He then reported to his chief and
-received reinforcements: one boy and munitions of war—an
-empty bag, in which he gathered stones.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile at the gun the skids had been well adjusted
-by the firelight, and the lifting went sturdily on.
-Upon the height of the hill Eph awaited the onslaught
-of the enemy. The deploying force made a brave line
-of battle: Eph on the right flank with a pile of stones,
-his aide on the left, and the mule in the centre. They
-had not long to wait. A heavy team was heard laboring
-up. Moving shadows soon were seen in advance of it.</p>
-
-<p>“Now don’t waste your stones,” Eph orders his command.
-“Don’t fire one of them till you see them Ogdens
-keel over the rope and hear them holler. Then
-pelt away like Jehu, and whoop like an Indian, and
-they’ll think it’s the regular army.”</p>
-
-<p>The enemy came on <i>en masse</i>, they tripped over the
-rope so beautifully that Eph Stearns, boy and man,
-has laughed at the thought of it ever since, they fell
-kicking and struggling and tangled up as to legs and
-arms. Rattle and whiz came the stones in showers
-upon them, and, to crown all, the mule cavorted right
-down into the thickest of the scrimmage as if he had
-been Job’s war-horse smelling the battle afar.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">[130]</span>It was full ten minutes before the Ogden boys got
-themselves together again, and during that ten minutes
-the last long pull and strong pull had been given to the
-cannon and the iron giant was rolling comfortably
-homeward in Seneca’s wagon.</p>
-
-<p>Then the boys hot, exultant, shouting, made a wild
-break for the enemy as they came pelting over the
-brow of the hill.</p>
-
-<p>“Sneaks!” calls one, with a stone.</p>
-
-<p>“Thieves!” yells another.</p>
-
-<p>“At ’em—fight ’em!” shouts another, brandishing
-a big stick.</p>
-
-<p>“Let’s lay ’em out! thrash ’em!”</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on! Halt!” cries Captain Ethan with the
-voice of a trumpet and he springs to the front of his
-little troop and faces them, his arms aloft with a kind of
-impassioned dominance of voice and mien that hustles
-back the pell-mell advance.</p>
-
-<p>“Halt! Form in line!” he calls, and the wild crowd
-sway into a kind of half-circle about their captain.</p>
-
-<p>“Three cheers for Hennepin County and the Gun!”
-orders the captain.</p>
-
-<p>Shout, shout, shout. Oh, how they shouted! That
-wild hurrah rifted the clouds and shook the mountains.
-Then as the echoes died away, in the sharp interval
-of silence that followed, Captain Ethan faced around
-to the enemy:</p>
-
-<p>“Now, gentlemen, what will you have?”</p>
-
-<p>“Three cheers for Ogden County!” returned the leader.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">[131]</span>“Ogden County—without the Gun, amen!” piped up
-Eph like a fife.</p>
-
-<p>But the three cheers were lustily given. The old
-Vermont hills echoed and re-echoed again, and a vast
-deal of spleen spent itself in those six cheers.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, all hands!” commanded Captain Ethan Allen
-in ringing tones. “Now, both sides and everybody,
-give three cheers for the Green Mountain Boys and
-the Fourth of July!”</p>
-
-<p>Again, and doubly loud, roared out the great shouts.
-Again the mountains heard and the echoes reverberated
-around the sky. The stars listened, in their far heights,
-and knew that America was a stronger nation for the
-throb of patriotic feeling that pulsed through those
-hot young hearts and voiced itself in those fine huzzas.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">[132]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">PAUL REVERE’S RIDE<a id="FNanchor_11" href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">[K]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Henry Wadsworth Longfellow</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Every American boy and girl ought to know by heart the story of
-how Paul Revere on his famous ride called the minute-men to arms
-on the eve of the Battle of Lexington.</p>
-</div>
-
-<div class="poetry-container">
-<div class="poetry">
-<div class="stanza">
-<p class="drop-cap3">LISTEN, my children, and you shall hear</p>
-<div class="indent">Of the midnight ride of Paul Revere,</div>
-<div class="verse">On the eighteenth of April, in Seventy-five;</div>
-<div class="indent">Hardly a man is now alive</div>
-<div class="verse">Who remembers that famous day and year.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">He said to his friend, “If the British march</div>
-<div class="indent">By land or sea from the town to-night,</div>
-<div class="verse">Hang a lantern aloft in the belfry arch</div>
-<div class="indent">Of the North Church tower as a signal light—</div>
-<div class="verse">One if by land, and two if by sea;</div>
-<div class="verse">And I on the opposite shore will be</div>
-<div class="verse">Ready to ride and spread the alarm</div>
-<div class="verse">Through every Middlesex village and farm,</div>
-<div class="verse">For the country folk to be up and to arm.”</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Then he said, “Good-night!” and with muffled oar</div>
-<div class="verse">Silently rowed to the Charlestown shore,</div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">[133]</span>
-<div class="verse">Just as the moon rose over the bay,</div>
-<div class="verse">Where swinging wide at her moorings lay</div>
-<div class="verse">The <i>Somerset</i>, British man-of-war;</div>
-<div class="verse">A phantom ship, with each mast and spar</div>
-<div class="verse">Across the moon like a prison bar,</div>
-<div class="verse">And a huge black hulk, that was magnified</div>
-<div class="verse">By its own reflection in the tide.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Meanwhile his friend, through alley and street,</div>
-<div class="indent">Wanders and watches with eager ears,</div>
-<div class="indent">Till in the silence around him he hears</div>
-<div class="indent2">The muster of men at the barrack door,</div>
-<div class="verse">The sound of arms, and the tramp of feet,</div>
-<div class="indent">And the measured tread of the grenadiers</div>
-<div class="indent2">Marching down to their boats on the shore.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Then he climbed the tower of the Old North Church,</div>
-<div class="indent">By the wooden stairs, with stealthy tread,</div>
-<div class="indent">To the belfry chamber overhead,</div>
-<div class="verse">And startled the pigeons from their perch</div>
-<div class="verse">On the sombre rafters, that round him made</div>
-<div class="verse">Masses and moving shapes of shade—</div>
-<div class="indent">By the trembling ladder, steep and tall,</div>
-<div class="indent">To the highest window in the wall,</div>
-<div class="verse">Where he paused to listen and look down</div>
-<div class="verse">A moment on the roofs of the town,</div>
-<div class="indent">And the moonlight flowing over all.</div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">[134]</span>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Beneath, in the churchyard, lay the dead,</div>
-<div class="indent">In their night encampment on the hill,</div>
-<div class="indent">Wrapped in silence so deep and still</div>
-<div class="verse">That he could hear, like a sentinel’s tread,</div>
-<div class="indent">The watchful night-wind, as it went</div>
-<div class="indent">Creeping along from tent to tent,</div>
-<div class="verse">And seeming to whisper, “All is well!”</div>
-<div class="verse">A moment only he feels the spell</div>
-<div class="verse">Of the place and the hour, and the secret dread</div>
-<div class="verse">Of the lonely belfry and the dead;</div>
-<div class="indent">For suddenly all his thoughts are bent</div>
-<div class="verse">On a shadowy something far away,</div>
-<div class="verse">Where the river widens to meet the bay—</div>
-<div class="verse">A line of black that bends and floats</div>
-<div class="verse">On the rising tide, like a bridge of boats.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">Meanwhile, impatient to mount and ride,</div>
-<div class="verse">Booted and spurred, with a heavy stride</div>
-<div class="indent">On the opposite shore walked Paul Revere.</div>
-<div class="verse">Now he patted his horse’s side,</div>
-<div class="indent">Now gazed at the landscape far and near,</div>
-<div class="verse">Then, impetuous, stamped the earth,</div>
-<div class="verse">And turned and tightened his saddle-girth;</div>
-<div class="verse">But mostly he watched with eager search</div>
-<div class="verse">The belfry tower of the Old North Church,</div>
-<div class="verse">As it rose above the graves on the hill,</div>
-<div class="verse">Lonely and spectral and sombre and still.</div>
-<div class="verse">And lo! as he looks, on the belfry’s height</div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">[135]</span>
-<div class="verse">A glimmer, and then a gleam of light!</div>
-<div class="indent">He springs to the saddle, the bridle he turns,</div>
-<div class="verse">But lingers and gazes, till full on his sight</div>
-<div class="indent">A second lamp in the belfry burns!</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="indent">A hurry of hoofs in a village street,</div>
-<div class="verse">A shape in the moonlight, a bulk in the dark,</div>
-<div class="verse">And beneath, from the pebbles, in passing, a spark</div>
-<div class="indent">Struck out by a steed flying fearless and fleet:</div>
-<div class="verse">That was all! And yet through the gloom and the light</div>
-<div class="verse">The fate of a nation was riding that night;</div>
-<div class="verse">And the spark struck out by that steed in his flight</div>
-<div class="indent">Kindled the land into flame with its heat.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">He has left the village and mounted the steep,</div>
-<div class="verse">And beneath him, tranquil and broad and deep,</div>
-<div class="indent">Is the Mystic, meeting the ocean tides;</div>
-<div class="verse">And under the alders that skirt its edge,</div>
-<div class="verse">Now soft on the sand, now loud on the ledge,</div>
-<div class="indent">Is heard the tramp of his steed as he rides.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">It was twelve by the village clock</div>
-<div class="indent">When he crossed the bridge into Medford town.</div>
-<div class="verse">He heard the crowing of the cock,</div>
-<div class="indent">And the barking of the farmer’s dog,</div>
-<div class="indent">And felt the damp of the river fog</div>
-<div class="verse">That rises after the sun goes down.</div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">[136]</span>
-<div class="verse">It was one by the village clock</div>
-<div class="indent">When he galloped into Lexington.</div>
-<div class="verse">He saw the gilded weathercock</div>
-<div class="indent">Swim in the moonlight as he passed,</div>
-<div class="verse">And the meeting-house windows, blank and bare,</div>
-<div class="verse">Gaze at him with a spectral glare,</div>
-<div class="indent">As if they already stood aghast</div>
-<div class="indent">At the bloody work they would look upon.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">It was two by the village clock</div>
-<div class="indent">When he came to the bridge in Concord town.</div>
-<div class="verse">He heard the bleating of the flock,</div>
-<div class="verse">And the twitter of birds among the trees,</div>
-<div class="verse">And felt the breath of the morning breeze</div>
-<div class="indent">Blowing over the meadows brown.</div>
-<div class="verse">And one was safe and asleep in his bed</div>
-<div class="indent">Who at the bridge would be first to fall,</div>
-<div class="verse">Who that day would be lying dead,</div>
-<div class="indent">Pierced by a British musket-ball.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza">
-<div class="verse">You know the rest. In the books you have read</div>
-<div class="verse">How the British Regulars fired and fled—</div>
-<div class="verse">How the farmers gave them ball for ball</div>
-<div class="verse">From behind each fence and farm-yard wall,</div>
-<div class="verse">Chasing the redcoats down the lane,</div>
-<div class="verse">Then crossing the fields to emerge again</div>
-<div class="verse">Under the trees at the turn of the road,</div>
-<div class="verse">And only pausing to fire and load.</div>
-</div>
-<div class="stanza"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">[137]</span>
-<div class="verse">So through the night rode Paul Revere;</div>
-<div class="verse">And so through the night went his cry of alarm</div>
-<div class="indent">To every Middlesex village and farm—</div>
-<div class="verse">A cry of defiance and not of fear,</div>
-<div class="verse">A voice in the darkness, a knock at the door,</div>
-<div class="verse">And a word that shall echo forevermore!</div>
-<div class="verse">For, borne on the night-wind of the Past,</div>
-<div class="verse">Through all our history, to the last,</div>
-<div class="verse">In the hour of darkness and peril and need,</div>
-<div class="indent">The people will waken and listen to hear</div>
-<div class="verse">The hurrying hoof-beats of that steed,</div>
-<div class="indent">And the midnight message of Paul Revere.</div>
-</div></div></div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">[138]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">TONY’S BIRTHDAY AND GEORGE WASHINGTON’S<a id="FNanchor_12" href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">[L]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Agnes Repplier</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Washington’s Birthday—boys skating—and how one timid little
-boy called after the Father of his Country lived up to his illustrious
-name.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IT WAS the great misfortune of Tony Butler’s life
-to have been born on the twenty-second of
-February.</p>
-
-<p>There was no comfort in reflecting that there were
-doubtless plenty of other boys in the country who labored
-under the same disadvantage. The other boys
-might perhaps be better fitted for the honor, but for
-poor Tony the distinction was a crushing one.</p>
-
-<p>In the first place, he had an older brother, and that
-older brother’s name was George. Now it is generally
-conceded that one of a name is enough for any family;
-but when Tony was born on the twenty-second of February,
-how was poor Mrs. Butler to act?</p>
-
-<p>Not to have called him after the Father of his Country
-would have been, in that good woman’s opinion,
-a positive slight to the illustrious dead. As long as her
-boy was fortunate enough to have the same birthday<span class="pagenum" id="Page_139">[139]</span>
-as our great President, it became her plain duty to
-give him one other point of resemblance, and then trust
-to time to complete the likeness.</p>
-
-<p>It was a pity that they had a George already, but that
-difficulty could be done away with by calling her second
-son Washington. Washington Butler sounded well, and
-seemed all that was desirable; only there was just a
-little too much of it for every-day use. Sometimes the
-boy was called Washie, and sometimes Wash, and sometimes
-Wah, and sometimes Tony, until, as he grew older,
-and able to talk, he evinced a decided preference for the
-last title, and would answer to no other.</p>
-
-<p>But although this lessened his troubles it by no
-means ended them; for when a child has so many nicknames
-to choose from, everybody is apt to select a different
-one; and to confess the truth, he was not at all
-the right sort of a boy to be called George Washington.</p>
-
-<p>There was nothing of the soldier, nothing of the patriot,
-nothing at all remarkable, about poor Tony in
-any way. He was a shy, homely little boy, who would
-have passed well enough as plain Sam, which, being his
-father’s name, would also have been his had it not been
-for his unfortunate birthday. But as George Washington,
-even his doting mother was forced to realize
-he was not a complete success.</p>
-
-<p>The first day he went to school the master sonorously
-read out his name as Antony Butler, whereat his
-brother giggled, and Tony, blushing fiery red, stammered
-out that he was not an Antony at all.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_140">[140]</span>“Not Antony?” said the teacher, in natural surprise.
-“Why, then, are you called Tony?”</p>
-
-<p>“Because my name is George Washington, and we
-had a George already,” was the embarrassed answer.</p>
-
-<p>After this the boys with one accord dubbed him
-Washing Tony, as if he were a Chinese laundryman,
-and Washing Tony he continued to be called.</p>
-
-<p>Under these circumstances, perhaps he was excusable
-in wishing he had been born on some less illustrious day,
-and when the Twenty-second came duly around it required
-all the delights of a new pair of skates and a fur
-cap to reconcile him entirely to his fate.</p>
-
-<p>It being a general holiday, all the boys proposed
-spending it on the ice, and Tony could skate a great deal
-better than he could write or cipher; although even here
-he was never what boys consider brave, and what their
-parents are apt to more accurately define as foolhardy.</p>
-
-<p>The truth is, there was not in the child a spice of that
-boyish daring which seems so attractive in its possessor,
-and which is in reality so wanton and useless.</p>
-
-<p>Tony never wanted to climb high trees, or jump from
-steep places, or pat a restive horse, or throw an apple at
-a cross old farmer. All these things, which were dear
-to the hearts of his companions, were totally unattractive
-to him. He could never be dared to any deed that
-had a touch of danger in it, and the contrast between his
-prudent conduct and his illustrious title was, in the
-eyes of all the other boys, the crowning absurdity of the
-case.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">[141]</span>On this particular birthday the weather, though
-clear, was mild for the season, and some apprehension
-had been felt as to the complete soundness of the ice.
-A careful investigation, however, showed it to be all
-firm and solid except in one corner, where the lake
-was deepest, and where the ice, though unbroken, looked
-thin and semi-transparent, with the restless water
-underneath. Around this uncertain quarter a line was
-drawn, and soon some thirty or forty boys were skimming
-rapidly over the frozen surface.</p>
-
-<p>Fred Hazlit and Eddy Barrows were the champion
-skaters of the district, and their evolutions were regarded
-with wonder and delight by a host of smaller
-boys, who vainly tried to rival their achievements.</p>
-
-<p>Not so Tony. Although perfectly at home on the
-ice, he seemed to have no more desire to excel here
-than elsewhere, but skated gravely up and down,
-enjoying himself in his sober fashion, his cap drawn
-over his eyes, his little red hands thrust in his overcoat
-pockets.</p>
-
-<p>George, who did not think this at all amusing, was
-off with the older boys, trying to write his name on the
-ice, and going over and over it with a patient persistency
-that, practised at school, would have made him
-the first writer in his class.</p>
-
-<p>Gradually the forbidden ground began to be encroached
-on, some of the older boys skimming lightly
-over it, and finding it quite hard enough to bear their
-weight. Soon the line was obliterated by a dozen pairs<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">[142]</span>
-of skates, and the children, never heeding it, spread
-themselves over every inch of ice on the lake.</p>
-
-<p>All but Tony. With characteristic prudence he had
-marked the dangerous corner well, and never once ventured
-upon it. As he stopped to tighten his skates,
-four of the younger boys, hand in hand, came bearing
-down upon him.</p>
-
-<p>“Catch hold,” shouted Willie Marston, “and we’ll
-make a line. Hurrah! Here goes!” and Tony with
-the rest shot across the smooth sheet of ice until they
-came to the inclosed quarter. The others were keeping
-right on, but Tony stopped short.</p>
-
-<p>“It is not safe,” he said, “and I am not going on it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nonsense!” cried Dick Treves. “What a coward
-you are, Tony! We have been over it a dozen times
-already this morning, and it is just as safe as the rest.”</p>
-
-<p>“Of course it is,” said Willie. “Come ahead.”</p>
-
-<p>But Tony did not go ahead. Neither did he discuss
-the matter, for argument of any kind was not at all in
-his way. He merely stopped and let go of Willie’s
-hand. “It isn’t safe,” he persisted. “You can do as
-you like, but I am not going on it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, stay there,” said Ned Marston, giving him a
-little shove—“stay where you are, General Washington,
-and cross the Delaware on dry land if you can.”</p>
-
-<p>“Three cheers for General Washington!” shouted
-Dick derisively. “Hurrah for the bravest of the
-brave!” and then the three boys skated on, leaving
-Tony standing there upon the ice.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">[143]</span>His face flushed crimson with shame, but he never
-stirred. He hated to be laughed at and called a coward,
-but he was afraid to venture, and no amount of ridicule
-could urge him on.</p>
-
-<p>Slowly he turned to go when at that instant an ominous
-sound struck his ear. The treacherous ice was
-cracking in all directions, a dozen jagged seams spreading
-like magic over the smooth surface. There was a
-sharp snap, a cry of terror, a splash, and three boys,
-white with fright, started back from the yawning hole
-barely in time to save themselves from falling.</p>
-
-<p>In the excitement and fear of that moment no one of
-them thought of his companion; but Tony, who stood
-beside, had seen poor Willie’s despairing blue eyes fixed
-on him with a mute appeal for help as he staggered
-and fell into the dark water.</p>
-
-<p>Somehow all his habitual caution, which was so
-falsely termed cowardice, had disappeared; he never
-even thought of being afraid, with that pitiful glance
-still before his eyes, but, urged on by some great impulse,
-cleared the space between them in an instant,
-and plunged down after his drowning friend.</p>
-
-<p>Another minute and both boys re-appeared, Willie
-clutching fiercely at his preserver, and Tony holding
-him off as well as he could with one arm while he struck
-out bravely with the other.</p>
-
-<p>It was but the work of a moment before help reached
-them, but that moment had saved poor Willie’s life,
-and changed forever the opinions of the school.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">[144]</span>They had learned what true courage was. Tony
-Butler might be timid and insignificant, but he had
-proved himself beyond a doubt worthy of his illustrious
-name, and a fit hero for the Twenty-second.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">[145]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">A VENTURE IN 1777<a id="FNanchor_13" href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">[M]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">S. Weir Mitchell</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>A good, long boy’s story of how three Philadelphia lads spent an
-exciting Christmas at Valley Forge, after performing a service of
-great value to the patriots’ cause.</p>
-</div>
-
-<h3>I</h3>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THIS is a story of a boy and two other boys.</p>
-
-<p>Tom Markham was fifteen and over, and was
-careful when asked his age to say he was in his sixteenth
-year. His brothers were two years younger.
-When Harry was asked how old he was he said he was
-as old as Bill, and when any one inquired his age of Bill
-he replied that he was as old as Harry. This was because
-being twins they got somehow mixed up when
-they were born, and no one knew which was ten minutes
-the older.</p>
-
-<p>Between themselves the twins considered the matter
-of precedence based on age as important, and now and
-then endeavored to adjust matters by wager of battle.
-It was settled at last by the elder brother, Tom, who
-decided that they should be elder year about. Thus, in
-1777 Bill was the older, and was sadly regarding the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">[146]</span>
-lapse into youth which was about to come in 1778, when
-Harry would be in turn the senior.</p>
-
-<p>While Tom, who was to be sixteen in February,
-looked older, his brothers appeared younger than their
-years, and were two saucy, clever, reckless lads. A
-look of child-like innocence was part of the protective
-capital the twins invested in mischief. They fought
-one another, made common cause against the world,
-and had, as concerned Tom, a certain amount of respect
-founded on physical conditions. At the close
-of this year 1777, Sir William Howe held the city of
-Penn with some eighteen thousand men. Twenty
-miles away George Washington waited in his lines at
-Valley Forge with three or four thousand half-starved
-soldiers.</p>
-
-<p>Between the two armies Nature had established a
-nearly neutral ground, for on it lay the deepest snow
-the land had known for many a year. It was both foe
-and friend to the Continental soldiers, whom starvation
-and cold were daily tempting to desertion, and among
-whom disease in many forms was busily recruiting for
-the army of the dead.</p>
-
-<p>The well-fed British regulars in and near the city
-found in the snow an obstacle which forbade Sir William
-Howe to move, discouraged enterprise, and gave excuses
-for inertness, since no general at that time ventured to
-think of a winter campaign, until in ’78 the Virginia
-general read his enemy a novel lesson in the art of war.</p>
-
-<p>The land between the city of Philadelphia and Valley<span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">[147]</span>
-Forge on both sides of the Schuylkill was in ’77 a fertile
-country of large farms to which narrow wood
-roads led from the main highways. On to this region
-of winter, scouting or foraging parties of both armies
-ventured at times, and from it in good weather the
-farmers, despite the efforts of our scant cavalry, took
-supplies to the snow-beleaguered city, and sometimes,
-if Tories, information of value.</p>
-
-<p>In the best houses of the city there were quartered,
-to the disgust of the Whig dames, a great number of
-British officers. They were to be fed without charge
-and were unpleasant or not personally disagreeable, as
-chanced to be the case.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Markham’s ample house on Third Street, near
-Spruce, had its share of boarders thus comfortably
-billeted, to the satisfaction of her Tory neighbors who
-were not thus burdened or who gladly entertained officers
-of distinction.</p>
-
-<p>The owner of the house, Colonel Markham, of the
-Continental line, lay a prisoner in New York, when on
-Christmas Eve, in this year of 1777, Mrs. Markham
-and three unwelcome guests sat down to supper.</p>
-
-<p>Tom, the elder son, stood at the window watching the
-big white snowflakes flitting across the black squares
-of the night-darkened panes.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, my son,” said Mrs. Markham, and he took
-the vacant seat, his mind on the joys to which the
-weather was contributing in the way of coasting, skating,
-and snowball wars.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">[148]</span>This terrible winter was one thing to Sir William
-Howe, another to George Washington, and a quite
-delightful other to Tom Markham. “I suppose, Tom,”
-said the mother, as he took his seat, “this sort of Christmas
-weather is much to your liking.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, any fellow would like it, mother.”</p>
-
-<p>“There is everything in the point of view,” she returned,
-smiling. “I have no recollection of a winter
-like this.”</p>
-
-<p>In truth, the weather was keeping Christmas with a
-bountiful gift of fresh snow to the earth which was
-already heavily burdened.</p>
-
-<p>Within the house a cheerful wood-fire blazed on the
-hearth. Two branched silver candelabra lighted the
-table, and the furniture, portraits, and round mirrors
-all told of ease and luxury.</p>
-
-<p>“I have to thank you for the turkey, Captain Verney,”
-said Mrs. Markham. “My supplies are running low and
-soon you will be no better fed than the Continentals.”</p>
-
-<p>“Rebels, madam,” said Colonel Grimstone, a rough,
-red-faced soldier, who had risen from the ranks. “I
-think we shall have to be fed and well fed, too. I
-have asked five officers to dine here next week, on
-New Year’s Day.”</p>
-
-<p>Tom looked straight at the fat Colonel and wished
-he were himself a man.</p>
-
-<p>“By that time,” said Mrs. Markham, laughing, “you
-will have little besides pork and potatoes; Heaven
-knows what else.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">[149]</span>“Oh, you will find us enough. All you rebel ladies
-tell the same story. A bit tough, this mutton.”</p>
-
-<p>For the first time she broke into angry reply. “Then,
-sir, it is like your manners—hard to digest.”</p>
-
-<p>What with care and anxiety, she had come to the
-place where open wrath is the only escape from the
-shame of tears.</p>
-
-<p>To her surprise the Colonel made no rejoinder. The
-younger officer at his side caught his eye as he was
-about to make some insolent reply.</p>
-
-<p>Captain, the Honorable John Verney, to be some day
-in the peerage if spared by war, was a person whom the
-Colonel did not care to offend, and who, as Mrs. Markham
-spoke, said, “You had better get another billet,
-Grimstone. No doubt André would exchange with
-you.”</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel growled but held his tongue, knowing
-very well that few officers were as well cared for as
-Mrs. Markham’s guests.</p>
-
-<p>Verney, a gentleman of the best, smiled at her and
-nodded reassuringly. He meant, as often before, to
-set her at ease as to her difficulty in suiting the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>The third guest, a Hessian officer, Count Von Einstein,
-annoyed by the Colonel’s rudeness, turned the
-talk aside as he said, in fair English: “The letter
-you gave me for your husband in New York I was
-able to forward but I had first to go through the form
-of reading it: I think I did say so; else it could not
-have gone.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">[150]</span>“Of course,” returned Mrs. Markham, coloring.
-“Is there any chance of exchange of prisoners?”</p>
-
-<p>“I fear not,” said Verney, “unless the Continentals
-should capture the Count or Colonel Grimstone.”</p>
-
-<p>“There isn’t much chance of that, mother,” whispered
-Tom. “They like town too well.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hush!” she said, but smiled at him affectionately.
-Amid the stress of war, the talk at table, and his
-mother’s anxiety, the lad had become thoughtful
-beyond his years. “What a terrible night!” said Mrs.
-Markham, as the wind roared around the house and
-the casements rattled. Her mind was on the camp at
-Valley Forge, whence came, from the Quaker farmers,
-now and then, tales of starvation, misery, and desertion
-very encouraging to Sir William Howe, who felt
-that there was small need to assist the weather in fighting
-his battles.</p>
-
-<p>Some such thought was in the mind of the Colonel,
-for he remarked, “The rebels must be enjoying it.”</p>
-
-<p>“There are two sides to that question,” replied
-Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“How two, sir?” asked Grimstone.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, we cannot move,” said the Count. “Not
-even the great Frederick ever made a campaign in
-winter.”</p>
-
-<p>“Who wants to move? I do not,” growled the
-Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“I would try it, if I were Sir William.”</p>
-
-<p>“And how?” asked the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">[151]</span>“Well, this way,” said Verney.</p>
-
-<p>He rose, and taking a sheet of paper from a desk
-near by sat down again and rapidly drew the course of
-the river Schuylkill. “This way. March five thousand
-men up each side of the river, cross on the ice from
-this side, and attack on both sides at once.”</p>
-
-<p>The Count looked up. “That is just what Major
-Montresor is urging Sir William to do, and at once. He
-hesitates——”</p>
-
-<p>“But the snow,” said the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“He won’t try it,” returned Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“No, thank Heaven,” said the Colonel, and the
-sketch was crumpled up and cast aside to fall on the
-floor under the table.</p>
-
-<p>Supper was over, the table cleared, and the men sat
-talking together. At this time broke in the twins,
-beating off the snow and pounding with their cold feet
-on the floor.</p>
-
-<p>“I have a sword,” and “I have a drum,” cried the
-twins.</p>
-
-<p>“Goodness, you little rebels! I shall run,” laughed
-Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“And I,” cried the Count.</p>
-
-<p>“You are late, boys,” said Mrs. Markham.</p>
-
-<p>“Aunt Mary kept us.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you put away the lantern?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, mother,” said Bill.</p>
-
-<p>“Why not? I told you to be careful of it. What
-mischief have you been up to? I shall be easier when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">[152]</span>
-the holidays are over and the schoolmaster is busy
-with his ferrule.”</p>
-
-<p>The twins looked at each other and were silent.</p>
-
-<p>“Come,” said Verney, “out with it, boys.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re the oldest, Harry,” said Bill.</p>
-
-<p>“Out with it, Gemini,” said Verney.</p>
-
-<p>Harry was silent, and it was Bill who replied.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, Sambo—that’s Aunt Mary’s man, sir—he
-wouldn’t let us carry the lantern.”</p>
-
-<p>Verney, the sympathetic lover of all their mischief,
-asked, “What then, Bill?”</p>
-
-<p>“We kicked his shins and he dropped the lantern and
-it went out, and a soldier came along and he said we had
-no lantern and he must take Sambo to the Guardhouse.”</p>
-
-<p>Verney, much amused, said: “You young rebels are
-always in mischief. The orders of Mr. Galloway are
-that every one after dark must carry a lantern.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, we wanted to carry it.”</p>
-
-<p>“What did Sambo say?”</p>
-
-<p>“He ran away when the soldier said he had no light.
-Then we ran, too, like everything.”</p>
-
-<p>“And was that all?” The twins hesitated. “Oh,
-don’t be afraid,” cried Verney. “What next?”</p>
-
-<p>“We hurrahed for Washington and snowballed him.”</p>
-
-<p>“What, Washington?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir, the soldier; and he ran after us and we ran
-down Willings Alley and got over the wall and then over
-our own wall, and that soldier-man he is asking questions
-of Mr. Willing’s cook.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">[153]</span>Tom grinned approval, the Count looked serious,
-and Verney laughed while the Colonel said, “I have a
-mind to spank both of you.”</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Markham turned on him. “I can attend to
-those ceremonies myself, sir”—a fact of which the
-twins were well aware.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel made no reply, but Verney said: “In
-the interest of patriotism, madam, you cannot possibly
-court-martial them.”</p>
-
-<p>“And it is Christmas Eve, mother,” said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, it is largely your fault, Mr. Verney. You
-spoil them too much.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall reform, madam. We shall reform, Gemini.”</p>
-
-<p>“To bed with you, lads,” she said.</p>
-
-<p>“Couldn’t we sit up a little?” said Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“Please, madam,” urged the Count.</p>
-
-<p>“Then half an hour. Come to the fire. Lie down
-on the rug, boys. Why, your hands are half frozen.”
-The Count and Verney drew to the hearth and the
-Colonel sat at the table. He was quite outside of the
-group around the fire.</p>
-
-<p>“You have been so good,” said Verney, “that I shall
-have some little presents for you to-morrow.” The
-twins wished to hear of them. “No,” he said, “you
-must wait.” But in the morning he and the Colonel
-had to go out to inspect the works Major Montresor
-had thrown up at Chestnut Hill. They would use
-their own horses and Mrs. Markham’s sleigh, and would
-their mother let the boys go?</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">[154]</span>“They are so good,” said Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, do, mother!” cried the twins.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel at the table growled that children were
-in the way, nuisances; but Verney took his assent for
-granted, and somewhat reluctantly the mother yielded,
-her friend Verney promising to take care of them.</p>
-
-<p>Tom liked very well this chance to see the soldiers,
-but showed the growing boy’s usual appearance of
-being unenthusiastic. Moreover, he hated the Colonel
-as much as he liked Verney.</p>
-
-<p>Assured of the frolic, the twins frankly opened the
-question of Christmas presents with their friendly German
-guest, Mrs. Markham protesting in vain.</p>
-
-<p>The Count laughed. “<i>Guter himmel</i>, children. I
-have no presents. Ask the Colonel; he might dream
-you each a pony.” The Colonel by this time was
-sound asleep.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s no use,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“Not even if he was awake,” said Bill. “If you
-haven’t got any presents, tell us a story.”</p>
-
-<p>This he had done many times, liking the lads. Now
-at this Christmas season he was thinking of his distant
-home and his wife and children, away in the Fatherland.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, come, Count,” said Verney; “I like stories.”</p>
-
-<p>The Count sat still, reflecting.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s getting ready,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“It will be a Christmas story, boys.”</p>
-
-<p>“By all means,” said Verney, seeing as he spoke the
-old Devonshire hall—his home, the holly and the mistletoe,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">[155]</span>
-and hearing the merriment that seemed to sail to
-him on fairy ships over three thousand miles of sea.
-They would drink his health this night.</p>
-
-<p>He was recalled to a sense of his alien surroundings as
-the Count said: “This is a story, boys, my father used
-to tell when I was a little fellow, but it was never told
-except on Christmas Eve when we sat in the great hall
-of my own home.”</p>
-
-<p>“What made you come away to fight us?” This was
-Bill’s contribution. Harry punched him to emphasize
-his wish that there should be no interruptions.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Markham did not, as usual, reprove the twin
-whose ingenious capacity to unite impertinence and
-curiosity was in great need of check. She merely looked
-up at the Hessian gentleman, who gravely made reply to
-Bill: “I am a soldier and go where I am ordered, even
-though it take me to death.”</p>
-
-<p>The twins discussed this later, but Tom was old
-enough to note the suddenly serious look of the officer
-as Mrs. Markham, who knew his history, said: “Be
-quiet, boys. I want to hear the story, even if you
-do not.”</p>
-
-<p>“But we do,” cried the twins.</p>
-
-<p>“When I tell this story I think of the great hall of
-the castle, with no light but what the big logs gave,
-and how it flashed red on the armor and on the lances
-and swords on the walls.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why must there be no lights?” asked Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“Because we think in Hesse that at midnight when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">[156]</span>
-the blessed day is just born the Christ comes to the
-door and blesses the home. As He is the light of the
-world there must be no other light but the fire for
-warmth, like the comforting of His love for all, all of
-us. But now I must not be interrupted.”</p>
-
-<p>“If Bill does it again,” said the other twin, “I
-will——”</p>
-
-<p>“Just you try,” returned Bill.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall thrash you both,” said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“You can’t!”</p>
-
-<p>On this the mother said they should all three go to
-bed if they spoke a word in the next half-hour. Upon
-this there was silence and only the occasional interchange
-of such warlike signals as are well known to
-boys.</p>
-
-<p>The Count went on, the three lads now eagerly attentive,
-while Verney sat by giving at need a faint
-whistle to check or lower the fine snoring of the Colonel.</p>
-
-<p>“Once upon a time in old days there was a King,
-and the time it was once upon was Christmas Eve.
-Then, as was the custom, Rathumus, the maker of stories
-for the King, came to him and said, ‘Come with me
-that under the stars I tell you the Christmas tale.’
-The King went with him into the garden.</p>
-
-<p>“‘This,’ said the teller of tales, ‘O King, is the night
-of all nights that brings to men wise counsel for their
-own birthdays, when kings who are merciful set free
-many who are in prison for debt.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘But now in this kingdom on the birthday of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">[157]</span>
-Christ, the King of Kings, a hundred couriers sit on their
-horses at the gate waiting for a message of pardon and
-release to all who are in prisons for wrong-doing or for
-having displeased my lord the King. This is the law of
-the land. But if the King in his wrath has one he will
-not set free, then none are released, and the couriers
-ride sad to the homes of those who bide in sorrow.’</p>
-
-<p>“On this the maker of stories went away and the
-King stayed alone in the garden. It was very quiet
-and the stars watched him to see what would come, for
-now it was near to midnight, and over all the land many
-who knew of the custom stood at their doors longing to
-see the white-robed couriers arrive with news of pardon
-on that Christmas Day.</p>
-
-<p>“Now there is always for every man some woman of
-whom he is afraid, and so it was with the King. It was
-not the Queen, because she was dead, but it was the
-King’s daughter, who wanted to marry a brave young
-Prince, and was angry because the King saw no way to
-prevent it except to keep him shut up in a high tower.</p>
-
-<p>“The stars all felt sorry when the King cried out,
-‘Never will I let him out—never!’</p>
-
-<p>“Then a little wind sobbed through the trees and
-was still and the roses in the shadows prayed and the
-nightingales ceased to sing. There was a great quietness.</p>
-
-<p>“The King sat down on a seat and was angry with
-the custom and with himself, and shut his eyes and
-thought, for now he must decide. If he would not set<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">[158]</span>
-free the Prince there would be no Christmas prayers for
-him in all the wide land. But no, he would not free
-the Prince.</p>
-
-<p>“Of a sudden he heard a voice say softly: ‘If, O King,
-you move you will surely die. Listen!’ Then he
-looked and saw in the darkness a dim figure with great
-white wings and was afraid, and as he listened he heard:
-‘O King, around the throne of God a million courier
-angels are waiting in prayer. And at the noon of night
-the Christ will speak, and they will fly to set loose
-from chains of sin those who have this year offended a
-greater King than you. Hark, the clock strikes! They
-are on their way to open for you and many the prison
-doors of cruelty and wrong-doing.’</p>
-
-<p>“Of a sudden the angel was gone and the nightingales
-sang again, while the King went to the gate and cried
-to the couriers, ‘Go, with my pardon.’</p>
-
-<p>“Then in the palace the Princess said to her ladies:
-‘Quick, take off my swan wings and never tell what I
-have done, or none of you shall ever be married.’</p>
-
-<p>“Very soon came the King, and said, ‘I have seen an
-angel!’</p>
-
-<p>“And so the Prince was set free and married that
-clever Princess and was ever after good and happy.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>“What a pretty tale!” said Mrs. Markham; “and
-now to bed, to bed, boys.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, sir,” said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>Bill was silent.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">[159]</span>“Then it wasn’t a real angel,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, it was,” laughed Verney. “It was a woman.”</p>
-
-<p>On this Harry, who had the gift of imagination, got
-up and kissed his mother, who, comprehending him,
-smiled.</p>
-
-<p>Just as they were going noisily to bed a servant came
-in and said an orderly was without. He gave a paper
-to Verney, who awakened the Colonel and gave him a
-letter.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel rubbed his eyes and looked at it. “I
-hoped they had forgotten. Here are our orders to
-inspect the lines to-morrow on Mount Airy and Chestnut
-Hill.”</p>
-
-<p>“And here,” said Verney, “is Montresor’s map of the
-forts in and about the city. He promised me to send
-it as a guide to the outlying works.” The twins having
-gone, Tom lingered, unnoticed.</p>
-
-<p>“Let me see that map,” said the Colonel. They
-spread it on the table and began to consider it.</p>
-
-<p>“May I look?” asked Tom, as usual curious.</p>
-
-<p>“Certainly,” said Verney. “I will explain it to
-you. See, here are bastions and these dots the cannon.
-Here is the <i>tête du pont</i>, a work to defend the upper
-ferry.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is rather droll to me,” said Count Einstein.
-“Eighteen thousand men ought to be bastions enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“Not for Sir William,” laughed Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“It is Montresor’s own copy,” said Grimstone. “It
-is signed.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">[160]</span>“I should be pretty careful of it,” said the Count, a
-brave and well-trained soldier.</p>
-
-<p>This readiness to explain the plans to Mrs. Markham
-and her interested boy seemed to him unwise. More
-than once full knowledge of contemplated army movements
-had in some mysterious way reached the snowbound
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Mrs. Markham stood by looking over Tom’s shoulder,
-and presently said, “It is quite incomprehensible to me.
-Do you understand it, Tom?”</p>
-
-<p>“I think so. See, mother, in one place he marks a
-weak point.”</p>
-
-<p>“Have you, Mr. Verney, any such plans of the lines
-at Valley Forge?” she asked gaily.</p>
-
-<p>“You had better inquire of Major Montresor,” said
-the Count, not fancying the too-free talk.</p>
-
-<p>“To exchange plans would simplify matters,” said
-Mrs. Markham, from whom it is to be feared the twins
-inherited their capacity for mischief.</p>
-
-<p>The Count, much the ablest of the three officers,
-looked up at her of a sudden grave. Tom, always on
-easy terms with Verney, went on eagerly asking intelligent
-questions.</p>
-
-<p>“It is time, my son, you went to bed,” said the
-mother. “If George Washington, Count, could make
-no more of that tangle of lines than I, you might safely
-make him a Christmas gift of it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let him come and get it,” laughed Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“They are pretty poor with their Continental rag<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">[161]</span>
-money,” growled Grimstone, “but I suppose that map
-would easily fetch——”</p>
-
-<p>“Fetch!” broke in the Count, still less relishing the
-talk. “It wouldn’t fetch five shillings.” There was
-an unusually sharp note in his voice. “Roll it up,
-Verney.”</p>
-
-<p>He was the senior officer present, and Verney, at
-once recognizing the implied rebuke as something like
-an order, took the hint, saying, as he rolled the map,
-“I wanted to ask you if you thought——”</p>
-
-<p>The Count put a hand on his shoulder with the slight
-pressure which gave force to his words as he said: “We
-will talk of it, sir, another time. Permit me to say that
-if I were you I should be careful of that map.” This
-was in an aside to Verney as the boy left them.</p>
-
-<p>Among them they had set the adventurous mind of a
-fearless young rebel to thinking in a fashion of which they
-little dreamed.</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be careful, sir,” and then with his gay manner
-and the self-confidence of youth, he added: “What
-with the Gemini and Tom and the Colonel, it ought to
-be safe enough. What time should we go to-morrow,
-Colonel?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nine will be early enough.”</p>
-
-<p>“Will you lend me your sable coat?” asked Verney
-of the Count.</p>
-
-<p>“With pleasure.”</p>
-
-<p>“I like best my sealskin,” said Grimstone. “It is
-not so heavy. Do you really mean to take the boys?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">[162]</span>“Of course I do. We want Tom to hold the horses
-while we tramp about, and the Gemini must have the
-frolic. I promised.”</p>
-
-<p>Tom listened, well pleased. He paused on his way
-to bed, and while the officers were studying Major
-Montresor’s elaborate map, he pocketed the rough
-sketch of attack Verney had crumpled up and cast
-under the table.</p>
-
-<p>The boy was by this time more than merely curious.
-Being intelligent and thoughtful, all this war talk interested
-him, and now for two years his father’s letters
-while in service and the constant discussion he heard
-had rendered familiar the movements of the two armies
-and the changing fortunes of the war. The great
-value of the map of Sir William’s chief engineer had
-been made plain to him, and his mother’s gay suggestion
-that it would be a nice Christmas gift to Washington
-set the lad to planning all manner of wild schemes as
-he lay abed. He finally gave it up in despair. How
-could a boy manage to steal a map from a man like Verney
-and then get to Valley Forge? It was no use to
-bother about it, and he went to sleep.</p>
-
-<h3>II</h3>
-
-<p>The boys were up early, overjoyed to see a brilliant,
-sunshiny day. Mrs. Markham provided an ample
-luncheon, and with Verney and the Colonel in front of
-the sleigh, and the twins and Tom well muffled up on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">[163]</span>
-the back seat, the party sped away, the snow creaking
-under the runners. The twins talked, laughed, and
-sang, while Tom sat still, thinking.</p>
-
-<p>They paused again and again in Germantown and
-beyond it to inspect positions or to talk to officers.
-At Chestnut Hill they drove down the westward slope
-and finally came upon the farther picket line below
-the hill. Verney, an engineer officer, thought a field
-work was needed at this point. Accordingly, the two
-officers got out, leaving their fur overcoats in the sleigh,
-as the air was now warmer and they had to tramp some
-distance through the heavy drifts of snow.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel put Montresor’s map in the pocket of
-his fur coat, which he folded and laid in the sleigh.
-Verney also left the Count’s rich sable at the feet of
-the twins.</p>
-
-<p>“We shall be gone half an hour, boys,” said Verney.
-“Had we not better call a corporal from the fire yonder
-to stand by the horses?”</p>
-
-<p>“Lord, man,” said Grimstone, “they would stand
-till night. They are dead tired. Won’t you want the
-map?”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Verney; “I know it by heart.”</p>
-
-<p>About a hundred yards distant was a great campfire
-and just ahead of them an outlying picket of two soldiers,
-one on each side above the road. Tom sat on
-the front seat, the reins in his hand. Of a sudden
-a mad idea came into his mind.</p>
-
-<p>The map was in the sleigh. The two officers were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">[164]</span>
-far away, tramping through the drifts. Before him
-lay the lonely highway. He would take the map to
-Washington. He forgot the peril of the mad venture
-now tempting him, or gave it but a boy’s passing
-thought. His summers had been spent at a farm near
-White Marsh. He knew the country well. The temptation
-was too much for him.</p>
-
-<p>A man would have realized the difficulties and the
-danger for the smaller boys. He did not. A boy’s
-mind is more simple. The risks for himself were merely
-additional temptations.</p>
-
-<p>He stood up, the reins in his hand, and gazed anxiously
-after the retreating forms of the two officers.
-Then he turned to his brothers.</p>
-
-<p>“Get over in front, Bill; quick, and don’t make a
-noise.”</p>
-
-<p>There was mischief in the air as Bill at once knew.
-He climbed over the seat and waited.</p>
-
-<p>“Hold fast, Harry,” said Tom. “These horses are
-going to run away.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, let me out,” cried Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“No, hold on, and keep quiet.”</p>
-
-<p>“What fun!” cried Bill. “We are to have a ride all
-to ourselves.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you whack the horses, Bill. They’ll go. Wait
-a moment.” He gave one last look around him and
-ahead.</p>
-
-<p>Beyond the picket the road ran straight for a mile.
-He had his moment of final hesitation, but it was soon<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">[165]</span>
-over. No one was in sight near by, and his eyes roamed
-over the trackless vacancy of snow-clad spaces into
-which the highway disappeared.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you ready, Bill?” he said, handing him the
-whip.</p>
-
-<p>“All right,” said Bill, seeing desirable mischief
-ahead and enjoying the prospect.</p>
-
-<p>Harry was less eager, but, ashamed to confess his
-fears, said bravely, “Well, Tom, hurry up.”</p>
-
-<p>“Now,” said Tom, “do you, Bill, hit the horses
-with the whip, not too hard. They’ll go.”</p>
-
-<p>They did go, for Bill, enchanted, had to be stopped.
-In an instant they were off and away at a mad gallop
-over a much-used road.</p>
-
-<p>“By George!” roared the Colonel. “The horses have
-run away!”</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers shouted, the picket ran down to the
-road, too late, and furious at this unwonted treatment
-the horses ran. A mile or more went by before the
-heavy snowdrifts of a less-used road lessened their
-speed. On a hillcrest Tom stood up and looked back.</p>
-
-<p>“Guess we are safe, boys,” he said. “It’s good there
-were no horses about.”</p>
-
-<p>As the sleigh moved more slowly at a trot, Bill said,
-“It was a first-class runaway!” and Harry, reassured,
-asked if it wasn’t time for lunch.</p>
-
-<p>Tom said no, and kept his eye on the road, which by
-one o’clock became hard for the horses, as the drifts
-were heavier.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">[166]</span>At last he pulled up for luncheon and to rest the
-team. As the twins were now pretty cold Tom got
-out the fur coats.</p>
-
-<p>“There are only two,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I’ll fix that,” said Tom. And this was his
-way: he threw the heavy sable coat over the boys’
-shoulders, and while Harry put his right hand into the
-right sleeve Bill put his left hand into the left sleeve.
-When Tom had them buttoned up, the two red faces
-being close together in the middle, he called them a
-double-headed bear and roared with laughter as he
-himself put on the Colonel’s coat.</p>
-
-<p>“Won’t he say things!” said Bill, and they went on,
-but now only at a walk. Harry did not like it, but,
-ashamed to confess his fears, kept quiet.</p>
-
-<p>They met no one. The distant farms were hidden
-by the snow-laden forests. The drifts became heavier.
-Now they were off the road and now on. There were
-no marks of recent travel. It was Christmas; the
-farmers at home. Both the twins had become silent,
-Tom more and more anxious as he missed his well-known
-landmarks. At last a dead tree on the road let him
-know that he was about six miles from the Forge.
-The horses had come quite nine miles or more through
-tiring drifts. Now and then their feet balled and Tom
-had to get down and beat out the packed snow.</p>
-
-<p>Finally the horses could do no more than walk.
-It was well on to four o’clock, but at this he could only
-guess. He began to be troubled about the twins and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">[167]</span>
-a little to regret having made his venture. If they
-came to a stop with no house in sight, what could he
-do? To walk to the camp would be even for him hard
-and for the twins impossible. Again he stopped the
-horses for a rest, a formidable drift lying ahead and
-filling the road.</p>
-
-<p>By this time Bill had lost much of the joy of mischievous
-adventure. He began to think it was time
-for them to return home, and Harry had asked over and
-over how soon they would go back. Tom at length
-ceased to answer him as it drew toward evening.</p>
-
-<p>There was a new sharpness in the air, a warning to
-Tom of what night would bring. He stood upon the
-seat and searched the white-clad land for a house or the
-wood opening which might lead to one. He saw no
-sign of habitation to which he could go in person for
-help. And how could he leave his brothers? Even
-to turn homeward in the narrow road among the drifts
-would have been, as he saw, quite out of the question.
-What else was there but to go on?</p>
-
-<p>Even at this worst minute of his daring adventure
-the boy could have cried at the thought of failure. He
-felt the map and Verney’s sketch under his waistcoat,
-thought of his father, a prisoner, and then cheering up
-the twins, used the whip on the weary horses, who
-plunged into the great mound of snow.</p>
-
-<p>A trace snapped, the sleigh turned over on its side,
-the horses kicked, broke loose, and fled away down the
-road and were soon lost to view.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">[168]</span>Tom got on his feet and looked for the twins. For a
-moment they were out of sight. Then the huge drift
-began to shake and their four legs were seen kicking
-above the snow, whence Tom pulled out the two-headed
-bear. Bill laughed. Tom did not. Harry looked his
-alarm.</p>
-
-<p>All three working hard were able to right the sleigh
-after beating away a part of the drift. After that they
-climbed in and ate what was left of the food, but were
-not quite so merry as before, while Tom, made savage
-by failure, would neither eat nor talk.</p>
-
-<p>At last he stood up on the seat.</p>
-
-<p>“Shut up, Gemini,” he said, “I hear something.
-Now,” he said, turning, “mind you, if these I hear are
-British we were run away with. Hush!” He heard
-in the sharp, frosty air the clink of sabres and soon the
-thud of horses’ hoofs in the snow.</p>
-
-<h3>III</h3>
-
-<p>A moment after the runaway boys had heard the
-sound of horses in the snow, a dozen troopers of the
-Continental army were around them and a young
-officer rode up, while Harry whimpered and said, “Now
-we’ll be killed.”</p>
-
-<p>“Great George!” cried the officer, “but here’s a
-queer capture. Who the deuce are you?”</p>
-
-<p>“I am Tom Markham, sir. My father is Colonel
-Markham, and these are my brothers.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">[169]</span>When Allan McLane saw the two-headed bear he
-rocked with laughter as he sat in his saddle.</p>
-
-<p>“And how did you get here?”</p>
-
-<p>“We ran away with the horses of Colonel Grimstone
-and Captain Verney, and, sir, this was why we ran
-away.” As he spoke he pulled out Montresor’s map
-and the sketch.</p>
-
-<p>McLane opened the paper. “By George, it’s Montresor’s
-own map. How did you get it?”</p>
-
-<p>“They left it in the sleigh while they went to look
-at something this side of Chestnut Hill. Is it any use,
-sir?” added Tom anxiously.</p>
-
-<p>“Any use, man! If General Washington doesn’t
-make you a Colonel for this there is no use in man or
-boy trying to serve an ungrateful country.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the twins, feeling neglected, said, “We helped,
-too.”</p>
-
-<p>“I licked the horses,” cried Bill</p>
-
-<p>“Aren’t you cold, boys?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir, but we never told Tom.”</p>
-
-<p>“By George, but you are a plucky lad. Take this
-two-headed animal, Sergeant. Mount one of them,
-coat and all, in front of you, and be quick, or we shall
-have them frozen.”</p>
-
-<p>“The other may have my coat,” said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“Good,” said the Captain. “You shall wear my own
-cloak, my lad.”</p>
-
-<p>Seeing Harry’s look of fright and the ready tears,
-he said: “It’s all right, youngsters. Don’t you be<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">[170]</span>
-afraid. We are all your friends and I know your father
-well.”</p>
-
-<p>Turning to Tom, he said: “This way, my lad. Now,
-then, give him a knee, Sergeant; so, a foot in my stirrup
-and up you go behind me. Now, then, right about
-by twos, march.”</p>
-
-<p>He went off at a sharp trot with Tom’s arms around
-his waist.</p>
-
-<p>“Hold on to the belt,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“May I some day have a boy like you! I enlist you
-in my troop. You are one of Allan McLane’s rangers.
-Hold hard. The road is better. I am going to gallop.”</p>
-
-<p>If ever there was a proud boy it was Tom Markham,
-for who did not know Allan McLane, the terror of outlying
-pickets, the hero of a dozen gallant adventures?</p>
-
-<p>“How are you, Gemini?” cried Tom, looking back.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, we’re fine!” roared Bill, his teeth chattering
-with cold.</p>
-
-<p>At the river they were stopped a minute. McLane
-gave the password, “Washington,” and at dusk they
-tramped over the bridge and were at once among
-General Varney’s brigades.</p>
-
-<p>Bill had ceased to ask questions. Harry, again uneasy
-at the sight of soldiers, wept unseen, and even Tom
-felt a certain awe at thus facing the unknown. He was
-more at ease as he saw hundreds of ill-clad men making
-merry in a wild snowball fight, shouting and laughing.</p>
-
-<p>They rode in the gloom through dimly seen rows of
-log huts, and at one of them McLane dismounted.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_171">[171]</span>“Take your men in,” he said to a lieutenant. “Report
-at headquarters and say I shall be there in an
-hour.” He lifted the twins from their perches and
-bade the three enter his hut. “This is my home, boys.
-Come in.”</p>
-
-<p>It was a tiny log cabin with a stone-built chimney and
-a big fire; wood alone was to be had—in plenty. The
-twins felt better after he gave them in turn a teaspoonful
-or two of whiskey in water, laughed at their wry
-faces as they drank, set Harry on his knee, patted him
-on the back, and bade them make free of his stale biscuit
-and the potatoes he roasted in the hot ashes.</p>
-
-<p>The twins, as they got warm in this pleasant company,
-talked of their adventures. Tom sat in silence.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter?” asked McLane, getting only
-“Yes” and “no” to his queries.</p>
-
-<p>“I am thinking, sir, of my mother. Oh, but she will
-be troubled. I never thought of that when——”</p>
-
-<p>“Be easy, my lad. To-morrow I am going into the
-city. I shall see her. When you can get back, I do
-not know, but you will see the camp and the troops and
-get your share of a trooper’s fare. When you are warm
-I want you to come with me, Tom.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir. I am ready now.”</p>
-
-<p>With a word to the twins he followed the Captain
-through the darkness.</p>
-
-<p>The men were huddled around campfires and were
-cooking their scanty rations of pork and potatoes.
-Presently McLane paused at the door of a small stone<span class="pagenum" id="Page_172">[172]</span>
-house, the only one in the lines. A sentry walked to
-and fro before it.</p>
-
-<p>McLane went in and said to an officer: “Mr. Tilghman,
-ask the General to see me. It is important.”</p>
-
-<p>In a few minutes the officer returned. “This way,”
-he said.</p>
-
-<p>Tom saw seated before the fire a large man in buff-and-blue
-uniform. He rose, saying, “What news have
-you, Captain?”</p>
-
-<p>“This lad, sir, brought from the town at some peril
-this map and sketch. It seems to be some one’s notion
-of an attack.”</p>
-
-<p>The tall officer put the sketch aside, but as he considered
-the map he said, looking up: “This is Major
-Montresor’s own map and is invaluable. What is
-your name, my boy?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m a son of Colonel Markham, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“A most gallant officer. And how, my lad, did you
-happen to get this map?”</p>
-
-<p>Tom was a little disturbed by this authoritative gentleman.
-Being a boy, he had, of course, been left standing,
-while McLane and the tall man were seated. He
-understood that he must stand until requested to sit,
-but it did add a little to a certain embarrassment, rare
-for Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“Tell your story, Tom,” said McLane.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, sir, the horses ran away, and the map was in
-the sleigh.” Tom stopped. Action, not speech, was
-his gift, then and later.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">[173]</span>“It is not very clear, but the lad is tired.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir,” said Tom, without the least boy desire
-to describe what was a bold and dangerous adventure.</p>
-
-<p>“Never mind your story now. Captain McLane
-will tell me later. You are a brave lad, and if God had
-given me one like you I should have been glad.”</p>
-
-<p>Tom felt somehow that he was well rewarded.</p>
-
-<p>“But,” added the tall man, setting kind, blue eyes
-on the lad, “this will make a great stir, and you will, I
-fear, suffer for it when you reach home.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir,” said Tom. “And the twins?”</p>
-
-<p>“Twins? What’s this, McLane?”</p>
-
-<p>“There were three in the business,” said the Captain.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed. I wish there were as much spirit in the
-army.”</p>
-
-<p>“After all, sir,” said McLane, “what can they do to
-a mere boy whose horses ran away?”</p>
-
-<p>“But how are they to get to the city?”</p>
-
-<p>“I will see to that, sir, and let Mrs. Markham
-know.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, yes, quite right. Now I must be excused.”
-He rose and shook hands with Tom, and bowed to the
-officer.</p>
-
-<p>“Come, Tom,” said McLane.</p>
-
-<p>Tom made his best bow and they went out into the
-cold December night. Then Tom asked: “Who was
-that general?”</p>
-
-<p>“Good gracious, my boy, I thought you knew. That<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">[174]</span>
-was General Washington. He might have thanked
-you more. But that’s his way.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think he said enough, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>McLane looked at the young face, now elate and
-smiling and then quiet in thought.</p>
-
-<p>The Lieutenant was waiting in the hut when Tom and
-the Captain returned.</p>
-
-<p>McLane said: “I shall be away for a day or more.
-Their mother must hear news of these lads. I leave
-them in your care, Lieutenant.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>The Captain said good-bye and was gone for two days.</p>
-
-<p>Meanwhile the story was told by the troopers and
-soon repeated at the campfires, where the men amused
-themselves mightily with the twins and their narratives.</p>
-
-<p>Tom held his tongue, and wandering saw the earthworks,
-and the ragged soldiers making shoes out of old
-blankets and plaited straw, or cooking frozen potatoes
-and decayed pickled herring, and growling over their
-diet.</p>
-
-<p>He saw the army wagons come in with wood, the
-worn-out traces replaced by grapevines. He saw men
-on guard relieved every hour for fear of frozen feet,
-which were shoeless, and more than once a sentry
-standing on his hat for relief, with feet double wrapped
-in bits of blanket. He ate of horse beef at their fires
-or rode proudly at the head of McLane troops down the
-hill and into the lines of General Greene’s brigades.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">[175]</span>The twins, too, kept him busy. They climbed with
-him the slope of Mount Misery and saw the bridge over
-the Schuylkill, and on the posts which supported it
-burned in the names of favorite generals—Washington,
-Putnam, Greene, and Lafayette. Once Harry,
-in delicious fear, was allowed to touch off the evening
-gun.</p>
-
-<p>At dusk on December twenty-eighth the lads found
-McLane again in his hut.</p>
-
-<p>“Hurrah, boys,” he cried, “I have a bag of flour,
-four sausages, and an aged hen. Let’s make slapjacks.
-After we have fed I have a story.”</p>
-
-<p>They had been better fed than their soldier hosts, for,
-if it was not much at a time, there was something to be
-had at every hut or campfire, and by this accumulation
-of forage they kept themselves fairly supplied. But
-sausage and slapjacks and fried chicken! The boys had
-their fill for the first time since they left home. Then
-they lay on the floor before the fire. The twins looked
-expectant.</p>
-
-<p>“You promised us a story,” said Bill, “when you
-came back.”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall be as good as my word.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t want it to begin with ‘Once on a time,’”
-said Harry, now quite at home. “They always begin
-that way. The Count told us a story on Christmas
-Eve about an angel and it turned out that it wasn’t a
-real one after all.”</p>
-
-<p>“That was terrible,” said the Captain. “My story<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">[176]</span>
-is true. Now and then I go into Philadelphia to see
-the troops and where they are.”</p>
-
-<p>“But isn’t that dangerous?” asked Tom, who knew
-well what was the fate of a spy.</p>
-
-<p>“Well, rather. I should be hanged if I were caught,
-but you see they don’t catch me. Two days ago I rode
-with a trooper to a deserted barn, and there I put on a
-Quaker bonnet, and old woman’s clothes and shoes and
-horn spectacles and with a crutch and a basket of eggs
-I got of a farmer, I walked down Lancaster Pike and
-hobbled over the floating bridge.</p>
-
-<p>“Any one with provisions can get in and have a pass
-to get out and I have been in town several times and
-am pretty well known as Mrs. Price. I sold my eggs,
-some of them to Sir William Howe’s cook. Then I
-went to your house.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, and you saw mother?” cried Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“Shut up,” said Bill; “I want to hear.”</p>
-
-<p>“When I came to your house, I went to the back gate
-and was let in by a black cook——”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s Nancy,” said Bill.</p>
-
-<p>“I said I had eggs for sale. Then she took me to the
-hall and I sat down. There I saw that red-nosed Colonel
-come in. I was knitting a stocking and was
-pretty busy, with my spectacles on. Your mother
-asked the price of my eggs and where I lived. When
-the Colonel heard I lived near Valley Forge and had
-had a lift on a farmer’s cart to get to town, he asked
-about the troops here. I told him some fine yarns, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">[177]</span>
-with this he went away. I should like to catch him and
-swap him off for your father.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you see Captain Verney?” asked Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes. I am a bit afraid of him. When he came
-through the hall I had to turn my back because my
-garter was coming down.</p>
-
-<p>“Your mother and I bargained for my eggs and at last
-the maid took them. Then I whispered, ‘Could I see
-thee alone?’ She said ‘Yes’ and took me into the parlor.</p>
-
-<p>“I said: ‘Mrs. Markham, thou hast no need to be
-troubled. The boys are safe at Valley Forge. The
-horses ran away.’</p>
-
-<p>“When I said this she cried, and just sat down and
-said: ‘I have been so distressed, but—I knew—Tom—was
-to be trusted.’”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” exclaimed Tom, “did my mother say that?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, she said that. I think the less you fellows say
-at home of the runaway the better for you and your
-friend, Captain Verney. You see, the lost map will
-make a heap of trouble for him—and for you, too, if
-you are not careful.</p>
-
-<p>“Then your mother began to ask questions, but I
-said I was in a hurry, and that on New Year’s Eve
-she must get a pass for a chaise and man to meet you
-on the west side of the middle ferry about nine at night.
-I said, too, ‘Thy boys may have difficulty about a map.
-Best to see them alone before Brimstone can question
-them. It was very foolish for them to run away with
-that map.’</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">[178]</span>“When I spoke of the map she laughed and said:
-‘Was that why the horses ran away? Oh, Tom, Tom!’</p>
-
-<p>“Then I said: ‘They can’t do anything to your
-boys.’</p>
-
-<p>“‘No, but Mr. Verney and the Colonel were much
-blamed and are very cross. However, that night I
-can see the boys alone. The officers—I mean the
-Colonel and Captain Verney—are to take supper with
-Mr. Penn at his house over the river.’</p>
-
-<p>“I asked if it was the place in the woods above the
-Schuylkill, the place he calls The Solitude. I wanted
-to be sure. Your mother said: ‘Yes. It is there,
-I believe.’ It set me to thinking.</p>
-
-<p>“Of a sudden she turned on me and said: ‘You are no
-Quaker.’</p>
-
-<p>“I laughed and said: ‘No, madam, I am Captain
-Allan McLane, at your service.’</p>
-
-<p>“This did scare her for the risk I ran, but I said there
-was none. She sent you her love. That’s all my story.
-We found the horses, Tom. I shall take one and my
-Lieutenant the other.”</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t like that,” said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“Spoils of war, sir; and now get to bed.”</p>
-
-<p>“And the fur coats?” asked Tom, anxiously honest.</p>
-
-<p>“We shall return the Count’s. I shall keep the
-Colonel’s. Now to bed, boys.”</p>
-
-<p>“Thank you, sir,” said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“That was a fine story,” said Bill. “I like real true
-stories.”</p>
-
-<p>“And it ends just right,” said Harry.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, that is not the end,” laughed McLane.</p>
-
-<p>Then the boys were curious and questioned their
-friend, but he would tell them no more.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">[179]</span>“To bed,” he cried, and rolled them up in blankets
-on the cabin floor.</p>
-
-<h3>IV</h3>
-
-<p>The days went by, and on the afternoon of December
-thirtieth the boys rode out of camp, the twins well
-wrapped up in front of troopers and Tom mounted
-on a troop-horse. The day was pleasant and warm for
-the season, and McLane pushed on at speed down the
-west side of the river.</p>
-
-<p>It was a long and hard ride and the twins were tired
-when, nine miles from the city, at a friendly farmer’s,
-pickets were put out and they spent the night and
-were well fed.</p>
-
-<p>They stayed all of that day at the farm, and at seven
-on New Year’s Eve the Sergeant went back to camp,
-leaving but six men. Presently, to Tom’s amazement,
-McLane came out of the barn with his Lieutenant,
-both dressed as British officers and the men as King’s
-soldiers. Then they mounted as before and rode
-slowly toward town. Tom, very curious, asked questions.
-McLane laughed: “Only a little fancy ball,
-Tom, and don’t talk. I want to think. Later I hope
-to send you a dispatch.” Tom was puzzled, but rode
-on in silence.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">[180]</span>About nine at night they were just outside of the
-English pickets, not far from the Schuylkill. Here they
-rode into a wood and dismounted. Then McLane on
-foot led the boys down the Lancaster Road.</p>
-
-<p>“Yonder,” he said, “is a guard. As it is very dark
-you may get by unseen. If not, you must say you are
-boys from town and have lost your way. Not a word
-of me. Be careful. At the middle ferry bridge you
-will find a chaise and your man-servant. Now be
-silent and careful and good-bye, Colonel Markham.”</p>
-
-<p>Full of the boy delight in an adventure so real, Tom
-went on in the darkness with the twins. He saw against
-the sky a guard on a little hillock above the road. A
-thicket of briers lined the wayside.</p>
-
-<p>Tom halted and whispered: “We have got to creep,
-Gemini, and play bears. No noise, and go slow.”</p>
-
-<p>With this the three went down on their hands and
-knees in the snow, and, Tom leading, crept by the
-sentry on the bank, who was stamping and beating his
-breast to keep warm.</p>
-
-<p>“Now,” said Tom, “for a run to get warmed up”;
-and, unseen, they ran through the darkness on the well-trodden
-snow of the mid-pike.</p>
-
-<p>They soon found the chaise and their servant. He
-had a pass so that they easily went by the guard and
-after a short drive were at home and in their mother’s
-arms.</p>
-
-<p>When the boys left him, McLane, a little anxious,
-looked after them for a time and returned to his men.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">[181]</span>
-They tied their horses in the wood and, leaving a man
-to care for them, one by one crawled through the thin
-line of pickets, who were much occupied in keeping
-themselves warm.</p>
-
-<p>It was very dark, and again the snow was falling and
-a fierce wind blowing. At last the men came together
-at a low whistle from McLane.</p>
-
-<p>They were now close to the house where, in the wood
-above the Schuylkill, Mr. Penn was pleased to entertain
-his friends. It was a quaint little house and
-still stands to-day in the Zoological Gardens. There is
-a small entrance hall, a winding stair, and on the left
-a descent to a long underground passage ending in two
-large, cool-storage rooms. One large chamber on the
-first floor looks eastward over the river.</p>
-
-<p>McLane knew it all well. It was now long after nine
-and very dark. The partisan officer was safe between
-the pickets he had passed and those along the west
-shore far below the house.</p>
-
-<p>Leaving his men near the door he went around the
-house. Then, approaching a window, he cautiously
-looked into the room. A dozen candles were on the
-table, and many more in sconces on the wall.</p>
-
-<p>At the table sat Mr. Galloway, the British superintendent
-of police, a staunch Tory, Mr. Penn, Colonel
-Grimstone, and Captain Verney. There were several
-empty chairs. Supper was over. There were empty
-bottles on the table and a big bowl of punch.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel had removed his stiff regulation stock.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">[182]</span>
-Galloway had unbuttoned his embroidered waistcoat.
-Verney was looking at his watch.</p>
-
-<p>“A nice party,” said McLane. “Will it incline to
-be hospitable?”</p>
-
-<p>Then he returned to the front.</p>
-
-<p>The Lieutenant said: “Their horses are in the stable,
-the grooms asleep beside a fireplace.”</p>
-
-<p>A man was put at each window, two left at the door,
-and, it being now near to ten, McLane quietly entered
-the hall, and then, with his Lieutenant, appeared in
-the supper-room. Mr. Penn arose.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-evening, sir,” said McLane. “Lieutenant
-Hand and I have had a long ride, and seeing your
-lights took the liberty——”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, most welcome—as are all gentleman of His
-Majesty’s service. Sit down, sir. Colonel Grimstone,
-you may know these officers.”</p>
-
-<p>“Never saw them in all my life,” said the Colonel
-gruffly.</p>
-
-<p>Captain Verney rose and bowed.</p>
-
-<p>“I beg pardon,” he said, “I did not catch your
-name.”</p>
-
-<p>“Captain Head, at your service.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s queer,” said Grimstone; “Head and Hand.”</p>
-
-<p>“Sit down,” said the host. “Oh, by George, the
-servants have gone and—Verney, you are the youngest
-and you know the way, would you fetch some wine
-for us from the cellar?”</p>
-
-<p>McLane said a word to his Lieutenant, who rose,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">[183]</span>
-apologizing. “I want to see to the horses. Be back
-in a moment.”</p>
-
-<p>In the hall he saw Verney take a lantern and go down
-to the cellar. The Lieutenant waited a moment, shot
-bolt and lock behind the Captain, and, returning, sat
-down by Galloway.</p>
-
-<p>“Pray throw off your cloaks, gentlemen,” said Penn.
-“Will you drink, Captain Head?”</p>
-
-<p>McLane cast his cloak back from his left shoulder and
-set a hand on his pistols.</p>
-
-<p>“I never drink while on duty, Mr. Penn. You must
-hold me excused.”</p>
-
-<p>“As you please, sir,” answered Penn.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s your regiment?” inquired Grimstone in a
-thick voice.</p>
-
-<p>“McLane’s Horse! And if a man moves there will be
-two dead.” For a pistol was at the forehead of both
-the Colonel and Galloway.</p>
-
-<p>They were startled, but had wit enough to understand
-a very unpleasant situation.</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t do that!” cried Grimstone. Galloway sat
-as still and as pale as a statue.</p>
-
-<p>“I am sorry, Mr. Penn, to disturb you,” said
-McLane; “but as I have neither eaten of your salt
-nor drunk at your board, you will pardon me.
-Neither do I want you or Mr. Galloway,” he continued,
-“if you will say, on your honor, that you will
-not leave this room nor give the alarm for half an
-hour.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">[184]</span>Penn said: “Needs must. You know the proverb,
-Captain McLane.”</p>
-
-<p>Galloway said: “Oh, I swear.”</p>
-
-<p>“Kindly put your watch on the table, Mr. Penn.
-Ten, I see. Captain Verney is locked in the cellar.
-My regards to him. Come, Colonel, and on the honor
-of a gentleman if you speak or resist I shall kill you.
-Good-night, Mr. Penn.”</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel rose with his captor and went out.</p>
-
-<p>“Sergeant, put this gentleman between two men and
-call in the rest. If he ventures to give the alarm shoot
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good Heavens!” said Penn to Galloway. “A nice
-ending for a supper. That fellow missed Sir William
-Howe by only ten minutes.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hark! What was that?” said Galloway. Distant
-shots rang sharp through the cold night air.</p>
-
-<p>“They have had trouble with the pickets.”</p>
-
-<p>“Hope they caught them,” said Galloway.</p>
-
-<p>Penn returned: “He is one of the kind that catches
-and is never caught.” Then, as the noise of a great
-thumping and pounding fell on his ears, he added: “Just
-listen to Verney!” And he fell back in his chair, convulsed
-with laughter. “No, don’t move, Galloway.
-It wants fourteen minutes of the half-hour. Sir William
-was in luck.”</p>
-
-<p>A little later the amazed and disgusted Verney heard
-the story. “He did not want me, I suppose.” He<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">[185]</span>
-knew later that, because of being a gentleman and
-courteously kind to Tom’s mother, McLane was pleased
-to forget him.</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel failed to appear at home that night.
-Verney was late in returning, and only at breakfast
-did Mrs. Markham and the boys, to their relief, and
-greatly to Tom’s delight, learn of the capture of their
-unmannerly guest.</p>
-
-<p>Then the Captain, still a little cross, turned on Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, sir,” he asked, “did you run away with the
-sleigh or the sleigh with you?”</p>
-
-<p>The Count, much amused, listened.</p>
-
-<p>Tom was cornered. Very red in the face, he replied:
-“The horses ran away with both, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“I may assure Sir William that the horses ran away?”</p>
-
-<p>Tom felt that he was well within the boundary of
-truth as he said, “Yes. They ran like everything. We
-upset, and Captain McLane found us and took us to
-Valley Forge.”</p>
-
-<p>“And what, sir, became of the map we left in the
-sleigh?”</p>
-
-<p>Tom wriggled.</p>
-
-<p>“I want an answer.”</p>
-
-<p>“General Washington has it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Did you give it to him?”</p>
-
-<p>“No, sir. Captain McLane gave it to him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I think,” remarked the Count, “that you had better
-stop here.”</p>
-
-<p>That was also Tom’s opinion.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">[186]</span>“The map was in the coat-pocket, I remember.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir. I was to tell Count Einstein, with Captain
-McLane’s compliments, that his coat is at Farmer
-Nixon’s, near the Cross Keys Tavern. He said you
-could easily get it.”</p>
-
-<p>The Count expressed his pleasure, and Verney asked
-no further questions.</p>
-
-<p>A few days later, just before supper, Tom burst into
-the room with the twins after him.</p>
-
-<p>“He’s got a letter!” cried Bill.</p>
-
-<p>“He won’t let us see it!” cried Harry.</p>
-
-<p>They fell on Tom and rolled in wild laughter on the
-floor.</p>
-
-<p>“This is too much,” said Mrs. Markham.</p>
-
-<p>Verney rose, and with two or three mild kicks separated
-the fighting, laughing tangle of legs and arms.</p>
-
-<p>Then he caught the elder boy by the collar and said:
-“Stand up on your hind legs, Tom, and tell me what
-this row is about.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s got a letter,” said Bill, “a Quaker man, a
-farmer, left it; and he won’t let us see it till mother
-reads it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Where is it?” said Verney.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, sir. You’re choking me. You may read it.
-There’s a message for you.”</p>
-
-<p>Captain Verney looked at the address and read,
-laughing, “This with haste.”</p>
-
-<p>“With your permission, madam,” he said; then he
-read aloud:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">[187]</span>“Valley Forge, January 7, 1778.</p>
-
-<p>“To Colonel Thomas Markham, Jr., late of Captain
-Allan McLane’s Company, Continental Line——”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s me!” said Tom.</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed!” He turned to the contents.</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Dear Colonel</span>: I beg to report that after leaving you on
-the road with Gemini I had the pleasure of Capturing Colonel
-Gravestone, now here on parole and a low diet. He says his
-name is Grimstone, but what can be grimmer than Gravestone,
-and grim he is and grave. We shall swap him off for Colonel
-Markham.</p>
-
-<p>My compliments to Captain the Honorable John Verney.
-Having been a kind and courteous guest I forgot him. It was
-against the rules of the service, but I trust, sir, you will not
-have me court-martialed. The map found in the coat proves
-useful. My thanks to Major Montresor.</p>
-
-<p>Remember me to your mother.</p>
-
-<p>I have the honor to be your very obedient humble servant
-and brother-officer.</p>
-
-<p class="right"><span class="smcap">Allan McLane.</span></p>
-
-<p>Postscript—I promised you an ending to my story, and
-here it is.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>“Well, of all the impertinent things!” cried Verney;
-“but, my dear Count, I should like to see ‘Gravestone’
-among these gentlemen, and, on my word, I should
-like to meet this brave and merry officer.”</p>
-
-<p>The Colonel spent two months and more on parole
-at Valley Forge. He lost four stone and became meek.</p>
-
-<p>In the spring he was exchanged for a better man,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">[188]</span>
-Colonel Markham, but no amount of food, as he swore,
-ever enabled him to make up for the scant fare he had
-had in the camp of the Continentals.</p>
-
-<p>The twins and Tom lived to enjoy many Christmas
-Days, but none like that they spent with the army at
-Valley Forge in the hard winter of 1777-8.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">[189]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">A TEMPEST IN A BIG TEA-POT<a id="FNanchor_14" href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">[N]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Samuel Adams Drake</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>About the Boston Tea-party and the Indians who brewed the tea.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">CHANCE has led us to the spot on which the house
-of Governor Winthrop stands. But by the side
-of it, in a crowded neighborhood, is a brick church with
-a fine and lofty steeple pricking the frosty air of a December
-afternoon. There is a dense crowd of men,
-with a sprinkling of women, arguing and gesticulating
-about the door, but the interior is so choked up with
-people that we can scarcely elbow our way in. The
-men’s faces, we notice, are flushed and excited, and
-here is an angry buzz of half-suppressed voices. Evidently
-something out of the common has brought these
-people here. What can it be?</p>
-
-<p>Ah! they are all talking about tea.</p>
-
-<p>“You can lead a horse to water but you can’t make
-him drink,” one says, very significantly, to his neighbor.</p>
-
-<p>“Aye, and they can send us tea but can’t make us
-drink,” responds his neighbor.</p>
-
-<p>“Let them take it back to England, then, and peddle
-it out there,” ejaculates a third. “We will not have it
-forced down our throats,” he adds.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">[190]</span>“What sort of a drink would tea and salt water
-make?” suggests a man who is evidently losing patience;
-for it has grown dark, and the lamps shed a dim light
-throughout the unquiet crowd.</p>
-
-<p>“Good for John Rowe!” shout the bystanders approvingly,
-and as his words pass from mouth to mouth, the
-people laugh and clap.</p>
-
-<p>Presently a man of middle age speaks. At his first
-words every voice is hushed. Every eye is turned upon
-him. In a grave and steady voice he tells the people
-that their purpose to send the tea-ships home to England,
-with their cargoes untouched, has been thwarted
-by Governor Hutchinson, who refuses to give the vessels
-the pass, without which they cannot sail. “And
-now,” concludes this same grave and earnest voice, to
-which all eagerly listen, “<i>this meeting</i> can do nothing
-more to save the country.”</p>
-
-<p>There is a moment’s silence—a moment of keen disappointment,
-an ominous silence.</p>
-
-<p>Then some one in the gallery cries out, in a ringing
-voice, “Boston Harbor a tea-pot to-night! Hurrah
-for Griffin’s Wharf!”</p>
-
-<p>Instantly, before the people are aware what is intended,
-an Indian war-whoop pierces the air; and,
-starting at the signal, no one seems to know whence or
-how, half a hundred men, having their faces smeared
-with soot, and disguised as Indian warriors, brandishing
-hatchets and shouting as they run, pour through Milk
-Street, followed by the crowd, turn down to Griffin’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_191">[191]</span>
-Wharf, where the tea-ships lie, clamber on board, take
-off the hatches in a hurry, and while some pass up the
-chests from the hold others smash and pitch them overboard.
-Crash go the hatchets, splash goes the tea.
-Splash! splash! Every one works for dear life, earnest
-and determined.</p>
-
-<p>Never were ships more quickly unloaded. The
-frightened captains and crews were told to go below
-and stay there if they would not be harmed. They
-obeyed. No one but the fishes drank that tea.</p>
-
-<p>After finishing their work the lads who had been
-making a tea-pot of Boston Harbor marched gaily
-back to town to the music of a fife. While on their
-way they passed by the residence of Mad Montagu,
-the British admiral who commanded all the fleet of
-war-ships then lying at anchor within gunshot of the
-town. The admiral threw up his window, thrust out
-his head, and halloed:</p>
-
-<p>“Well, boys, you have had a fine, pleasant evening
-for your Indian caper, haven’t you? But mind, you’ve
-got to pay the fiddler yet!”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, never mind, Squire!” shouted Pitts, the leader.
-“Just come out here, if you please, and we’ll settle the
-bill in two minutes.”</p>
-
-<p>The admiral shut his window in a hurry, and the tea-party,
-with a laugh for the admiral, marched on. He
-was fond of a fight, but thought it best to decline this
-invitation.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_192">[192]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">HOW THE WARNING WAS GIVEN<a id="FNanchor_15" href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">[O]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Mabel Nelson Thurston</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>In this story an old-fashioned “courting-stick” in the hands of a
-quick-witted girl is the means of saving patriot lives and ammunition.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE time was the year of Lexington and Concord,
-and the place, a little village not many miles
-away. Already men’s faces were stern and women’s
-eyes dim with sorrow; only the little children played
-on and knew no difference.</p>
-
-<p>Dolly Pearson scorned the name of child, yet the
-thought of war brought to her only a sense of exhilaration.
-She had no father or brother to lose; but neither
-had Elizabeth who had not smiled these three months.
-Why? John Thurlow had said no word of enlisting.
-A shame it was, too—thought Dolly—and he a strong
-man with naught to bind him!</p>
-
-<p>“Betty,” said Dolly, who was helping her sister to
-tidy the best room, “why does not John enlist? There,
-’tis said now—I just had to! I’ve been waiting and
-waiting because I feared to hurt you by the question!”</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth turned her quiet face to the saucy one,
-and smiled a little sadly down at the girl. “John will<span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">[193]</span>
-go soon,” she said. “He is but tarrying till the time be
-ripe.”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, right glad am I to know it!” cried Dolly. “I
-always liked John Thurlow, but had he been a coward——”
-She stopped, amazed at Elizabeth’s look.</p>
-
-<p>“Never name coward and John Thurlow in the same
-breath again!” she said, vehemently, with wrathful face.</p>
-
-<p>Dolly ran over to her sister repentantly. “Betty, I
-meant nothing. I could not understand his tarrying,
-that was all. It is because he is going that you have
-looked so sober lately.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” said Elizabeth, burying her face in her blue
-apron. Dolly stared. She never cried herself, and never
-had she seen her sister cry, save when their father died.
-Something of the solemn feeling she had then had now
-silenced her, and she stood smoothing Elizabeth’s hand
-until the girl looked up.</p>
-
-<p>“There, Dolly, get to work,” she said, “and be glad
-you are not old enough to understand.”</p>
-
-<p>Dolly went pouting to her work—at fourteen she
-didn’t like being thought young! Presently something
-diverted her thoughts. It was a hollow rod, eight feet
-long and an inch in diameter, with a queer mouth and
-ear-piece at each end—an old-time courting-stick that
-had belonged to her grandmother. Dolly held it across
-to Elizabeth, her face dimpling with mischief.</p>
-
-<p>“Try it, Betty!” she pleaded. “I want to see if it
-sounds as well as ever.”</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth held it to her ear, while Dolly’s saucy lips<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">[194]</span>
-touched the other end. “Betty,” she whispered, “are
-you not glad that you and John don’t have to use this
-stick?” Elizabeth dropped it impatiently.</p>
-
-<p>“You heard,” Dolly said innocently. “That was
-what I desired to know. But you might have said
-something to me!”</p>
-
-<p>When Elizabeth’s color came and went, as now, there
-was no girl like her in the village. Indeed, at all times
-she was prettiest, thought loyal Dolly, studying her next
-day, as they all walked to meeting—Elizabeth in a
-sprigged muslin and a bonnet with rose-colored ribbons.
-How beautiful she looked as she went to the singers’
-seats! John Thurlow sat there, too.</p>
-
-<p>By turning a little in the pew, Dolly could see the
-singers’ seats, and half the congregation as well. So of
-course she saw Eunice Winter come in, and with her
-a strange young man, who soon perceived the pretty
-face under the rose-colored ribbons, and glanced at it
-frequently.</p>
-
-<p>Sometimes Dolly changed her position and studied
-the queer old pulpit, with its winding stairs and the
-roofing overhead. There was a loft in the roof, and
-squirrels and birds came in there. Suddenly Dolly
-gave a start, and a look of delight shone in her eyes.
-After that she heard not even the Parson’s “Finally,”
-and only came to herself when the people rose to depart.
-Then she pulled her sister’s dress.</p>
-
-<p>“Betty, do hasten!” she pleaded. “I have something
-to tell you.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">[195]</span>Elizabeth glanced down at the excited face.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, Dolly?” she asked, anxiety sharpening
-her quiet voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Come,” urged Dolly, “away from the others! I
-<i>must</i> tell you!”</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth followed her sister to a corner of the
-meeting-house yard, where they were alone.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it, Dolly?” Betty asked again, shaken out
-of her usual calm.</p>
-
-<p>Dolly leaned forward. “Tell John Thurlow I know
-where his muskets are,” she said, “and if they be not
-careful, others will know it, too!”</p>
-
-<p>Elizabeth caught the girl’s hand tightly.</p>
-
-<p>“How knew you that, Dolly?” she asked, a great
-fear choking her. Dolly could be trusted, but many
-Royalists in the neighborhood were seeking just this
-knowledge!</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” said Dolly, delighted at the importance of her
-discovery, “I saw something gleaming through a crack
-in the roofing. I thought at first ’twas the sunlight,
-but presently I noted some dust in the pew. I put
-my hand down and picked some up and tasted it, and
-although I be ‘so young,’ I know powder. Why
-didn’t you tell me? I’d have died sooner than betray
-it!” Her eyes were flashing through tears.</p>
-
-<p>“I know it, little sister,” said Elizabeth. “I would
-trust you as soon as myself. But do you not see it
-would be foolish to take more than were necessary into
-the secret?”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">[196]</span>“Ye-es,” admitted Dolly reluctantly, and then with
-the old mischievous smile, she added: “Betty, was it
-necessary for you to know it?”</p>
-
-<p>“You have a sadly undisciplined tongue, Dolly,”
-said Betty, coloring.</p>
-
-<p>“But you do not fear to trust me,” said Dolly as they
-walked slowly back across the yard. Then the undisciplined
-tongue reasserted itself.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you note the fine gallant Eunice Winter had to-day?”
-she asked.</p>
-
-<p>“I saw there was a stranger.”</p>
-
-<p>“He scarce took his eyes from a bonnet with rose-colored
-ribbons. And he is much finer-seeming than
-John Thurlow, Betty!”</p>
-
-<p>“Now, Dolly, you’re going too far,” said Elizabeth
-sternly. “What would mother say? It is downright
-wicked to have such thoughts in the house of God.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t get cross,” pleaded Dolly coaxingly. “I
-paid heed to the parson, and I can tell you the text.
-And for the other matter, time will show if I be wrong,”
-and with a saucy nod she broke away and joined her
-mother.</p>
-
-<p>Time did show. Whatever might be the fault of
-Mistress Dolly’s tongue, her eyes were seldom mistaken.
-Before a week was over the strange gentleman had met
-Elizabeth and he soon fell into the habit of calling almost
-daily. His name was Henry Robbins, and he was
-Eunice Winter’s cousin, visiting there for a month, he
-said.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">[197]</span>All Dolly’s admiration for him vanished on the day
-she suspected he was a Royalist. He had never
-avowed it, but the girl detected a look in his eyes when
-she spoke of Lexington that brought her to her feet in
-great excitement.</p>
-
-<p>“I believe you’re a Royalist!” she exclaimed, with
-flashing eyes. “If not, why are you tarrying here
-when the need is so sore? I think a man who tarries
-unconcerned is a coward!”</p>
-
-<p>“Dolly!” remonstrated Elizabeth.</p>
-
-<p>“I do,” answered Dolly angrily. “And I hate cowards!
-You can excuse me if you will, Betty, but I
-would say it all over again to the king’s face!” and she
-ran out of the room.</p>
-
-<p>The young man looked a little disturbed.</p>
-
-<p>“I pray you overlook the child’s quick tongue,”
-Elizabeth said. “She is an eager little rebel, and loses
-control of herself.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I am not troubled by a child’s idle talk,” he
-said. “I admire her spirit. Yet I feel I scarce deserve
-the lash of her words.”</p>
-
-<p>“I judge no man who follows his conscience. God
-will direct the right,” said Elizabeth gently.</p>
-
-<p>With that he had to be content. Yet as he walked
-down the road he switched impatiently at the daisies
-beside it, and felt ill-satisfied with the part he was
-playing. To live among these people solely to discover
-their preparations for war revolted him, and he did so
-only at the positive order of his general.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">[198]</span>But as days went on, he began to despair. No slightest
-clue could he get of the whereabouts of the stores
-he knew were being collected. Then one day, as he
-was about to return to Boston, a scrap of paper was
-slipped into his hand by a boy, who immediately
-scampered away. Captain Robbins was standing with
-a group of men at the tavern waiting for the mail-coach,
-and he carelessly untwisted and read the note:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>Search the loft of the meeting-house. A servant of his
-majesty.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>A quick glow came into the young man’s face. John
-Thurlow was standing near and looked at him a little
-curiously. “Good news, judging from your face,”
-said John.</p>
-
-<p>“Aye, the best,” the Royalist said slowly. And
-never did John Thurlow forget the curious tone and
-look of the Tory.</p>
-
-<p>It was no difficult matter to examine the loft, which
-was found nearly full of arms and powder. But Robbins
-did not choose to seize the munitions; he hoped
-to convict Thurlow, at least, if none of the others. He
-set spies on the church, meaning to capture any of the
-king’s enemies who might attempt to take away arms.</p>
-
-<p>Then another note came to him:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>On Monday next there will be a midnight meeting in the
-loft. It might interest the captain to attend.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p>It was Saturday afternoon then. One of the Royalists
-happened to be passing the house; the captain called
-him, and the two young men swung into step down the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">[199]</span>
-road to the meeting-house. Dolly Pearson stood watching
-the two as they walked quickly away; then some
-suspicion came to her from their gestures. She tried
-to dismiss it as foolish, but tried in vain.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly she started off on a run across the fields.
-When she reached the meeting-house her breath was
-coming in heavy gasps. The building was open for
-one of its rare sweepings, but no one was in sight just
-then. The girl ran in and up the winding stairs and
-crouched down behind the pulpit, and lay there listening
-and trying to still the noisy beating of her heart.</p>
-
-<p>It seemed ages that she crouched there; perhaps she
-had been mistaken—they might not have been coming
-here—then she started at the sound of voices. She
-dared not peer out. She held herself rigid and listened—listened
-for the life of John Thurlow whom Elizabeth
-loved.</p>
-
-<p>“Forty muskets and seven kegs of powder,” said one
-voice.</p>
-
-<p>“Aye, and Thurlow and his recruits to take all on
-Monday night?”</p>
-
-<p>“Hist!” said the captain, looking round uneasily.
-“Walls have ears. Monday at midnight you will have
-a strong band ready. We will surround the meeting-house,
-and then——”</p>
-
-<p>“Down with the rebels! And the pay, captain?”</p>
-
-<p>“Trust His Majesty for that. You can have my own
-share, too. Success is enough for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“That and a fair field to Betty Pearson’s favor,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">[200]</span>
-laughed the other. “You are not the only one that
-would like to see John Thurlow out of the way!”</p>
-
-<p>“Then shall I earn their gratitude,” answered
-Robbins.</p>
-
-<p>Dolly was trembling, and it did not seem as if
-she could control herself much longer; but soon they
-went away. Then she had to rest long in one of the
-pews to quiet her nerves.</p>
-
-<p>“What ails you, Dolly?” her mother exclaimed, when
-she saw her. “You look too ill to stand! You ought
-to go straight to bed while I brew some herbs for you.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, mother, I can’t go to bed,” said Dolly. “I
-must see John!”</p>
-
-<p>“Would I were John!” said a mocking voice.</p>
-
-<p>Dolly’s heart sank within her. She had not noticed
-the captain as she entered. With an effort she summoned
-one of her saucy smiles.</p>
-
-<p>“Good-even, Mr. Robbins—this is an unexpected
-pleasure! You have not been here for so long—why,
-not since yesterday!”</p>
-
-<p>“Come and entertain me, since I please you so much,”
-laughed the captain.</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Dolly, “it would not be proper to show it.
-I prefer to talk to Betty.”</p>
-
-<p>“And I prefer you should talk to me,” said the captain,
-and there was a note in his voice that startled
-Dolly. She imagined that she was suspected. The
-color had come back to her face now, and her eyes were
-blazing. Somehow—how, she had not the least idea—she<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">[201]</span>
-must warn John to-night. To-morrow would be
-too late, for the captain was on his guard.</p>
-
-<p>She leaned back in a corner of the big settle, with a
-saucy laugh answered his teasing, and gradually regained
-control of herself. Yet all her will could not
-keep the color from flying to her face when she heard
-John’s step. She bent down and played with the
-kitten at her feet.</p>
-
-<p>“Miss Dolly was desiring your presence, Mr. Thurlow,”
-said the captain.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh,” said Dolly carelessly, “never mind, John.
-That was an hour ago.”</p>
-
-<p>Thurlow smiled good-humoredly at her, knowing her
-to be whimsical. She sat wondering how she could get
-the message to him. Write it? Even could she do so
-unobserved she would have no opportunity to give it
-to him; of that she was certain. Equally sure was she
-that she would not be allowed to leave the room
-alone.</p>
-
-<p>Suddenly a thought came to her and filled her with
-glee. “Oh, Mr. Robbins!” she cried. “Have you ever
-seen our courting-stick?”</p>
-
-<p>“Courting-stick? What might that be?”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll show you,” she answered, starting up. “’Tis
-in the best room.”</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, let me get it for you,” he said, rising.</p>
-
-<p>“How can you, if you know it not when you see it?”
-she retorted. “But you may come, too.” She felt
-a wicked delight in hearing the captain’s muttered<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">[202]</span>
-exclamations as he followed her into the dim best
-room, stumbling over table and chairs on the way.</p>
-
-<p>“Did you hurt yourself, Mr. Robbins?” she exclaimed,
-in a tone of commiseration. “Trouble yourself
-no more; I have the rod. Here, John,” she added,
-when they had returned, “take the other end while I
-show Mr. Robbins how our grandfathers courted.”</p>
-
-<p>John took the rod and Dolly put her lips to her own
-end. “John,” she whispered, “betray no surprise
-for your life! Mr. Robbins knows about the meeting-house
-loft, and is to lead a band of men to take
-you Monday night. Pretend you cannot hear this
-well.”</p>
-
-<p>John looked up in apparent perplexity. “The old
-rod is out of use,” he said. “Speak louder, Dolly.”</p>
-
-<p>The captain, with a suspicious look, pressed nearer.</p>
-
-<p>“John,” she called, “are you sorry courting-sticks
-are out of fashion?”</p>
-
-<p>“A chilly custom, truly,” said the captain. “Don’t
-you think, Miss Dolly, it was rather hard on the happy
-pair?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, no,” said Dolly. “Take the other end, Mr.
-Robbins, and see the convenience of it.”</p>
-
-<p>The captain took John’s place, but he could not
-catch the faint whisper.</p>
-
-<p>“I could not hear the words,” he said.</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, I’ll try again,” said Dolly obligingly.</p>
-
-<p>This time the captain turned away with an amused
-laugh. “Cool heart that could carry on love-making<span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">[203]</span>
-at such a length,” he said. “It is a rare curiosity,
-though. Shall I carry it back, Miss Dolly?”</p>
-
-<p>“It needs not to be put away now,” Elizabeth said,
-and Dolly had to give up the pleasure of making the
-captain stumble again in the dark.</p>
-
-<p>As the clock struck nine John rose, and the captain
-with him. Dolly laughed as away through the darkness
-strode the two men whose fortunes had changed
-strangely since they trod the same road a couple of
-hours before.</p>
-
-<p>Three hours later a strange party in the meeting-house
-silently lowered the powder casks and muskets
-and carried them to carts outside. When morning
-broke the munitions were stored again five miles away.
-The men were in their usual places when the Sabbath
-service began.</p>
-
-<p>John gave one quick look at Dolly, and she was
-satisfied. He did not go near her after the service,
-but one and another of the men came and spoke to
-her. They said no word of why they spoke, but she
-knew, and her heart swelled with pride as she counted
-the bravest of the place among the number. They
-were true patriots, then! She never would doubt them
-again, never!</p>
-
-<p>The next night Captain Robbins met his men near
-the church. Nothing was stirring. The captain began
-to look black.</p>
-
-<p>One of the men entered through a window and flung
-the door open. They strode into the empty room.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">[204]</span>
-The noise of their footsteps seemed to echo and re-echo.
-All was solemnity of silence. In spite of themselves,
-they were awed by the time and the place.</p>
-
-<p>“At least,” said Captain Robbins hoarsely, “we
-will take the stores.” He climbed eagerly to the loft
-ahead of the others. “Your light, Wilson,” he called.</p>
-
-<p>The man handed it up and Robbins held it high above
-his head. A few startled swallows whirred around him
-and a mouse ran out of some straw on the floor. But
-that was all.</p>
-
-<p>There were two visitors at the Pearsons’ the next day.
-One was the captain who called to say farewell. His
-holiday was up, he said, and he must go back to Boston.
-Dolly watched him as he rode away. Once he
-turned and waved to her. “Good-bye, my little enemy,”
-he called.</p>
-
-<p>The next one was John Thurlow. He caught Dolly’s
-hands in his strong grip and looked down at her so
-that she colored and tried to get away.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Dolly!” said Elizabeth, in surprise.</p>
-
-<p>“Has she not told you?” asked John. “She is the
-bravest little maid I ever saw. I know not, even now,
-how much her quick wit has saved.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” said Dolly, looking up, her mischief as usual
-conquering her confusion. “I am naught but a little
-rebel firebrand—Mr. Robbins said so. And Mr. Robbins
-knows everything except the use of courting-sticks!”</p>
-
-<p>She broke away and ran quickly down the lane. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">[205]</span>
-air was full of soft summer noises, and the leaves
-and blossoms were stirring and flashing and playing
-in the sunlight, and the day was golden—golden!
-She drew a long breath of content. She was so happy
-to be alive and to have helped a little.</p>
-
-<p>“For I always shall be a rebel as long as I live,” she
-declared.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">[206]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">SUSAN TONGS<a id="FNanchor_16" href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">[P]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Ethel Parton</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>The author says of Susan that she “was a sociable soul, if occasionally
-a bit difficult”—and we welcome her to our gathering of
-patriotic heroes and heroines.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE lower half-door of the Thurrell house side
-porch was closed because Susan Tong’s ball of
-yarn, which was always slipping from her vast and rotund
-knees, had a way of hopping down the steps if the
-door were left open. Because the garden-path sloped,
-the ball, if once started, would roll far beyond even the
-longest reach of the odd implement with twin handles
-at one end, flat nippers at the other, and a middle
-length of extensible iron latticework, which had earned
-Susan, properly the Widow Thurrell, the name by which
-she was commonly known. But the upper half of the
-broad, green-painted door was set wide to the streaming
-sunshine of a mild October afternoon of 1776.</p>
-
-<p>Just within the door showed the chintz back, gay
-with red-patterned palm-leaves, of the huge armchair
-in which sat Susan Tongs herself, her smooth bands of
-red hair just showing beneath her cap, her small, light
-eyes lifted from her work to the golden autumnal landscape,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">[207]</span>
-her triple chin descending upon a snowy amplitude
-of kerchief, and a pair of long steel needles clicking
-in her two fat hands.</p>
-
-<p>Susan possessed two distinctions: she was the fattest
-person in the village, and she was the only fat person
-in it who had not an easy-going disposition. Too unwieldy
-for many years past to move about upon her
-little feet and weak ankles without the assistance of her
-crutch-handled staff, her utmost exertion was to cross
-the road to the meeting-house on Sundays; week-days
-she spent in her chair, directing the household tasks of
-her pretty niece, Tamsine, who did not have a very easy
-life of it.</p>
-
-<p>Susan Thurrell, everybody said, had been notably
-brisk and light of foot in her youth, and the burden of
-flesh which had come upon her in later life was particularly
-unwelcome, and far from being accompanied by a
-corresponding increase in mental grace. She was certainly
-very exacting.</p>
-
-<p>Just what her weight was no one knew; her own guess
-was “nigh about two hundred and fifty,” but there were
-many who vowed it was three hundred if it was a pound.</p>
-
-<p>A mottled hen which had somehow got into the garden
-patch caught Susan’s eye, and a shadow of anger
-overcast her wide face. The creature was clucking its
-way, followed by a lone chicken, directly toward her
-favorite bed of sweet herbs. She shouted a husky
-“Shoo,” but without effect; then she caught up her
-“lazy man’s tongs,” which lay near.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">[208]</span>Quickly compressing the handles, she shot the tip
-out to its farthest extent and picked up with it a crust
-of bread fallen from the dinner-table and overlooked, for
-Tamsey, the orderly caretaker, had been called away
-in haste that day to a sick neighbor. This crust she
-flung at the invader. The hen squawked and ran, but
-presently returned to peck cheerfully at the missile.</p>
-
-<p>Still wheezing from the exertion of a rapid movement,
-Susan uttered a grunt of disgust, and with lazy-tongs
-still in hand glanced about for something else
-to throw. As she turned to look behind her chair
-she saw, at the far end of the room, leaning against the
-mantelpiece to which he seemed to cling for support,
-a young man, scarcely more than a boy, very pale and
-breathing heavily, and with a queerly mingled look of
-courage and terror in his eyes.</p>
-
-<p>“Othniel Purdie!” she cried. “What are you doing
-in my kitchen?”</p>
-
-<p>He only panted, and she stared at him in amazement
-fast deepening to suspicion.</p>
-
-<p>“Why ain’t you with General Washington?” she
-demanded. “What are you back here in Norley for?
-Folks said you’d run away to join the army. Don’t
-you know there’s a British camp at the other end of
-the town, and British officers quartered at Parson
-Hackett’s and Marchant Cole’s? What are you here
-for?—and looking scared as a hunted rabbit! I never
-liked you, and I won’t have you hanging around my
-niece, Tamsey; but I do hope to Providence you’ve not<span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">[209]</span>
-deserted. I couldn’t bear to think any Norley boy
-would do that. Speak up, can’t you? What are you
-here for?”</p>
-
-<p>“I haven’t deserted,” the young fellow managed to
-say, “and I know well enough the place is full of redcoats.
-They want me, and I’m afraid they’ll get me,
-and it’s all up if they do.”</p>
-
-<p>“Want you? What for?” She looked at him again,
-and between her heavy cheeks and the overhanging
-roll of her eyebrows a gleam of fiery intelligence came
-into her two little gray-blue eyes, small and hard and
-wise, like an elephant’s.</p>
-
-<p>“Where’s your uniform? What are you holding to
-the front of your shirt for? Have you papers there?
-Despatches? Are you trying to steal through the
-lines? That’s the same as spying, isn’t it? Good
-mercy, you’ll be hanged; of course you will!”</p>
-
-<p>He had not needed to answer any of her quick questions
-in words; she took the answer from his eyes without
-waiting, and scolded on: “And I suppose you
-stopped here for a sight of Tamsey, but she’s away and
-you won’t see her, and glad I am of that. The zanies
-boys are! You’d better slip away quick and hide till
-dark; there’s a place in the shed loft where nobody——”</p>
-
-<p>He interrupted her. “I can’t get there. I can’t go
-any farther. I’ve sprained my ankle and I fainted
-twice getting here the back way from Royd’s wood-lot,
-where I dodged them and they lost me. But they
-haven’t given it up, and I heard them say they’d search<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">[210]</span>
-every house in the village. But this was the only
-place I could get away to, and so I came. I can’t go
-any farther; I’ll faint again if I try. I thought maybe
-Tamsey’d hide me. I know you don’t like me, Mrs.
-Thurrell, but I thought you’d let her, when it was life
-and death—and there are the papers——”</p>
-
-<p>“Give them to me,” said Susan.</p>
-
-<p>“Here—I know you’ll take good care of them, at any
-rate, and you’ll send them on by a safe hand if I’m
-taken, won’t you, Mrs. Thurrell?”</p>
-
-<p>“Mmm!” grunted Susan. “Twist them up and toss
-them in the woodbox there with the kindlings—it’s
-in plain sight and won’t be thought of. Now we’ve got
-to hurry—hurry—hurry, if we’re going to save that neck
-of yours; and, land, what a poor pair we are for hurrying!”</p>
-
-<p>Laughing fiercely, and gripping the arms of her seat,
-Susan had risen painfully as she talked, and now, supporting
-herself on her staff, stood up and shoved the
-great chair a little to one side. A trap-door showed in
-the floor where it had stood, and she explained quickly
-that the kitchen had been a later addition to the house;
-that the main cellar did not extend beneath it, but
-that there was below a small, square pit for storage,
-large enough to conceal a man at need.</p>
-
-<p>Then, crying to Othniel to catch, she tossed him her
-crutch-stick, and leaning heavily upon it, he crossed the
-room to her side. Directing him to lean on the chair,
-she resumed her staff, and, reversing it, hooked open the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">[211]</span>
-trap-door with the crutch end, and signed to him to descend.</p>
-
-<p>He hesitated. “They’ll find it,” he said; “it’s in plain
-sight as soon as your chair is moved. If I must be
-caught, I’d rather be caught above ground than hauled
-out of a hole, like a woodchuck.”</p>
-
-<p>“You go down,” said Susan grimly, “I’m going to
-put that chair back and sit in it; and move it they
-don’t neither, not if they’re the whole British army!”</p>
-
-<p>He lowered himself to the edge and slipped down,
-wincing and biting his lips as he curled up in the little
-square space, adjusting his injured ankle in his hand.
-For a moment his clear eyes looked up to Susan’s with
-gratitude and appeal; then the lid closed. He heard
-shoving and shuffling and the settling of a heavy weight
-in place overhead, and after that the swift and steady
-click of knitting-needles.</p>
-
-<p>A young English officer, accompanied by a sergeant
-and four soldiers, coming briskly up the garden-path
-not ten minutes later, found Susan Tongs knitting
-as usual, just within her doorway. She scarcely glanced
-up while the officer, a youngster hardly older than
-Othniel, briefly stated his errand and demanded admittance;
-but when he had concluded, she shot him an
-indignant look.</p>
-
-<p>“Search my house!” she cried. “Do you suppose I
-want your soldiers’ dirty fingers poking in my linen-chest
-and overhauling my gowns and petticoats, all to
-find a good-for-nothing lad that’s been forbid the place<span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">[212]</span>
-this two years? Ask any of the neighbors what were
-the last words I had with Othniel Purdie, and whether
-he’s likely to be hiding here or not—ask ’em! I don’t
-believe you even think he’s here. I believe it’s an excuse
-to steal my property and drink my cider. How
-should he be here? Last folks heard, he was off to
-General Washington—God bless him——”</p>
-
-<p>“What! What!” cried the young officer, lifting his
-eyebrows and laughing. Susan set her teeth and
-clicked her needles hard. “We hear there’s a pretty
-niece of yours, who’s not so hard on the young man,”
-he went on; “and since you’re so frankly a rebel yourself,
-Mrs. Tongs, you’ll admit it’s not a bad guess that
-she may have coaxed you into protecting even a lover
-you don’t like, when he’s doing spy’s work for your
-admired General Washington. I shall certainly search
-the house.”</p>
-
-<p>“My name is Mrs. Thurrell, young man; it’s only
-old friends and neighbors who may call me ‘Susan
-Tongs,’” answered Susan dryly. “And no coaxing
-of my silly niece, Tamsey—not if she coaxed from now
-till judgment—should drive me to harboring any lad
-against my will. I do as I please in my own house.
-But she’s a soft thing, and young, and it’s possible she
-might have slyed him in by the back way, if he’s really
-in town and hiding; you see I sit here all day, and could
-little tell what went on in the rest of the house.</p>
-
-<p>“The notion of Othniel Purdie stowed away in secret
-in cupboard or closet of mine pleases me no more than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">[213]</span>
-it does you,” she scolded on; “so on second thoughts
-you may search and welcome, provided only you look
-well after your men and see there’s no mauling of my
-quilts and calicoes—manners, sir, manners! Would
-you shove by a woman, hat cocked, on her own threshold,
-when she has bidden you to come in? Keep back,
-or come properly!” for the young lieutenant, impatient
-of further talk, had started to push past Susan, whose
-great chair and person almost blocked the way, and
-had made a sign to a soldier as if commanding him to
-assist in removing the obstacle.</p>
-
-<p>But before the soldier could mount the steps, and
-quick as the officer’s hand touched her chair, Susan
-had snatched up her lazy-tongs—there was a snap, a
-glint of shining dark metal, and the nippers clicked
-together within an inch of his ear. He uttered a dismayed
-oath and leaped backward down the low steps,
-where he would have fallen had not the grinning soldier
-caught him in his arms.</p>
-
-<p>Recovering himself, he cried, furiously, “Put down
-that pistol!”</p>
-
-<p>Susan smiled a grandmotherly smile and gently
-shook her head.</p>
-
-<p>The soldier’s grin broadened. “’Twa’n’t a pistol,
-sir,” he explained respectfully. “I don’t know what
-it was; but ’twa’n’t a pistol.”</p>
-
-<p>“Let me pass!” said the officer, reassured but mortified,
-and springing again up the steps. “Move aside
-and let me pass, woman!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_214">[214]</span>“Woman, and an old woman,” answered Susan
-serenely, “and surely you may pass, for I told you so.
-But a woman of my weight moves slowly, and it behooves
-a young gentleman to show patience. I will
-be treated civilly under my own roof; and I won’t
-budge an inch for a swaggering boy with his hat on—there!”
-she continued, as he thrust roughly by, squeezed
-nearly flat between the armchair and the door-jamb,
-“there’s for your impudence!”</p>
-
-<p>This time her aim was better, and the tongs snicked
-sharply together with the tip of his queue between them,
-with the result that, as he pushed on and Susan held
-fast, his head was sharply jerked, and his gilt-laced
-hat fell off at her feet. With a leisurely closing of the
-nippers, Susan picked it up and put it on the table.</p>
-
-<p>“You can have it again when you go,” she said
-soothingly, as if speaking to a fretful child. “And will
-you ask your man there to go round to the other door?
-As you have just found, young sir, this door’s scarcely
-wide enough for two, when I am one of them, and he is
-stouter than you.”</p>
-
-<p>For a moment, red and angry, the young fellow glared
-upon her fiercely; but she met his look with one so
-steady, placid, and grandmotherly, yet with a glimmer
-of humor in it, too, that his wrath suddenly vanished
-in a burst of boyish laughter. He signed to the soldier
-to go round to the back door, as the others had already
-done, and held out his hand for Susan’s lazy-tongs,
-which he played with curiously, snapping and nipping<span class="pagenum" id="Page_215">[215]</span>
-with them at the air, while he directed the elaborate
-search of the lower rooms. Then they all went upstairs
-together, and heavy feet were heard clumping
-through the bedrooms for a long time. At last the
-stairs creaked, and they descended.</p>
-
-<p>“Did your soldiers handle my linen?” asked Susan
-eagerly, with a face of deep, housewifely anxiety. “I
-suppose they have tumbled the whole chestful out in
-a heap.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, indeed—we’ve scarcely shaken out the lavender,”
-the lieutenant answered, smiling pleasantly;
-adding, with a glance of mock terror at the tongs,
-“May I have my hat?”</p>
-
-<p>“Let your sergeant go to the pantry first, if you
-please. I can’t wait on you myself, but there are
-doughnuts and a jug of sweet cider on the shelf, at your
-service,” she replied hospitably, and as it was the last
-house of the village, and they had no further searching
-to do, they accepted the modest treat gratefully, and
-the four soldiers gathered, munching and sipping, around
-the kitchen fire in most friendly fashion.</p>
-
-<p>No shadow of suspicion remained, but the mischievous
-young commander lifted his mug, and saying,
-“This is for the pull you gave my hair, Mrs. Thurrell,
-and no punishment at that if you were a properly
-loyal subject,” he drank to the king’s health.</p>
-
-<p>“Pour out a mug for me, too, sergeant,” demanded
-Susan, with sparkling eyes; but as the man tipped the
-pitcher to obey, his officer stopped him.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_216">[216]</span>“No, no!” he cried, laughing and waving it aside.
-“She will drink to General Washington!”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, that she would, young sir!” said Susan Tongs.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>Next day, with his precious despatches rescued from
-the woodbox and his ankle much better, Othniel escaped
-in a patriotic neighbor’s load of hay. After the
-war ended he married Tamsey, with no opposition from
-Susan, whose temper softened with time, and who, ever
-after having saved him, lavished upon him an affection
-as great as her former dislike.</p>
-
-<p>Indeed, it was a joke in the household—for they
-shared one home—that Aunt Susan was never cross
-now unless Tamsey forgot to give her husband his
-favorite kind of cake for supper, or left a rent in his
-coat unmended longer then five minutes after he took
-it off! Then there was a tempest. But Tamsey was
-so fond both of Othniel and Susan Tongs that she could
-let it rage about her quite untroubled, duteously veiling
-her amusement, and listening with an air of meek respect
-until it spent itself, and peace returned.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">[217]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THE LITTLE MINUTE-MAN<a id="FNanchor_17" href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">[Q]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">H. G. Paine</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>We have all heard of the “minute-men,” but do you know about
-the little boy who played minute-man inside of a big grandfather’s
-clock, while the redcoats were waiting to capture his father?</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap2">ALL during the winter Brinton had been saying
-what he would do if the redcoats came, and grieving
-because his age, which was eight, prevented him
-from going with his father to fight under General
-Washington.</p>
-
-<p>Every night, when his mother tucked him in his bed
-and kissed him good-night, he told her not to be afraid,
-that he had promised his father to protect her, and
-he proposed to do it.</p>
-
-<p>His plan of action, in event of the sudden appearance
-of the enemy, varied somewhat from day to day, but
-in general outline it consisted of a bold show of force
-at the front gate and a flank attack by Towser, the dog.
-Should these tactics fail to discourage the British, he
-intended to retire behind a stone fort he had built on
-the lawn, between the two tall elms, and to fire stones
-at the invaders until they fell back in confusion, while
-his mother would look on and encourage him from the
-front porch.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">[218]</span>When the redcoats unexpectedly appeared in the
-distance, one afternoon in May, what Brinton really
-did was to run helter-skelter down the road, up the
-broad path to the house, through the front hall into
-the library, close the door, and then peep out of the
-window to watch them go by.</p>
-
-<p>When he first caught sight of the soldiers Brinton
-was sure that there was at least a regiment of them,
-but when they were opposite the front gate all that he
-could see were a corporal and three privates. Instead
-of keeping on their way, however, they turned up the
-path toward the house, and then it seemed to Brinton
-that they were the most gigantic human beings that he
-had ever seen.</p>
-
-<p>His mother was away for the day, and had taken
-Towser with her. This, together with the fact that the
-enemy were now between him and his fort, entirely
-spoiled Brinton’s plan of campaign, and he decided to
-seek at once some more secluded spot, and there to
-devise something to meet the changed conditions.
-But when he started to run out of the room, he found
-that in his hurry he had left the front door open, so
-that any one in the hall would be in plain sight of the
-soldiers, who were now very near.</p>
-
-<p>Unfortunately there was no other door by which
-Brinton could leave the room. What was worse,
-there was no closet in which he could hide. The soldiers
-were now so close at hand that he could hear their
-voices, and a glance through the window showed him<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">[219]</span>
-that two of them were going around to the back of the
-house, as if to cut off any possible escape in that direction.</p>
-
-<p>And his mother would not be back until six o’clock.
-Instinctively his eyes sought the face of the tall time-piece
-in the corner. It was just three; and he could
-hear the soldiers’ steps on the front porch!</p>
-
-<p>The clock!</p>
-
-<p>Surely there was room within its generous case for a
-very small boy. In less time than it takes to write it
-Brinton was inside, and had turned the button with
-which the door was fastened. As he pressed himself
-close against the door, so that there should be room for
-the pendulum to swing behind him, he heard the corporal
-enter the room. He knew it must be the corporal,
-because he ordered the other man to go upstairs
-and look around there, while he searched the room on
-the other side of the hall.</p>
-
-<p>Brinton could hear the footsteps of the men as they
-walked about the house, and their voices as they talked
-to each other. Then all was quiet for a long while.
-He was just on the point of peeping out when all four
-men entered the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Well,” said a voice that he recognized as the corporal’s,
-“it is plain there is no one at ’ome. Me own
-himpression is that the bird’s flown. ’E’s probably
-started back for camp, and the wife and the kid with
-’im. I don’t believe in payink no hattention to w’at
-them Tories says, nohow, goink back on their own neighbors—and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">[220]</span>
-kin, too, like as not. It’s just to curry favor
-with the hofficers, it’s me own hopinion. ’Ow did ’e
-know the Major was comink ’ome to-day, anyhow?”</p>
-
-<p>Nobody answered him. Perhaps he didn’t expect
-any one to.</p>
-
-<p>The Major! Brinton’s own father! He was coming
-home! This, then, was the surprise that his mother
-had said she would bring him when she went off with
-Towser in the morning to go to Colonel Shepard’s.
-And now those redcoats were going to sit there
-and wait until he came, and then—Brinton did not
-know what would happen, whether he would be shot
-on the spot, or merely put in prison for the rest of his
-life.</p>
-
-<p>Oh, if he could only get out and run to meet his father
-and warn him! But the men seemed to give no signs
-of leaving the room.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps he hasn’t come at all yet,” suggested
-one of the privates.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps ’e hasn’t,” answered the voice of the corporal;
-“but w’y, then, wouldn’t his folks be ’ere a-waitink
-for ’im? ’Owever, I’ll give ’im hevery chance.
-It’s now five-and-twenty minutes after three. I’ll
-give ’im huntil six, but if ’e doesn’t turn hup by then,
-we’ll start away for the shore without ’im.”</p>
-
-<p>“Six o’clock!” thought the boy in the clock. The
-very time his mother had told him she was going to
-be home again “with something very nice for him.”
-And now she and his brave papa would walk right into<span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">[221]</span>
-the arms of these dreadful English soldiers, and he
-could not stop them!</p>
-
-<p><i>Whang!</i></p>
-
-<p>What a noise! It startled Brinton so much that he
-nearly knocked the clock over; and then he realized
-that it was only the clock striking half-past three.</p>
-
-<p>Half-past three! He had been in there only half an
-hour, and already he was so tired he could hardly stand
-up. How could he ever endure it until four, until
-half-past four, five, six?</p>
-
-<p>“If only something, some accident even, will happen
-to detain papa and mamma!” he thought. But how
-much more likely, it occurred to him, that his father,
-having but a short leave of absence, would hasten, and
-arrive before six.</p>
-
-<p>“Tick-tock,” went the clock.</p>
-
-<p>“How slow, how very slow!” thought Brinton, and
-he wished there were only some way of hurrying up the
-time, so that the soldiers would go away.</p>
-
-<p>Still the soldiers stayed in the room, all but one, who
-had gone into the kitchen to watch from there.</p>
-
-<p>“Tick-tock,” went the clock, and “whang—whang—whang—whang!”
-Only four o’clock. Brinton began
-to fear that he could not hold out much longer.</p>
-
-<p>“Tick-tock,” went the clock. Each swing of the
-pendulum marked one second, Brinton’s mother had
-told him. If he could only make it swing quicker, so
-that the seconds would fly a little faster!</p>
-
-<p>“Why not try to?” Brinton was on the point of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">[222]</span>
-breaking down. He was desperate. He felt that he
-must do something. He took hold of the pendulum
-and gave it a little push. It yielded readily to his
-pressure. None of the soldiers seemed to notice it.
-He gave it another push. The result was the same.
-Brinton began to pick up courage, and he pushed the
-pendulum to and fro, to and fro, to and fro.</p>
-
-<p>He tried to keep it swinging at a perfectly even rate,
-and apparently he succeeded. At any rate, the soldiers
-appeared to notice nothing different. Yet Brinton was
-sure that he was causing the old clock to tick off
-its seconds at a considerably livelier gait than usual.
-Half-past four came almost before he knew it, but by
-five o’clock Brinton began to realize that he was very,
-very tired. He had been standing two hours already in
-that cramped, dark, close case, and he had pushed the
-pendulum first with one hand and then with the other in
-that narrow space until both felt sore and lame. Yet now
-that he had once begun, he did not dare leave off, and
-still it did not seem possible that he could keep it up.</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers had kept very quiet for a long time.
-Brinton thought that two of them must be napping.</p>
-
-<p>At five o’clock the soldier who was awake aroused
-the corporal and the other private, whom the corporal
-sent to relieve the man on guard in the kitchen.</p>
-
-<p>“I must ’ave slept mighty sound,” remarked the
-corporal. “I’d never believe I’d been asleep an hour,
-if I didn’t see it hon the clock.”</p>
-
-<p>“No soigns av any wan yit,” reported the man who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">[223]</span>
-had been in the kitchen, whom Brinton judged to be an
-Irishman. “Be’s ye going to wait till six?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes,” answered the corporal. “But no longer.”</p>
-
-<p>Then they began talking about the British fleet that
-was cruising in Long Island Sound, and about the ship
-on which they were temporarily quartered until they
-could join the main body of the army, and how a neighbor
-of Brinton’s father’s and mother’s had been down
-at the store when a ship’s boat had put in for water,
-and how he had told the officer in charge that Major
-Hall, Brinton’s father, was expected home for a few
-hours that day, and what a fine opportunity it would be
-to make an important capture.</p>
-
-<p>The clock struck half-past five.</p>
-
-<p>“H’m!” grunted the corporal. “It doesn’t seem that
-late; but, you know, you can’t tell anythink about anythink
-in this blarsted country.”</p>
-
-<p>Brinton now began to be very much afraid that his
-father would come before the soldiers left. He wanted
-to move the pendulum faster and faster, but after what
-the corporal had said he did not dare to. Then, when
-the men lapsed into silence, it suddenly came over
-Brinton how dreadfully weary he was, how all his bones
-ached, and how much, how very much, he wanted to
-cry. But he felt that his father’s only chance of safety
-lay in his keeping the pendulum swinging to and fro,
-to and fro.</p>
-
-<p>At last, however, came the welcome sound of the
-corporal’s voice bidding the men get ready to start.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">[224]</span>Whang—whang—whang—whang—whang—whang!</p>
-
-<p>“Fall in!” ordered the corporal. “Forward, march!”</p>
-
-<p>As the sound of their footsteps died away, Brinton,
-all of a tremble, opened the door of the clock and
-stumbled out. He knelt at the window and watched
-the retreating forms of the redcoats. As they disappeared
-down the road he heard a noise behind him,
-and jumped up with a start.</p>
-
-<p>There stood his father!</p>
-
-<p>The next instant Brinton was sobbing in his arms.</p>
-
-<p>Brinton’s mother came into the room. “Dear me!”
-she said; “what ever can be the matter with the clock?
-It’s half an hour fast.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">[225]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">GENERAL GAGE AND THE BOSTON BOYS<a id="FNanchor_18" href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">[R]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Samuel Adams Drake</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>A very short story, showing a British general’s admiration for
-American boys who were not afraid to stand up for their rights.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">PERHAPS you have heard that even in these old
-times the Boston boys were in the habit of coasting
-on the Common. They would build hills of snow
-and slide swiftly down to the Frog Pond. Well, the
-English soldiers had their camps on the Common, and
-from mere love of mischief would, when the boys had
-gone to school, destroy their coasting-ground. Incensed
-at having their sport thus meanly prevented, a
-delegation of boys went to General Gage about it.
-When shown into his presence he asked, with surprise,
-why so many children had come to see him.</p>
-
-<p>“We come, sir,” said the young spokesman, with a
-flushed face, “to ask a redress of our grievances.”</p>
-
-<p>“What!” said the general, “have your fathers been
-teaching you rebellion, and sent you here to utter it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Nobody sent us, sir,” replied the brave little fellow.
-“We have never injured or insulted your soldiers, but
-they have trodden down our snow-hills, and broken the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">[226]</span>
-ice on our skating-ground. We complained, and they
-called us young rebels, and told us to help ourselves if
-we could. Yesterday our works were destroyed for
-the third time, and now,” said the lad, with flashing
-eyes, “we will bear it no longer.”</p>
-
-<p>General Gage looked at the boys with undisguised
-admiration. Then, turning to an officer who stood
-near, he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p>“Good heavens, the very children draw in a love of
-liberty with the air they breathe.” To the lads he then
-said:</p>
-
-<p>“You may go, my brave boys; and be assured that
-if any of my troops hereafter molest you, they shall
-be severely punished.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">[227]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">WASHINGTON AND THE SPY<a id="FNanchor_19" href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">[S]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">James Fenimore Cooper</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>In this Revolutionary story of Cooper’s, the Spy was one of Washington’s
-most faithful helpers. The following pages tell of their
-last meeting, shortly before the close of the war.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE commencement of the year was passed, on the
-part of the Americans, in making great preparations,
-in conjunction with their allies, to bring the war
-to a close. In the south, Greene and Rawdon made a
-bloody campaign that was highly honorable to the
-troops of the latter, but which, by terminating entirely
-to the advantage of the former, proved him to be the
-better general of the two.</p>
-
-<p>New York was the point that was threatened by the
-allied armies; and Washington, by exciting a constant
-apprehension for the safety of that city, prevented
-such reënforcements from being sent to Cornwallis
-as would have enabled him to improve his success.</p>
-
-<p>At length, as autumn approached, every indication
-was given that the final moment had arrived.</p>
-
-<p>The French forces drew near to the royal lines, passing
-through the Neutral Ground, and threatened an
-attack in the direction of Kingsbridge, while large<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">[228]</span>
-bodies of Americans were acting in concert. By hovering
-around the British posts, and drawing nigh in the
-Jerseys, they seemed to threaten the royal forces from
-that quarter also. The preparations partook of the
-nature of both a siege and a storm. But Sir Henry
-Clinton, in the possession of intercepted letters from
-Washington, rested securely within his lines, and cautiously
-disregarded the solicitations of Cornwallis for
-succor.</p>
-
-<p>It was at the close of a stormy day in the month of
-September that a large assemblage of officers was collected
-near the door of a building that was situated in
-the heart of the American troops, who held the Jerseys.
-The age, the dress, and the dignity of deportment of
-most of these warriors indicated them to be of high
-rank; but to one in particular was paid a deference and
-obedience that announced him to be of the highest.
-His dress was plain, but it bore the usual military
-distinctions of command. He was mounted on a noble
-animal, of a deep bay, and a group of young men, in
-gayer attire, evidently awaited his pleasure, and did
-his bidding. Many a hat was lifted as its owner addressed
-this officer; and when he spoke, a profound attention,
-exceeding the respect of mere professional etiquette,
-was exhibited on every countenance. At length
-the General raised his own hat, and bowed gravely to all
-around him. The salute was returned, and the party
-dispersed, leaving the officer without a single attendant,
-except his body-servants and one aide-de-camp. Dismounting,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">[229]</span>
-he stepped back a few paces, and for a moment
-viewed the condition of his horse with the eye of
-one who well understood the animal, and then, casting
-a brief but expressive glance at his aide, he retired into
-the building, followed by that gentleman.</p>
-
-<p>On entering an apartment that was apparently fitted
-for his reception, he took a seat, and continued for a
-long time in a thoughtful attitude, like one in the habit
-of communing much with himself. During this silence
-the aide-de-camp stood in expectation of his orders.
-At length the General raised his eyes, and spoke in those
-low, placid tones that seemed natural to him:</p>
-
-<p>“Has the man whom I wished to see arrived, sir?”</p>
-
-<p>“He waits the pleasure of your Excellency.”</p>
-
-<p>“I will receive him here, and alone, if you please.”</p>
-
-<p>The aide bowed and withdrew. In a few minutes the
-door again opened, and a figure, gliding into the apartment,
-stood modestly at a distance from the General,
-without speaking. His entrance was unheard by the
-officer, who sat gazing at the fire, still absorbed in his
-own meditations. Several minutes passed, when he
-spoke to himself in an undertone:</p>
-
-<p>“To-morrow we must raise the curtain, and expose
-our plans. May heaven prosper them!”</p>
-
-<p>A slight movement made by the stranger caught his
-ear, and he turned his head, and saw that he was not
-alone. He pointed silently to the fire, toward which
-the figure advanced, although the multitude of his garments,
-which seemed more calculated for disguise than<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">[230]</span>
-comfort, rendered its warmth unnecessary. A second
-mild and courteous gesture motioned to a vacant chair,
-but the stranger refused it with a modest acknowledgment.
-Another pause followed, and continued for some
-time. At length the officer arose, and opening a desk
-that was laid upon the table near which he sat, took from
-it a small but apparently heavy bag.</p>
-
-<p>“Harvey Birch,” he said, turning to the stranger,
-“the time has arrived when our connection must cease;
-henceforth and forever we must be strangers.”</p>
-
-<p>The peddler dropped the folds of the greatcoat that
-concealed his features, and gazed for a moment earnestly
-at the face of the speaker; then dropping his head
-upon his bosom, he said meekly:</p>
-
-<p>“If it be your Excellency’s pleasure.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is necessary. Since I have filled the station
-which I now hold, it has become my duty to know
-many men, who, like yourself, have been my instruments
-in procuring intelligence. You have I trusted
-more than all; I early saw in you a regard to truth and
-principle, that, I am pleased to say, has never deceived
-me—you alone know my secret agents in the city,
-and on your fidelity depend, not only their fortunes,
-but their lives.”</p>
-
-<p>He paused, as if to reflect, in order that full justice
-might be done to the peddler, and then continued:</p>
-
-<p>“I believe you are one of the very few that I have
-employed who have acted faithfully to our cause; and,
-while you have passed as a spy of the enemy, have never<span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">[231]</span>
-given intelligence that you were not permitted to divulge.
-To me and to me only of all the world, you seem
-to have acted with a strong attachment to the liberties
-of America.”</p>
-
-<p>During this address Harvey gradually raised his head
-from his bosom, until it reached the highest point of
-elevation; a faint tinge gathered in his cheeks, and, as
-the officer concluded, it was diffused over his whole
-countenance in a deep glow, while he stood proudly
-swelling with his emotions, but with eyes that modestly
-sought the feet of the speaker.</p>
-
-<p>“It is now my duty to pay you for these services;
-hitherto you have postponed receiving your reward,
-and the debt has become a heavy one—I wish not to
-undervalue your dangers: here are a hundred doubloons;
-you will remember the poverty of our country, and attribute
-to it the smallness of your pay.”</p>
-
-<p>The peddler raised his eyes to the countenance of the
-speaker, but, as the other held forth the money, he
-moved back, as if refusing the bag.</p>
-
-<p>“It is not much for your services and risks, I acknowledge,”
-continued the General, “but it is all that
-I have to offer; at the end of the campaign it may be
-in my power to increase it.”</p>
-
-<p>“Does your Excellency think that I have exposed my
-life, and blasted my character, for money?”</p>
-
-<p>“If not for money, what then?”</p>
-
-<p>“What has brought your Excellency into the field?
-For what do you daily and hourly expose your precious<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">[232]</span>
-life to battle and the halter? What is there about me
-to mourn, when such men as you risk their all for our
-country? No, no, no, not a dollar of your gold will I
-touch; poor America has need of it all!”</p>
-
-<p>The bag dropped from the hand of the officer, and
-fell at the feet of the peddler, where it lay neglected during
-the remainder of the interview. The officer looked
-steadily at the face of his companion, and continued:</p>
-
-<p>“There are many motives which might govern me
-that to you are unknown. Our situations are different;
-I am known as the leader of armies—but you must descend
-into the grave with the reputation of a foe to your
-native land. Remember that the veil which conceals
-your true character cannot be raised in years—perhaps
-never.”</p>
-
-<p>Birch again lowered his face, but there was no yielding
-of the soul in the movement.</p>
-
-<p>“You will soon be old; the prime of your days is already
-past; what have you to subsist on?”</p>
-
-<p>“These!” said the peddler, stretching forth his hands
-that were already embrowned with toil.</p>
-
-<p>“But those may fail you; take enough to secure a
-support to your age. Remember your risks and cares.
-I have told you that the characters of men who are
-much esteemed in life depend on your secrecy; what
-pledge can I give them of your fidelity?”</p>
-
-<p>“Tell them,” said Birch, advancing, and unconsciously
-resting one foot on the bag, “tell them that I
-would not take the gold!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">[233]</span>The composed features of the officer relaxed into a
-smile of benevolence, and he grasped the hand of the
-peddler firmly.</p>
-
-<p>“Now, indeed, I know you; and although the same
-reasons which have hitherto compelled me to expose
-your valuable life will still exist, and prevent my
-openly asserting your character, in private I can always
-be your friend; fail not to apply to me when in
-want or suffering, and so long as God giveth to me, so
-long will I freely share with a man who feels so nobly
-and acts so well. If sickness or want should ever assail
-you, and peace once more smile upon our efforts, seek
-the gate of him whom you have so often met as Harper,
-and he will not blush to acknowledge you in his true
-character.”</p>
-
-<p>“It is little that I need in this life,” said Harvey;
-“so long as God gives me health and honest industry,
-I can never want in this country; but to know that your
-Excellency is my friend is a blessing that I prize more
-than all the gold of England’s treasury.”</p>
-
-<p>The officer stood for a few moments in the attitude
-of intense thought. He then drew to him the desk,
-and wrote a few lines on a piece of paper, and gave it to
-the peddler.</p>
-
-<p>“That Providence destines this country to some great
-and glorious fate I must believe, while I witness the
-patriotism that pervades the bosoms of her lowest
-citizens,” he said. “It must be dreadful to a mind like
-yours to descend into the grave, branded as a foe<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">[234]</span>
-to liberty; but you already know the lives that would
-be sacrificed, should your real character be revealed.
-It is impossible to do you justice now, but I fearlessly
-intrust you with this certificate, should we never meet
-again, it may be serviceable to your children.”</p>
-
-<p>“Children!” exclaimed the peddler; “can I give to a
-family the infamy of my name!”</p>
-
-<p>The officer gazed with pain at the strong emotion
-he exhibited and he made a slight movement toward the
-gold; but it was arrested by the expression of his companion’s
-face. Harvey saw the intention, and shook
-his head, as he continued more mildly:</p>
-
-<p>“It is, indeed, a treasure that your Excellency gives
-me; it is safe, too. There are men living who could say
-that my life was nothing to me, compared to your
-secrets. The paper that I told you was lost I swallowed
-when taken last by the Virginians. It was the only
-time I ever deceived your Excellency, and it shall be
-the last; yes, this is, indeed, a treasure to me; perhaps,”
-he continued, with a melancholy smile, “it may be
-known after my death who was my friend; but if it
-should not, there are none to grieve for me.”</p>
-
-<p>“Remember,” said the officer, with strong emotion,
-“that in me you will always have a secret friend; but
-openly I cannot know you.”</p>
-
-<p>“I know it, I know it,” said Birch; “I knew it when
-I took the service. ’Tis probably the last time I shall
-ever see your Excellency. May God pour down His
-choicest blessings on your head!” He paused, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">[235]</span>
-moved toward the door. The officer followed him with
-eyes that expressed deep interest. Once more the
-peddler turned, and seemed to gaze on the placid but
-commanding features of the General with regret and
-reverence, and then, bowing low, he withdrew.</p>
-
-<p>The armies of America and France were led by their
-illustrious commander against the enemy under Cornwallis,
-and terminated a campaign in triumph that had
-commenced in difficulties. Great Britain soon after
-became disgusted with the war; and the independence
-of the States was acknowledged.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">[236]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THREE WASHINGTON ANECDOTES</h2>
-
-<p class="center">Adapted from <span class="smcap">M. L. Weems</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>The original story of little George Washington and his hatchet,
-together with two other doubtful anecdotes not so well known.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">ON A fine morning in the fall of 1737 Mr. Washington,
-taking little George by the hand, went
-to walk with him in the orchard, promising to show
-him a fine sight. On arriving at the orchard, a fine
-sight indeed was presented. The whole earth, as far
-as could be seen, was strewed with fruit, and yet the
-trees were bending under the weight of apples which
-hung in clusters like grapes, and vainly strove to hide
-their blushing cheeks behind the green leaves. “Now,
-George,” said his father, “look here, my son! Don’t
-you remember when a good cousin of yours brought
-you that fine large apple last spring, how hardly I could
-prevail on you to divide with your brothers and sisters;
-though I promised you that if you would but do it
-God Almighty would give you plenty of apples this
-fall?”</p>
-
-<p>Poor George could not say a word, but hanging down
-his head, looked quite confused, while with his little
-naked toes he scratched in the soft ground. “Now look
-up, my son,” continued his father, “look up, George,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">[237]</span>
-and see there how richly the blessed God has made
-good my promise to you. Wherever you turn your
-eyes you see the trees loaded with fine fruit, many of
-them indeed breaking down; while the ground is covered
-with mellow apples, more than you could eat, my son,
-in all your lifetime.”</p>
-
-<p>George looked in silence on the wide wilderness of
-fruit. He marked the busy humming bees, and heard
-the gay notes of birds; then, lifting his eyes filled with
-shining moisture, to his father, he softly said, “Well,
-Pa, only forgive me this time, and see if I ever be so
-stingy any more.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>When George was about six years old he was made
-the wealthy master of a <i>hatchet</i>, of which, like most little
-boys, he was immoderately fond; and was constantly
-going about chopping everything that came in his way.
-One day, in the garden, where he often amused himself
-hacking his mother’s pea-sticks, he unluckily tried the
-edge of his hatchet on the body of a beautiful young
-English cherry tree, which he barked so terribly that
-I don’t believe the tree ever got the better of it. The
-next morning, the old gentleman, finding out what
-had befallen his tree, which, by the by, was a great
-favorite, came into the house; and with much warmth
-asked for the mischievous author, declaring at the
-same time that he would not have taken five guineas
-for his tree. Nobody could tell him anything about
-it. Presently George and his hatchet made their appearance.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">[238]</span>
-“George,” said his father, “do you know
-who killed that beautiful little cherry tree yonder in
-the garden?” This was a tough question, and George
-staggered under it for a moment; but quickly recovered
-himself, and looking at his father, with the sweet face
-of youth brightened with the inexpressible charm of
-all-conquering truth, he bravely cried out, “I can’t
-tell a lie, Pa, you know I can’t tell a lie. I did cut it
-with my hatchet.”</p>
-
-<p>“Run to my arms, you dearest boy,” cried his father;
-“such an act in my son is worth more than a thousand
-trees, though blossomed with silver, and their fruits of
-purest gold.”</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>To startle George into a lively sense of his Maker,
-his father fell upon the following very curious but impressive
-expedient:</p>
-
-<p>One day he went into the garden and prepared a
-little bed of finely pulverized earth, on which he wrote
-George’s name at full, in large letters, then strewing
-in plenty of cabbage seed, he covered them up, and
-smoothed all over nicely with the roller. This bed he
-purposely prepared close alongside a gooseberry walk,
-which happening at this time to be well hung with ripe
-fruit, he knew would be honored with George’s visits
-pretty regularly every day. Not many mornings had
-passed away before in came George, with eyes wild
-rolling and his little cheeks ready to burst with great
-news.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">[239]</span>“Oh, Pa! come here, come here!”</p>
-
-<p>“What’s the matter, my son? What’s the matter?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, come here, I tell you, Pa: come here, and I’ll
-show you such a sight as you never saw in all your lifetime!”</p>
-
-<p>The old gentleman, suspecting what George would
-be at, gave him his hand, which he seized with great
-eagerness, and tugging him along through the garden,
-led him point blank to the bed whereon was inscribed,
-in large letters, and in all the freshness of newly sprung
-plants, the full name of</p>
-
-<p class="center">GEORGE WASHINGTON</p>
-
-<p>“There, Pa!” said George, quite in an ecstasy of
-astonishment, “did you ever see such a sight in all
-your lifetime?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, it seems like a curious affair, sure enough,
-George!”</p>
-
-<p>“But, Pa, who did make it there? Who did make it
-there?”</p>
-
-<p>“It grew there by chance, I suppose, my son.”</p>
-
-<p>“By chance, Pa! Oh, no! no! It never did grow
-there by chance, Pa. Indeed that it never did!”</p>
-
-<p>“Why not, my son?”</p>
-
-<p>“Why, Pa, did you ever see anybody’s name in a
-plant bed before?”</p>
-
-<p>“Well, but George, such a thing might happen,
-though you never saw it before.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">[240]</span>“Yes, Pa; but I did never see the little plants grow
-up so as to make one single letter of my name before.
-Now, how could they grow up so as to make <i>all</i> the
-letters of my name, and then standing one after another,
-to spell <i>my</i> name so exactly, and all so neat and even,
-too, at top and bottom! Oh, Pa, you must not say
-chance did all this. Indeed, <i>somebody</i> did it; and I
-dare say now, Pa, <i>you</i> did it just to scare me, because
-I am your little boy.”</p>
-
-<p>His father smiled, and said, “Well, George, you have
-guessed right. I indeed did it; but not to scare you,
-my son, but to teach you a great thing which I wish
-you to understand. I want, my son, to introduce you
-to your true Father.”</p>
-
-<p>“Aye! I know well enough whom you mean, Pa.
-You mean God Almighty, don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, my son, I mean Him indeed. He is your true
-Father, George, and as my son could not believe that
-chance had made and put together so exactly the
-letters of his name (though only sixteen) then how can
-he believe that chance could have made and put together
-all those millions and millions of things that
-are now so exactly fitted to his good.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">[241]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">WHEN GEORGE THE THIRD WAS KING<a id="FNanchor_20" href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">[T]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Elbridge S. Brooks</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>How a Philadelphia boy watched the Declaration of Independence
-in the making and celebrated the first Fourth of July on the
-Eighth.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">PHILADELPHIA in July! Not even the most
-loyal boy or girl of that good old Quaker town
-but must admit that Philadelphia in July <i>is</i> a hot
-place.</p>
-
-<p>“Warm and sunshiny,” were the words that Mr.
-John Nixon, in his daily journal for the year 1776,
-placed against the early days of July, but I am inclined
-to think that young Joe Nixon was nearer the
-fact when he called it “broiling hot.”</p>
-
-<p>Very possibly, however, this slight exaggeration on
-the part of young Joe was due to the fact that he was
-very busy and therefore very warm. Not that he had
-anything of especial importance to do. Not always
-those who are busiest have the most to do; but you see
-there was a great deal to hear and see in Philadelphia
-town in the early days of July in the year 1776 and
-young Joe Nixon, like a true American boy, felt it his
-duty to be on hand when anything of importance was
-on foot.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">[242]</span>And so he was continually on the go between his
-uncle’s big house on the Water Street, the room of the
-Committee of Inspection on Second Street, the parade-ground
-of the “Quaker Blues” on the city common, and
-the big brick State House on Chestnut Street.</p>
-
-<p>For young Joe Nixon was a privileged character and
-duly felt his importance. His uncle, Mr. John Nixon,
-was a member of the Committee of Safety, and better
-still, young Joe was a particular favorite of Mr. David
-Rittenhouse who “had charge of the public clock in the
-State House Square.” This put him on good terms
-with a still more influential acquaintance—the doorkeeper
-of the Continental Congress, then in daily session
-in the Assembly chamber of the State House.</p>
-
-<p>Young Joe was a quick-witted lad and like all the
-rest of the race of boys dearly loved to watch and listen
-even though he could not always understand. Seated
-by the side of his friend the doorkeeper, he found it very
-interesting and sometimes highly exciting to follow the
-proceedings of the bewigged and earnest gentlemen who
-were talking, discussing, and sometimes getting quite
-angry with one another on the floor of the Congress.
-Joe only knew in a general sort of way what all this talk
-and discussion meant. But one thing he was certain of,
-as were all the boys and girls in the colonies—and that
-was that there was a “jolly row” on hand between the
-colonies and the King. He knew, too, that, away off
-toward Boston-town there had been two or three fights
-with the King’s soldiers, in which the troops of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_243">[243]</span>
-colonies by no means had the worst of it. And he
-knew, most of all, that it was mightily hard just now for
-a boy to get hold of anything new or nice to eat or to
-wear or to play with and that, somehow, this was all
-the fault of King George the Third, and that the colonies
-did not propose to stand this sort of thing any
-longer.</p>
-
-<p>So he had made the most of his acquaintance with the
-doorkeeper of the Congress and had witnessed most of
-the important events that had taken place during that
-lovely Philadelphia June.</p>
-
-<p>He had looked with all the awe of a small boy of
-twelve upon the fifty or more gentlemen—the delegates
-to the Congress—who, representing the thirteen colonies,
-were ranged in a half-circle on either side of Mr.
-Hancock, the President. But I think he admired, even
-more, the “elegant standard, suspended in the Congress
-Room,” over the door of entrance at which he sat with
-his friend the doorkeeper, and which was “a yellow flag
-with a lively representation of a rattlesnake in the middle
-in the attitude of going to strike, and these words underneath:
-‘Don’t tread on me!’”</p>
-
-<p>He had been in the Congress Room so often that he
-knew most of the delegates by sight and name: that
-gentleman in the big chair behind the heavy mahogany
-table and the great silver inkstand—the gentleman with
-the scarlet coat and the black velvet breeches—was Mr.
-John Hancock, the President of the Congress—“Rosy
-John,” the Tory boys called him, much to young Joe’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_244">[244]</span>
-ireful indignation; that gentleman in the long-waisted
-white cloth coat, scarlet vest and breeches, and white
-silk hose, was Mr. Jefferson of Virginia; that gentleman
-in the long buff coat and embroidered silk vest was, as
-of course every Philadelphia boy knew, the great Doctor
-Franklin; and there, too, were Mr. Adams and Mr.
-Gerry of Massachusetts, Mr. Sherman of Connecticut,
-Mr. Clinton of New York, Mr. Stockton of New Jersey,
-Mr. Carroll of Maryland, Mr. Lee of Virginia, Mr.
-Rutledge of South Carolina, and many others whose
-faces and whose voices had now grown familiar. Even
-his boyish mind, thoughtless of the present and careless
-of the future though it was, had felt the excitement of
-the moment when on Friday, June 7th, Mr. Richard
-Henry Lee of the Virginia colony had risen in his place
-and, “amidst breathless silence,” had read to the Congress
-this notable resolution:</p>
-
-<p>“<i>Resolved</i>, that these United Colonies are, and of
-right ought to be, free and independent States, that
-they are absolved from all allegiance to the British
-Crown, and that all political connection between them
-and the State of Great Britain is, and ought to be, totally
-dissolved.”</p>
-
-<p>Then Mr. John Adams of Massachusetts seconded
-the resolution, Mr. Thomson, the secretary, made the
-official entry in the Journal, the Congress, with but few
-words, postponed its consideration until the next day,
-and young Joe Nixon adjourned with the delegates, like
-them, half-dazed and half-jubilant.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">[245]</span>So, through the long June days, the Congress argued
-and debated and hesitated while young Joe Nixon—a
-true type of the restless Young America that is ever in
-a hurry for action and results—watched and wished
-and wondered, not thinking of what might be in the
-future save that King George was to be thrown overboard
-and the colonies were to set up for a Nation.</p>
-
-<p>At last, on June 28th, a committee, consisting of Mr.
-Jefferson of Virginia, Mr. Adams of Massachusetts,
-Doctor Franklin of Pennsylvania, Mr. Sherman of Connecticut,
-and Mr. Livingston of New York, presented
-to the Congress a long paper which young Joe understood
-was called a Declaration of Independence. And
-although he thought it was splendid and full of the most
-mightily strong blows against King George, much to the
-lad’s disgust the Congress did not seem to go into ecstasies
-over it, but hummed and hawed and deliberated
-until July 2d, when Mr. Lee’s original resolution was put
-to vote, carried by the voice of every colony except New
-York, and the United Colonies were declared to be Free
-and Independent States.</p>
-
-<p>Young Joe Nixon, had he dared, would have tossed
-his little three-cornered hat in the air with a loud hurrah,
-but the gentlemen of the Congress he thought
-seemed strangely quiet about it all. He did not see
-what their wiser heads comprehended, that the vote
-of the Congress on that second of July meant years of
-struggle against a mighty power—sorrow and privation
-and, perhaps, after all, only defeat and, to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">[246]</span>
-leaders, the disgraceful death of traitors. He saw only
-the glowing colors of victory and excitement as young
-folks are apt to, and as it is right they should.</p>
-
-<p>And yet that very night, as the Congress adjourned,
-portly Mr. John Adams, with whom the lad was quite a
-favorite, noticed the ill-concealed exultation of the boy
-and laying a hand upon his head said to him: “A great
-day this, my young friend; a great day, is it not?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, sir,” replied young Joe with energy, “I’m so
-glad it passed, sir.”</p>
-
-<p>“And so am I, my lad,” said Mr. Adams, with almost
-equal enthusiasm; “you are a bright and seemly
-little lad and will not soon forget this day, I’ll be bound.
-So mark my words, my lad. The second of July, 1776,
-will be the most memorable day in all the history of
-America. It will be celebrated ere you grow to manhood,
-and by succeeding generations, as the great anniversary
-festival, commemorated as the day of deliverance,
-by solemn acts of devotion to God Almighty,
-from one end of the continent to the other, from this
-time forward for evermore.”</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sir,” said Joe most respectfully. He did not
-comprehend all the meaning of Mr. Adams’s solemn
-words, but he was quite as confident as was that gentleman
-that it was a day the anniversaries of which would
-mean in future plenty of fun and jubilee.</p>
-
-<p>Good Mother Nixon could get but little work from
-her Joe on the following morning. And though, in her
-peaceful Quaker way, she bade him beware of too much<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">[247]</span>
-glorying in all the strife and warfare that seemed afoot,
-I rather suspect that even her placid face flushed with
-quiet enthusiasm as she besought her boy to remember
-that right was always right, and that it was nobler and
-manlier to boldly face whatever might betide than to
-be as were some men in their Quaker town who, so
-she said, “loved too much their money and their ease,
-and did but make conscience a convenience, instead of
-being sincerely and religiously scrupulous of bearing
-arms.” All of which meant that there were some craven
-folk in that day of manly protest against tyranny who,
-to save themselves from annoyance, pretended to be
-Quakers and “non-combatants,” when they were only
-skulking cowards. And all such every honest Quaker
-utterly detested.</p>
-
-<p>But young Joe Nixon, too full of the excitement of
-the moment, paid but little regard to his good mother’s
-words, inasmuch as they did not apply to his case;
-and, hot and panting, fearful lest he should miss something
-new, dashed up to the State House and slipped in
-beside his friend the doorkeeper.</p>
-
-<p>The Congress was already in session. Mr. Jefferson’s
-paper called the “Declaration respecting Independence”
-had been again taken up for consideration, and was
-being soberly debated, paragraph by paragraph.</p>
-
-<p>Frequent repetitions had made Joe familiar with some
-of the phrases in this remarkable paper. Even his
-young heart beat high as he heard some of those ringing
-sentences—about all men being created equal and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">[248]</span>
-being “endowed with the inalienable rights of life, liberty,
-and the pursuit of happiness”; how that “whenever
-any form of government becomes destructive to
-these ends it is the right of the people to alter or abolish
-it”; that “the history of the present King of Great
-Britain is a history of repeated injuries and usurpations,”
-that “a prince whose character is thus marked
-by every act which may define a tyrant is unfit to be
-the ruler of a free people”; that “we must, therefore,
-hold the British people, as we hold the rest of mankind,
-enemies in war, in peace friends”; that “we, the representatives
-of the United States of America in general
-Congress assembled, appealing to the Supreme Judge
-of the world for the rectitude of our intentions, do, in
-the name and by the authority of the good people of
-these colonies, solemnly publish and declare that these
-united colonies are and of right ought to be free and
-independent States”; and, lastly, that “for the support
-of this declaration, with a firm reliance on the protection
-of Divine Providence, we mutually pledge to each
-other our lives, our fortunes, and our sacred honor.”</p>
-
-<p>Joe, as I have said, had felt his young heart glow and
-his young pulse beat under the enthusiasm of these
-ringing declarations and all this debating and questioning
-appeared to him as fearfully slow and faint-hearted;
-he wondered why, since the Congress had already
-passed Mr. Lee’s resolution of Independence, they
-should so hesitate over Mr. Jefferson’s Declaration of
-Independence; and, quite frequently, he felt compelled<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">[249]</span>
-to dash out into the hot and sunny street and work off
-his impatience in a wild and purposeless “go-as-you-please”
-around what was called “Mr. Rittenhouse’s
-Observatory” in the centre of the square.</p>
-
-<p>The day dragged on and so did the debate. Even
-Mr. Jefferson lost patience and, confessing that he was
-“writhing under” all this talk, needed all of Doctor
-Franklin’s philosophy and example to calm him down
-again. So it is not to be wondered at that, late in the
-afternoon, Joe Nixon, enthusiastic young patriot though
-he was, grew wearied with the talk and the delay and
-determined to go home. But just as he was leaving
-the building there dashed into the State House yard a
-big chestnut horse covered with foam and dust. Its
-rider, a fine, well-built man in dust-stained travelling
-cloak, sprang from the saddle and, dropping the bridle-rein
-into Joe’s ready hand with a quick, “Here, my lad,
-take my nag to the City Tavern stables, will you?”
-hurried without further words into the Congress room.</p>
-
-<p>Joe’s impatience changed to burning curiosity again
-and, transferring his panting charge to another ready
-lad for attention, he, too, hurried into the hall and
-asked his friend the doorkeeper who this newcomer
-might be.</p>
-
-<p>“Why, lad, ’tis Mr. Cæsar Rodney, don’t you know,”
-replied the doorkeeper. “The delegate from the Counties
-upon Delaware whom they sent for by special post
-only yesterday, since his colony is divided in action and
-his vote is needful to carry the Declaration through.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">[250]</span>“And did he ride from home to-day?” inquired Joe.</p>
-
-<p>“Surely, boy,” said the doorkeeper, “clean from the
-County of Kent, eighty miles away. ’Twas a gallant
-day’s ride and a fair day’s work, for by it is independence
-won.”</p>
-
-<p>It was even as he said. Rodney’s glorious ride secured
-the vote of Delaware for the Declaration and
-late that very night of Wednesday, the third of July,
-by a majority vote of the States—as the colonies now
-called themselves—the immortal paper that we know
-as the Declaration of Independence passed the Congress.</p>
-
-<p>But before it was handed to the secretary to be engrossed,
-or copied so that it might be signed by all the
-delegates, Mr. Hancock, as president of the Congress,
-affixed to it his bold signature that we all now know so
-well. And young Joe Nixon had, actually, to stuff his
-hat into his mouth to stifle the hurrah that did so want
-to burst out when Mr. Hancock, rising from his seat,
-said in his most decided tones:</p>
-
-<p>“There! John Bull can read my name without
-spectacles. Now let him double the price on my head,
-for <i>this</i> is my defiance.”</p>
-
-<p>Then the Congress adjourned and young Joe went
-home, completely tired out with the day’s anxiety
-and excitement. And though on that notable night
-of the third of July a nation had been born, Philadelphia
-lay quietly asleep knowing little or nothing of the
-great happening.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">[251]</span>Next day—the first Fourth of July ever specially
-known to Americans—Joe was about the only privileged
-character who, slipping into the secret session heard,
-from his seat by the side of his friend the doorkeeper,
-the order given by Mr. Hancock as president of the
-Congress that “copies of the Declaration be sent to
-the several assemblies, conventions, and committees
-or Councils of Safety, and to the several commanding
-officers of the Continental troops; that it be proclaimed
-in each of the United States and at the head of the
-army.”</p>
-
-<p>This was all that was done on the Fourth of July,
-1776, as young Joe Nixon could testify. But the
-printed copies of the Declaration prepared for transmission
-to the several States and to the army and
-signed by Mr. Hancock, the president of the Congress,
-and by Mr. Thomson, the secretary, all bore the
-heading: “In Congress, July 4, 1776,” and thus that
-date has come down to us as the one to be especially
-remembered.</p>
-
-<p>That very night Joe heard, at his uncle’s big house on
-the Water Street, that the Committee of Safety in
-Philadelphia—of which, as I have said, Mr. John
-Nixon was a member—had ordered that “the Sheriff
-of Philadelphia read or cause to be read and proclaimed
-at the State House, in the city of Philadelphia, on Monday
-the 8th day of July instant, at 12 o’clock at noon
-of this same day, the Declaration of the Representatives
-of the United States of America, and that he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">[252]</span>
-cause all his officers and the constables of the said city
-to attend to the reading thereof.”</p>
-
-<p>Here was a new treat in store for young Joe; and when
-he learned that the Worshipful Sheriff had designated
-his uncle, Mr. John Nixon, as the reader, Joe knew
-that this meant a front seat for him and was appropriately
-jubilant.</p>
-
-<p>The day came. Monday, the eighth of July, 1776.
-“A warm and sunshiny morning” again reads the truthful
-journal, and twelve o’clock, noon, must have been
-hot indeed. But not all the heat of a Philadelphia
-July could wither the ardor of such patriots as young
-Joe Nixon. He was therefore a very “live” portion of
-the procession which, forming at the hall of the Committee
-of Inspection in Second Street, joined the Committee
-of Safety at their lodge, and, to the stirring
-sounds of fife and drum, marched into the State House
-square. Out from the rear door of the State House
-came the Congress and other dignitaries and then,
-standing upon the balcony of Mr. Rittenhouse’s astronomical
-observatory just south of the State House,
-Mr. John Nixon in a voice both loud and clear read
-to the assembled throng the paper which declared the
-United States of America “Free and Independent.”</p>
-
-<p>The reader concluded with the glorious words: “We
-mutually pledge to each other our lives, our fortunes,
-and our sacred honor,” and, as his voice ceased, the
-listening throng, so the record says, “broke out into
-cheers and repeated huzzas.” Then the Royal arms<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">[253]</span>
-were torn down from above the seats of the King’s
-Judges in the State House, and Joe, like a wild young
-Indian, danced frantically around the bonfire which
-destroyed these “insignia of Royalty.”</p>
-
-<p>Again, at five o’clock, the Declaration was read to
-the troops then present in the town, and the evening
-was given up to bonfires and fireworks which you may
-be certain young Joe enjoyed to his full content.</p>
-
-<p>And peal upon peal, sounding above all the shouts
-and the hurrahing, rang out loud and clear, at both
-the noon reading and the night’s celebration, the joyous
-clang of the big bell of the State House telling the glad
-tidings of freedom, as well befitted a bell on whose
-brazen rim men had read for twenty-four years the
-almost prophetic motto:</p>
-
-<p class="center">“<i>Proclaim liberty through all the land to all the inhabitants
-thereof.</i>”</p>
-
-<p>To his dying day Joe Nixon never forgot the glory
-and exultation of that jubilant first Independence Day—the
-eighth of July, 1776.</p>
-
-<p>One other notable scene also lived long in his memory—a
-day and a date new to many of us who have
-always supposed that the Declaration of Independence
-was passed, signed, and proclaimed on the Fourth of
-July. It was the morning of Tuesday, the second of
-August, that same historic summer of 1776. From his
-customary seat by the doorkeeper Joe saw Mr. Thomson,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">[254]</span>
-the secretary of the Congress, lay upon the president’s
-table a great sheet of parchment. And on this
-sheet carefully and beautifully copied was the Declaration
-of Independence. Then, one by one, beginning
-with Mr. Hancock the president, the delegates to the
-Congress signed the great paper and by that act sent
-their names down to posterity—famous and honored
-forever.</p>
-
-<p>Of the fifty-six signers of the Declaration not all
-affixed their names to the document on that notable
-second of August. Absentees and new-comers added
-their names as they joined the Congress, and not until
-the fourth day of November, 1776, was the last signature
-affixed.</p>
-
-<p>Names and dates go for but little when a great deed
-is done. The deed itself is of more importance than
-either names or dates. But to us of this second century
-of the Republic there is both interest and pleasure
-in re-telling the story of liberty and following out by
-dates, altogether new to most of us, the real progress
-of the historic document that made us a nation.</p>
-
-<p>Instead of one “Fourth of July,” you see, we have
-really four—The Second of July, upon which Mr.
-Lee’s Resolution of Independence was passed by the
-Congress; the Third of July, upon which the Declaration
-itself was passed; the Fourth of July which witnessed
-the order for its proclamation, and the Second of
-August upon which it was actually signed by the members
-of the Congress.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">[255]</span>The original document to which these names were
-signed still exists, grown worn and yellow with age; the
-Liberty Bell that rang out the joyous news of freedom
-on the sunny noon and the starlit night of the eventful
-eighth of July is now cracked and voiceless; the signers
-themselves are now only names and memories; but their
-work lives in the power and glory of the great nation
-which they founded, and every true American girl and
-boy honors the memory and applauds the courage of
-those devoted men. And upon each recurring Fourth
-of July every girl and boy in the land is as joyous and
-jubilant a young patriot as was even young Joe Nixon
-when, with bonfire and rude, old-time fireworks, with
-hurrah and shout and song he celebrated, in the days
-when George the Third was king, the first Fourth of
-July on the Eighth.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">[256]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">THEIR FLAG DAY<a id="FNanchor_21" href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">[U]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Herbert O. McCrillis</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>A grandfather tells a group of patriotic little Americans how <i>his</i>
-grandfather was a redcoat at Lexington.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">TOOT! Toot! Rub-a-dub-dub! came from down
-the street, and it made Grandpa Sturdy, who sat
-dozing in the sun, start up suddenly and look to see
-what gallant soldiers were coming.</p>
-
-<p>First came Captain Tommy Rankin, acting as drum-major,
-with his sister’s muff worn for a fur hat, and an
-umbrella for a baton. Behind him came a troop of
-children wearing all sorts of military decorations—helmets,
-epaulets, and paper caps. One boy carried
-a large flag, and one of the girls was singing through a
-comb.</p>
-
-<p>Grandpa rose and went out to the gate as they came
-near. Then, just as they came close, he took off his
-hat and gave them a military salute—for grandpa
-was a soldier once—and held up his hand for them to
-stop just a moment.</p>
-
-<p>“Company, halt!” commanded Tommy, in a loud
-tone. “Parade, rest! Salute! Attention!” And they
-obeyed.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">[257]</span>“What company is this?” said grandpa smilingly.</p>
-
-<p>“We are the minute-men, grandpa,” said Tommy.
-“We are going out to Concord to keep Flag Day. Our
-teacher was going to have a celebration to-day, but
-she is sick, so we have made a procession, and are going
-to march by her house to show her how we can remember
-the flag.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s right,” said grandpa, saluting the flag. “I
-can do that if my grandfather was what we call a
-redcoat.”</p>
-
-<p>“Your grandfather a redcoat?” cried all the boys in
-a breath. “Did he ever tell you anything about it?”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh, yes, he told us about going to America to fight
-the rebels, and what a lot of British soldiers there were
-in Boston, who all laughed at the idea of the plain
-country farmers and workmen being able to fight the
-king’s own fine troops; and granddad thought so with
-all the rest, he said. Well, they found out that day
-that the rebels could fight, after all. Let me see, what
-day was that, boys?”</p>
-
-<p>“April 19, 1775,” said Tommy, echoed by the others.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, yes. You have got that learned, haven’t
-you? Grandfather said that all through that long,
-hard march from Concord back to Boston they were
-fighting. They were ashamed to be beaten by those
-they had made fun of.</p>
-
-<p>“Every stone wall, every large rock or tree seemed
-to have an American behind it. He said it was wonderful
-how those farmers could shoot. Dozens of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">[258]</span>
-Englishmen fell and died there in the road. Granddad
-told us how they struggled on, tired, wounded,
-thirsty, and almost ready to give up. Finally most
-of them got back to Charlestown, and were safe. But
-all day long, and most of the night before, they had had
-to march.</p>
-
-<p>“And they didn’t do what they went out for, either,
-for the Americans had carried off the guns and powder
-they went to destroy. The night before they marched
-out gaily enough, expecting to have no trouble, and
-only a trip into the country in the fine spring air.</p>
-
-<p>“But the trip became a terrible battle, and began a
-great war. And ever since America and England have
-been two separate nations.</p>
-
-<p>“Grandfather went back to England very soon, and
-as he couldn’t march and fight any more, he got a pension
-from the king and stayed in England all his life.</p>
-
-<p>“He liked America, and always said that now there
-was peace, and the new country promised so much, he
-would like to go there to live; but he never did. My
-father brought us over, though, when I was sixteen.
-So I am an American, if my grandfather was one of
-the redcoats who fought at Lexington in America.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d rather have a grandfather that was a minute-man,”
-said one of the boys.</p>
-
-<p>“Perhaps the great-grandfathers of some of you
-fought the redcoats,” said Grandpa Sturdy. “But I
-am not ashamed to tell you that my grandfather wore
-one of the king’s red-and-white uniforms and carried<span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">[259]</span>
-a British gun. The soldiers were doing their duty
-bravely enough. It was the king and the men with
-him who were to blame for the battle. Well, boys,
-march on again, march along. Stand up for your
-flag. It is my flag, too, and I love it. Always be
-ready to be minute-men for the flag.”</p>
-
-<p>“Attention, company! Carry arms! Forward,
-march!” shouted the captain.</p>
-
-<p>Away went the procession to the teacher’s house,
-their flags waving gaily and the flowers they were
-carrying nodding their heads, while Grandpa Sturdy
-settled back in his easy chair.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">[260]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">A TRUE STORY OF THE REVOLUTION<a id="FNanchor_22" href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">[V]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Everett T. Tomlinson</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>A boy’s story by a boy’s author, telling of a thrilling escape from
-“Tarleton’s men.”</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">“FATHER’S escaped! Moses has just brought me
-word,” said John Russell, as he ran to the steps
-of the broad veranda. His mother quickly rose from
-her chair and looked down at the eager boy on the
-steps below her. Her slight figure was trembling, and
-a bright red spot had appeared on each cheek.</p>
-
-<p>“Are you sure, John?” she asked, in a low tone.</p>
-
-<p>“Yes, sure! It seems that the British escort had
-gone but halfway to Charleston when a band of five
-Whigs met them. They had a bit of an argument, and
-the upshot of it was that father made off. Strange
-about these Whigs happening to meet them, wasn’t
-it?”</p>
-
-<p>John, unable to restrain his feelings longer, threw his
-hat high in the air, and rushing up the steps, seized his
-“little mother” in his arms and began to dance with
-her about the porch.</p>
-
-<p>“What’s that you say? Your father’s escaped?”</p>
-
-<p>John quickly released his mother and turned to face<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">[261]</span>
-the gruff-voiced Captain Heald of the British service,
-who had just come out of the open door. The boy’s
-manner instantly changed, although he could not conceal
-his exultation as he replied: “Yes, sir; he’s
-escaped! He had no fancy to spend any more time in
-the ‘provost’ at Charleston. It isn’t a fit place for
-vermin, to say nothing of human beings.”</p>
-
-<p>“I ought to have hanged him, and you, too!” replied
-the captain. “It’s the only way to deal with such
-rebels!”</p>
-
-<p>“Hanging, sir,” said John, “seems the thing your
-party do best; unless you have a still stronger fancy
-for quartering yourselves on your betters.”</p>
-
-<p>“Fine parole you’ve kept!” sneered the captain.
-“I’ll warrant, if the truth were known, you yourself
-had a share in this escape of your father.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’m under no parole not to help my father to freedom,”
-said John.</p>
-
-<p>The captain looked at him angrily a moment, and
-then, without making any further reply, turned and
-went down the steps and across the lawn to join some
-of the soldiers who were quartered on the plantation.</p>
-
-<p>“I beg you to be careful, John,” said his mother
-anxiously, when they were alone again. “You know
-that man can do whatever he pleases here.”</p>
-
-<p>“No,” replied John, “he cannot frighten me with his
-bluster and his red coat.”</p>
-
-<p>“But you must not provoke him. Tarleton has
-given him full command in this district, and he has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">[262]</span>
-already committed outrages that no British regular
-officer would venture on.”</p>
-
-<p>In fact, the war in that region was largely a conflict
-of partisans native to the soil, and Tory Americans
-often committed against Whig Americans high-handed
-acts from which officers accustomed to the procedure
-of military law would have shrunk.</p>
-
-<p>“Very well,” said John, laughing to reassure his
-mother. “He hasn’t any great cause for liking me,
-that’s a fact. I’ve let the pigs out of the pens and
-scared away the chickens, and told the negroes where
-to hide some of the stuff in the barns. But this last
-work is the worst—this sending word, as I did, by Moses
-to Dick Eddy to look out for father when he passed.
-Heald will never forgive me for that. I’m not afraid,
-though,” he added, as he left his mother and followed
-the captain across the lawn.</p>
-
-<p>Even in his excitement the beautiful summer day
-had an influence to soothe him. All about him lay
-the fertile lands of Ridgefield, his father’s plantation,
-one of the most beautiful in all the South. Behind
-him was the great house in which he had been born,
-flanked by the quarters of the negroes and the spacious
-barns. Off on the left was a grove, and below the hill
-was the slow stream. John would have felt the sweet
-influences of the hour more but for the presence of
-thirty men in scarlet, who now were the virtual masters
-of the place.</p>
-
-<p>Only a week earlier Captain Heald had somehow<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">[263]</span>
-gained information that Major Russell and his son had
-left Sumter’s army for a brief visit home, so the Tory
-band had at once swooped down and captured both.
-John had been left on parole, and his father had escaped;
-but Ridgefield was now occupied by “Tarleton’s
-men,” and all its beauty for John was gone.</p>
-
-<p>He stopped and watched the guards doing “sentry go”
-in the road and out by the grove beyond the house, and
-the longer he watched them the more helpless and angry
-he felt. “Great liberty this!” he muttered. “Shut up
-here like a pig in a pen! Not that there are many pigs
-left here now,” he added, smiling grimly. “Oh, well, I
-hope father’ll do something, now that he’s got away.”</p>
-
-<p>“John,” said his mother, when he returned to the
-house, “Captain Heald is going to leave.”</p>
-
-<p>“Good for Captain Heald! When is he going?”</p>
-
-<p>“To-night. Lieutenant Mott is to be left in charge
-here.”</p>
-
-<p>“He’s not as bad as the other. Where’s the captain
-going?”</p>
-
-<p>“I think over to Fort Granby.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! Probably to set some one on father’s
-tracks. He’ll never get him, though. Hello! Here
-comes the captain now, and he’s all dressed to leave!”</p>
-
-<p>A colored man soon brought the captain’s horse,
-and as the officer swung himself lightly into the saddle,
-John, taking off his hat and bowing low, called out:
-“Good-bye, captain! We’ll speed the parting guest,
-although we can’t welcome the coming!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">[264]</span>Captain Heald made no reply, but turned on John a
-threatening look, at which the boy laughed.</p>
-
-<p>That day went by and on the following morning
-John was wandering about the place, idly watching the
-soldiers, longing to be with his father, and wishing he
-had not given his parole to stay on the plantation. A
-black servant came to him and said that his mother
-wished to speak with him at the house. He went, and
-found his mother at the door. An expression of agony
-was on her face.</p>
-
-<p>“What is it mother?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“Go up to your room, John, and I’ll tell you.”</p>
-
-<p>The boy ran swiftly up the stairs, and held the door
-of his room open for his mother to enter. She closed
-and locked the door behind her, and then, handing him
-a letter, said: “I found this in the dining-room after
-Lieutenant Mott left the breakfast-table.”</p>
-
-<p>John took the letter from his mother’s hand and
-read:</p>
-
-<div class="blockquot">
-<p class="right">Fort Granby, August 6, 1780.</p>
-
-<p><span class="smcap">Lieutenant Mott</span>. Upon receipt of this, you will at once
-take and hang that young rebel, John Russell. He has violated
-his parole and is entitled neither to a further hearing
-nor a trial. Hang him before sunset to-night. I shall expect
-to receive word by to-morrow morning.—<span class="smcap">Heald.</span></p>
-</div>
-
-<p>John’s face turned deadly pale, then red with anger.
-“I have not broken my parole!” he cried. “I never
-gave a promise that I would not help father to escape.
-This is murder, and——”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">[265]</span>“I think Lieutenant Mott dropped that letter in the
-dining-room intentionally,” broke in his mother.
-“He’s not as bad as Captain Heald. He won’t carry
-out the order.”</p>
-
-<p>With a great effort John controlled his voice. “We’ll
-see, mother. If it is really an order, I suppose he’ll
-have to carry it out—unless I escape.”</p>
-
-<p>“He might let you escape.”</p>
-
-<p>“No, little mother. But don’t give up. I’ll find a
-way out.”</p>
-
-<p>He kissed his mother, unlocked the door and walked
-slowly down the stairs and out upon the veranda.
-Lieutenant Mott was coming up the steps, and as he
-met John he gave him a keen glance of sympathy.
-But that was all. Not a word or sign to show that he
-would not carry out his order.</p>
-
-<p><i>Hanged!</i> The very crickets seemed to be chirping
-it. Over and over the word kept repeating itself in
-John’s mind as he walked slowly on over the lawn.
-He saw that now he was no longer bound by his parole.
-His word of honor had held him, but the order to hang
-him released him from the bond. He would escape if
-he could, but wherever he went red-coated soldiers
-were lounging lazily about, and up and down the road
-marched the sentries with their muskets over their
-shoulders.</p>
-
-<p>If it were only night! In the darkness he might escape,
-but it was not yet noon. The very words of the letter
-came back to him. “Hang him before sunset to-night!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">[266]</span>And this was to be the end of it all! To be hanged!
-It was too horrible to think of. Every avenue of escape
-was blocked, and in sheer desperation he returned to
-the house and made his way noiselessly up the stairs
-to his room. His mother was not there, and relieved
-by the thought that she was not present to look upon
-him in his weakness, he bolted the door and seated
-himself by the table on which stood a miniature of her.
-He looked at it, and dropping his head upon his arms on
-the table before him, he sobbed in an agony of despair.</p>
-
-<p>He was roused by the sound of the dinner-bell. He
-must go down and somehow conceal his feelings. He
-bathed his face and, somewhat relieved by his tears,
-arose to join the family in the room below.</p>
-
-<p>Only his sisters were there when he entered, and he
-knew at once by the expression upon their faces that
-his mother had not shown the letter to them. He
-choked down a few mouthfuls of food, but he could not
-eat. Excusing himself from the table on the plea that
-he wished to find his mother, he ran swiftly up to her
-room and rapped upon the door.</p>
-
-<p>He had to repeat his summons before it was opened,
-and then it was only far enough to enable his mother
-to see who the visitor was. Then she drew him inside,
-and quickly closed and bolted the door again.</p>
-
-<p>John almost broke down when he looked at her, so
-woful and desperate was her expression. He must
-cheer her with some hope, and his own courage revived
-at the cheerful tone which he assumed:</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">[267]</span>“Little mother, none of the Russells were ever
-hanged, and I shall not be the first.”</p>
-
-<p>“What will you do, my son?” Her voice sounded
-as if it were far away, and John looked up quickly as
-he replied: “I shall make a break for it, if I must.
-I’d rather be shot in trying to get away than be hanged.”</p>
-
-<p>“You are my own brave laddie,” said his mother,
-rising. “Do your best, John; but if you have to——”</p>
-
-<p>“I know, I know,” he murmured, as for one moment
-he returned her frantic embrace; and then, not daring
-to look back, he left the room.</p>
-
-<p>After crossing the lawn he seated himself beneath
-a spreading tree to collect his thoughts and survey the
-place. Everything was as it had been. The guards
-were marching up and down in the road; the idle soldiers
-were lounging about the tents; the locusts were
-calling in the trees, and peace apparently was over all.</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll have to try it. They may come for me any
-time now,” he thought, suddenly rising and starting
-toward the guard in the upper road. He could feel
-that his mother was watching him, but he dared not
-look toward her windows. The testing time had come
-and now it was to be a struggle for life.</p>
-
-<p>He walked leisurely up the road, although his heart
-was beating furiously. He would try not to attract
-attention, and it was no unusual thing for him to join
-the men on guard. They all knew he was on parole, and
-besides, there were the guns if he should try to get away.</p>
-
-<p>“It’s hot to-day, Tom,” he said, as he approached.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">[268]</span>“You’d think it was if you had to carry a gun up
-and down this dusty road.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’d be glad to relieve you, Tom. You rest a bit,
-while I take your place.”</p>
-
-<p>“That’s kind of you,” laughed the guard, “but I
-fear it won’t do, sir,” and he passed on, while John
-seated himself to await his return.</p>
-
-<p>He glanced at the soldiers in the tents near by. How
-easily they could reach him, and only one word would
-bring them all after him! But he must take his chances.
-There was no other way, and when the guard turned
-his back again he would try it.</p>
-
-<p>Just then a little, lean, half-starved pig came out
-of the woods and stood for a moment stupidly staring
-at the boy before him. “Poor fellow!” thought John.
-“You’re in the same box with me. Tarleton’s men
-will treat us alike.”</p>
-
-<p>He looked up and saw the returning guard. The pig
-saw him, too, and as if inspired by a sudden fear, he
-gave a startled grunt and darted swiftly up the road.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, sir, help me catch the pig!” shouted the
-guard, starting swiftly in pursuit of the runaway.
-“He’s the last on the place.”</p>
-
-<p>John needed no second invitation, and in a moment
-he and the guard were following the pig, which was
-running as if he knew his life was in danger. The soldiers
-rushed from their tents, and stood laughing and
-cheering the pursuers. To them it was a comedy to
-see the sentry and the prisoner striving to catch one<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">[269]</span>
-poor, little half-starved pig; but to John the pursuit
-had all the elements of a tragedy. Life or death lay
-in the outcome for him.</p>
-
-<p>He flung aside his hat and coat, and put forth all his
-strength. Dripping with perspiration, streaked with
-dust, almost breathless he sped on and on. Once he
-came close upon the frightened pig, but he took good
-care to fall upon him in such a manner that the little
-“porker” only emitted a terrified squeal and redoubled
-his speed.</p>
-
-<p>“Hold! hold!” shouted the guard, who was behind
-now. “Let him go. We can’t catch him!”</p>
-
-<p>John glanced quickly back, and saw that he was out
-of the range of the soldiers’ muskets. His speed increased
-as he realized that the supreme moment had
-come at last. Only the gun of the guard was to be
-feared now.</p>
-
-<p>“Halt!” shouted the guard again. “Stop, or I
-shoot!”</p>
-
-<p>John only drew his head down between his shoulders.
-His heart almost ceased to beat. The report of the
-gun rang out, and he almost fell to the ground as he
-heard the bullet whistle over his head.</p>
-
-<hr class="tb">
-
-<p>A few days afterward, when he was with his father in
-Sumter’s army near Camden, just before the terrible battle,
-and for the second time had been relating the story of
-his escape, he added, “That little porker did a double
-duty. He saved his bacon, and he saved mine, too.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">[270]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">POLLY CALLENDAR: TORY<a id="FNanchor_23" href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">[W]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Margaret Fenderson</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>The tale of a Tory maid, a Patriot youth, and a kettle of scarlet dye.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IN 1774-5, previous to the outbreak of the Revolution,
-the Callendars were Royalists, and General
-Gage’s young British officers, one of whom was related
-to the Callendars, frequently rode out from Boston
-to call at the hospitable country-house. It was
-Polly Callendar whom they went to see; her beauty and
-vivacious wit were the theme of many toasts. And
-up to the evening of this story Polly was as disdainful
-of the “minute-men” as was her mother.</p>
-
-<p>At about noon of that day Madam Callendar was
-summoned to the bedside of Elizabeth Ballard, a kinswoman
-living near Natick. She had left her brick
-oven full of the week’s baking, and had set a large brass
-kettle, filled with redwood dye, on the crane in the
-great fireplace. Madam Callendar’s parting directions
-to Polly had been not only to watch the oven,
-but to stir the boiling redwood.</p>
-
-<p>Numerous skeins and hanks of woolen yarn, spun
-during the previous winter, were immersed in it, and
-the last warning from Polly’s mother was: “Redwood<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">[271]</span>
-must never be hurried, Polly. Stir often, lass. Press
-the hanks down hard with your clothes-stick, and then
-drop in a little of this powdered alum to set the scarlet.”</p>
-
-<p>So through the long, foggy afternoon it was Polly
-Callendar’s homely task to watch the oven and tend
-the “scarlet kettle.” But with evening came an unexpected
-diversion. A knock was heard at the outer
-door; and when old Rastus, the negro servant, had
-opened it, a tall young man, in provincial garb, inquired
-how far it was to Boston and what was the road.
-Learning that the distance was still considerable, he
-entreated hospitality, saying that having ridden since
-dawn, he was both tired and wet. Polly at first demurred,
-but in the end, moved by his plight and persuaded
-somewhat by his respectful manners and handsome
-face, she sent Rastus to stable the horse.</p>
-
-<p>She spread a plentiful supper before the wayfarer;
-and then, because his appearance pleased her, she
-brewed for him some of her mother’s cherished tea, and
-poured it into one of the delicate china teacups that
-had come from England.</p>
-
-<p>But the young man ate in silence, notwithstanding
-these attentions. Truth to say, he was ill at ease.
-He was on his way to join the minute-men, and he was
-bringing with him a hundred pounds that had been
-contributed by the “patriot committee” of his native
-town. He feared that in some way the redcoats had
-been given a hint of his mission. Mounted men had
-stared hard at him that day, and he had thought it<span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">[272]</span>
-wise to avoid a troop patrolling the roads. And now,
-despite the quality of his supper, he paused to listen
-anxiously whenever horses’ hoofs or voices were heard
-without. Polly, noticing his uneasiness and marking
-his blue colonial home-spun, drew her own inferences.</p>
-
-<p>Of a sudden the young man took note of the kettle
-and its scarlet contents.</p>
-
-<p>“That is a bright dye which you have there, mistress,”
-he remarked. “Are you fond of so high a
-color?”</p>
-
-<p>“In good truth, sir, and why not?” replied Polly.
-“Have you fault to find with it?”</p>
-
-<p>“I would be but a churl, an I did,” answered the
-guest gallantly, “since it is scarcely more pink than
-the cheeks of my fair hostess.</p>
-
-<p>“The redcoats must feel flattered at your preference,”
-he added.</p>
-
-<p>“And is it not the hue that all loyal subjects should
-prefer?” queried Polly demurely.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, but I will not gainsay you, mistress,” replied
-the young man. “And yet,” he added, “it is a color
-soon to fade under our American sun.”</p>
-
-<p>“But not from the hearts of the king’s loyal subjects,”
-retorted Polly. “This is no rebel household,
-sir. My kinsmen, who were here but yesterday, wear
-the scarlet and are the king’s loyal servants.” And
-saying this she observed her guest closely and saw that
-he winced.</p>
-
-<p>“Beyond doubt he is one of the patriots,” she thought.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">[273]</span>
-“But such a handsome youth! Moreover, he is most
-courteous, and his voice and ways are more gentle and
-respectful than those of Cousin Charles.”</p>
-
-<p>As for the stranger, his heart sank afresh. “I will
-pay for my supper and get on,” he thought. “I shall
-be safer abroad in the darkness than here.” And he
-rose to take leave as gently as he might, but at that
-moment the tramp of horses was again heard; and this
-time they did not pass, but pulled up before the house
-door.</p>
-
-<p>“My kinsmen, it is very like,” said Polly, smiling.
-“They wear sharp swords, sir.” Then, as she noted the
-hunted look which the young man cast about the
-room, her light and taunting manner changed. “Is
-it that you would not like to meet them, sir?” she
-asked, in a low tone.</p>
-
-<p>As she spoke there came an imperative rap at the
-outer door, and a cry of “Open in the king’s name!”</p>
-
-<p>“For heaven’s sake, mistress, show me some way
-out,” cried the stranger. “It is less that I fear their
-swords, but I am on a mission of importance.”</p>
-
-<p>“Open, madam! Open, Polly! It is I, your Cousin
-Charles; and they say there is a rascally rebel here!”
-cried the voice outside. “But we have the house surrounded.”</p>
-
-<p>Polly had turned toward a rear door, but hearing
-these last words, darted to the centre of the room again.
-For an instant she was at a loss. Then her eyes fell
-on the door of her mother’s storeroom, a closet beside<span class="pagenum" id="Page_274">[274]</span>
-the large chimney, which it was Madam Callendar’s
-practice always to keep locked; but in the haste of
-departing that day she had forgotten to take the key.</p>
-
-<p>“Here, sir,” Polly whispered. “Quick, be quick!”
-and she unlocked the door, half pushed the man within
-and hastily turning the key again, put it in her
-pocket.</p>
-
-<p>“Open! Open!” cried the voices outside. “Open
-in the king’s name!” and the raps were repeated.</p>
-
-<p>“Coming, good sirs, coming,” cried Polly. Then her
-eye fell on the young patriot’s greatcoat lying across
-the back of a chair. If seen, that would betray all.
-She snatched it up and plunged it into the great kettle
-of scarlet dye. Then throwing the door open and
-courtesying low, as was the custom of those days, she
-cried: “Good-evening, Cousin Charles. Welcome,
-good gentlemen. My mother has gone to Natick for
-the day. Ne’theless you are right welcome.”</p>
-
-<p>“Ay!” grumbled the young officer. “After my
-knuckles are skinned with knocking. But prithee,
-Polly, have you seen naught of this insolent knave?”</p>
-
-<p>“Indeed, Cousin Charles, this is but a sorry jest!”
-exclaimed Polly Callendar. “Since when has my family
-been aught but loyal to the king?”</p>
-
-<p>“True,” assented the Briton. “Yet the rascal may
-be lurking about.”</p>
-
-<p>“Enter, then, and see for yourselves,” cried Polly.
-“My mother would earnestly desire you to purge her
-house of rebels!”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_275">[275]</span>They came noisily in—while the young patriot’s
-heart beat fast—they peered into nooks and corners,
-and presently ascended to the attic.</p>
-
-<p>“Do not forget the cellar!” cried Polly gaily, opening
-the door and handing her cousin a lighted candle.
-“Perchance the knave is hiding in some bin or box.”</p>
-
-<p>The quest there proved as fruitless as in the chambers;
-but on emerging one of the party noted the closed
-door by the chimney and tried it. “Why locked?” he
-exclaimed. “The key, fair mistress.”</p>
-
-<p>“For that you will do well to ask my mother,” replied
-Polly carelessly. “The closet is my mother’s
-keeping-room; and it is ever her custom to carry the
-key in her pocket.”</p>
-
-<p>“True,” remarked her cousin, who knew the ways
-of the household. “The rogue will hardly have got
-into madam’s keeping-room. Doubtless he has slipped
-away.”</p>
-
-<p>“If ever he were here,” flashed back Polly. “But
-beyond doubt, good cousin and gentlemen, you must
-be hungry after your hard ride. Will you not partake
-of our cheer?”</p>
-
-<p>Nothing loath, the young redcoats gathered about
-the supper-table, where for an hour or more Polly
-maintained the reputation of the house for loyalty and
-good entertainment. In truth, the soldiers were slow
-to depart, and would hardly have gone by nine o’clock
-had not Polly adroitly reminded her kinsmen that the
-“Knave” they were pursuing would surely get clear<span class="pagenum" id="Page_276">[276]</span>
-away. Thereupon they took leave and rode off with
-much laughter.</p>
-
-<p>But fearful lest they might return, Polly waited long
-listening, and not until old Rastus had come in to
-bar the outer door for the night and close the shutters
-would she release her prisoner.</p>
-
-<p>“Come forth, sir,” she at last commanded, with assumed
-austerity. “What have we here? A rebel, I
-fear me, from all I am told.”</p>
-
-<p>“But one profoundly grateful to his preserver,”
-replied the young man; and to old Rastus’s great
-astonishment he took Mistress Polly’s hand and gallantly
-kissed the tips of her fingers, albeit they were
-tinged with scarlet from her dye.</p>
-
-<p>“Methinks, sir, it but ill becomes me to accept such
-thanks from one who confesses his disloyalty to King
-George,” Polly replied, still with seeming severity,
-“and whose name I do not even know. But since you
-are here, prithee take seat before the fire. For of
-necessity, sir, I have made a good Royalist of you, so
-far as your greatcoat covers you. See!” And with
-the clothes-stick she lifted the coat out of the kettle.
-“Not Cousin Charles’s own is a brighter scarlet!”</p>
-
-<p>The stranger burst into a hearty laugh.</p>
-
-<p>“Good faith, I had not thought to wear a scarlet
-coat!” he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>“Yet, sir, it may stand you in good stead as you ride
-into Boston to-morrow,” replied Polly. “It was of
-that I thought as I dipped it. And now let us powder<span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">[277]</span>
-a little alum in the mortar to set the hue. I would
-not have thy loyalty wash out, sir, in the first shower
-that falls on you.”</p>
-
-<p>As a consequence, one young patriot found himself
-powdering alum to dye his own coat scarlet. And
-midnight came and passed as he and Polly sat in front
-of the great brass kettle, and old Rastus nodded in
-the corner.</p>
-
-<p>Beyond doubt they became better acquainted in this
-time; and Polly certainly learned the stranger’s name,
-for as the tall old clock in the corner struck one, she
-said, “It is now time to wring thy coat, John Fenderson.”</p>
-
-<p>When wrung, it had still to be dried; and Polly put
-it for an hour into the warm brick oven.</p>
-
-<p>Somewhat puckered from the dye, the garment still
-required pressing out; and to heat a sad-iron and accomplish
-this occupied yet another hour. The old clock
-struck three.</p>
-
-<p>“Truly, John Fenderson, making a king’s man of
-thee has been a long task!” exclaimed Polly, as at last
-she held up the scarlet coat for inspection. “Don it,
-sir! I would even desire to mark the effect.” And
-what John Fenderson would not have done at the king’s
-command he appears now to have done without
-hesitation at Polly Callendar’s request. For between
-these two young people the grievous differences of
-Tory and Patriot had already been dispelled—in the
-dyeing of a coat before a fireplace.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">[278]</span>“Good luck, John Fenderson, in thy brave coat,”
-said Polly at four o’clock, as the young man took leave,
-after she had given him breakfast. “May the color
-hold,” she added. “But if it fades——”</p>
-
-<p>“I shall come back to you,” said John.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, but it will grieve me when I hear that thou art
-to be hanged for a rebel!” cried Polly from the door.</p>
-
-<p>“Nay, Mistress Polly, I should have but to send for
-thee to teach me how to dye!” replied John Fenderson.</p>
-
-<p>So he rode away, and had cause to be thankful for the
-disguise the coat offered him; for while riding through
-Newton a little before noon, he was hailed by three
-redcoats, two of whom raised their muskets; but the
-third held them back, saying, “Nay, by his coat he
-must be one of our men.”</p>
-
-<p>There is much reason to believe that Mistress Polly’s
-loyalty to King George was ever afterward open to question.
-At any rate, the records of John Fenderson’s
-native town show that he married in 1779, and that the
-bride’s name was Polly Callendar.</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">[279]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">NEIL DAVIDSON IN DISGUISE<a id="FNanchor_24" href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">[X]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Mary Tracy Earle</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>A boy in General Greene’s army sets out to capture a famous Tory
-marauder and finds him to be his own brother. What does he do?</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">IN THE early days of March, 1781, Neil Davidson
-was thirteen years old and had been five months in
-the patriot army. He had taken part in several skirmishes
-and had lived in camps where food was scarce
-and clothing scarcer, where a blanket for four men was
-a prize, and companies were sometimes obliged to stay
-away from review because their uniform had been worn
-through to that of mother nature. He had shared
-the hard marches by which Greene and Morgan kept
-the prisoners taken at Cowpens from recapture by
-Cornwallis, and during which Greene had reported
-that the naked feet of his men marked their way with
-blood.</p>
-
-<p>It was a strange experience for a boy, and Neil had
-become such a queer combination of outspoken child
-and shrewd veteran as can be matched in these days
-only by the gamins who fight their battles in the city
-streets. Without losing his boyishness he had acquired
-a military swagger which he knew enough to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">[280]</span>
-suppress when there was any advantage to be gained
-by acting like a child, and underneath swagger and
-boyishness there burned the revengeful, deep-seated
-hatred of Tories which marked all but a few of the
-patriots of those days. In Neil it was an unchildlike
-passion, giving him strength on long marches, putting a
-keen barb to his wit, making him trusted in the army
-beyond his years.</p>
-
-<p>Before the real beginning of the Revolution his
-father had been hanged by the Tory government for
-taking part in a popular outbreak, and his mother had
-been crazed by grief. From the shadow of such an
-early childhood Neil had emerged almost a man in
-purpose at thirteen and very fierce at heart.</p>
-
-<p>Yet, in spite of a bronzed face, he was still exceedingly
-coltish and immature in appearance, with round,
-wide-open blue eyes, a shock of long, sunburned hair,
-and legs that also were long and sunburned, having
-seldom been covered by a substantial, untorn garment.
-There was a great amount of speed available in the bare
-legs, and under the shock of hair there was plenty of
-boyish logic and common sense.</p>
-
-<p>Altogether, he was handy to have about, and he was
-sent on so many errands from officer to officer that
-he was known around all the cheerless campfires in
-Greene’s army. Even the general kept him in mind,
-and at times permitted him to undertake important
-missions. He had carried more than one of the appeals
-for reënforcements which Greene kept sending to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">[281]</span>
-the governors of North and South Carolina and Virginia,
-and to the military leaders of the three states.
-His way had lain through a country swarming with
-enemies, and he had come safely through encounters in
-which a man’s errand would have been investigated.</p>
-
-<p>One night, during the anxious two weeks before
-the Battle of Guilford Court House, Greene sent for
-him again. The army was moving stealthily along
-muddy roads through the dusk of starlight, for the
-general thought his force still too weak to risk an
-engagement and evaded Cornwallis by shifting his
-camp every twenty-four hours, in the dark. The footsore
-men plodded forward silently. Loss of sleep was
-wearing them out. Greene himself had hardly slept
-for a week, and physical exhaustion united with his
-judgment in declaring that the strain could not last
-much longer. If sufficient reënforcements did not
-arrive soon, he would have to fight without them, and
-disaster would result. He sighed and settled himself
-wearily in the saddle. For a moment his overburdening
-anxiety slipped from him, and he dozed as he rode.
-Then he straightened himself with a start. A small
-lanky figure had bobbed up beside his horse out of the
-obscurity of the night, and he caught the motion of a
-salute.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, Neil,” he said, “I sent for you to see if you are
-ready to undertake another dangerous errand. I fear
-my last message to Colonel William Campbell has been
-intercepted. I want some one to go out, try to meet<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">[282]</span>
-him, and hurry him forward. If he has not heard of
-our recent movements, he may be marching toward the
-Dan River.”</p>
-
-<p>He hesitated a moment, as if he had more to say, but
-Neil did not wait for it. “I’m your man, sir!” he
-declared.</p>
-
-<p>The general smiled at the boy’s confidence. “That
-was my impression, too,” he admitted. “Yet there is
-one strong argument against your going. Gillespie,
-one of the scouts, has just come in. He’s been hanging
-around Tarleton’s Legion and he’s heard you spoken
-of. It seems that the enemy took notice of you in the
-affair at the mill the other day, and that rascal who has
-your name, Davidson, the bushwhacker, is with the
-Legion, and he swears to capture you; so if any of
-Tarleton’s men come across a boy of your size and
-description, he will have hard work to get away from
-them.”</p>
-
-<p>“But even if they are on the lookout for a boy, they’re
-just as much on the lookout for every grown man in
-your army,” Neil urged. “Anybody that the Tories
-get hold of will have to give a good account of himself.”</p>
-
-<p>“So I reasoned,” the general said, “and at the same
-time I am unwilling to have you undertake this without
-some safeguard. You are about the height of an
-ordinary young woman, and when we reach Mrs.
-Bynum’s plantation, where we shall make our next
-camp, I shall have her furnish you with clothing and a<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">[283]</span>
-side-saddle, and you will go disguised as a girl. That
-is all for the present. Report to me at the Bynum
-house as soon as you reach the plantation, and keep
-this to yourself in the meantime.”</p>
-
-<p>Neil saluted and dropped back. As soon as he was
-at a safe distance he gave a long whistle of surprise.
-Then he began to laugh. The dismay with which he
-first thought of concealing his military identity in
-petticoats gave way to excitement. He began softly
-to hum the air and words of a rude ballad which celebrated
-the victory of King’s Mountain, five months
-before, and was passing from mouth to mouth through
-the patriot army.</p>
-
-<p>“Stop that singing!” a gruff voice said in his ear.
-“Are you signalling to Cornwallis?”</p>
-
-<p>In the darkness it was impossible to see if the speaker
-were officer or man from the ranks. Neil took the risk
-and answered like an equal: “Who are you that are
-giving me orders? I left General Greene ahead there,
-and just now I’m taking orders direct from him.”</p>
-
-<p>“Oh!” the voice returned ironically, but without
-apparent offense, “then I reckon you’re the great Neil
-Davidson. I’m merely Joe Gillespie, scout.”</p>
-
-<p>“I have heard of you,” Neil said good-naturedly.
-“The general was speaking of you just now.”</p>
-
-<p>“Do you know who was speaking of you lately?”
-Gillespie asked. He took the boy by the arm and
-walked along with him through the dark. “That namesake
-of yours, Sandy Davidson. He’s taken a notion<span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">[284]</span>
-to capture you, and you want to be as wary as you
-know how. He’s the worst of the Tory bushwhackers,
-and the most daredevil. If he’s decided to capture
-you because your name’s the same as his, he’s likely to
-walk right into Greene’s camp and do it. It’s nothing
-to him that there’s a reward out for his life.”</p>
-
-<p>“I reckon he’ll not find it as easy to catch me as he
-thinks,” Neil said. A tremor of fierceness came into his
-voice. He threw back his shoulders, and his companion
-could feel his arm grow tense. “But if I live long
-enough I’ll capture him and see him hanged. He has
-my brother’s name.”</p>
-
-<p>“The name is common.”</p>
-
-<p>“It shan’t be common among Tories!” the boy declared.
-“They killed my brother. They shan’t have
-his name.”</p>
-
-<p>“How did they kill him?” Gillespie’s voice was
-stirred. It was an old story, the loss of life on either
-side in the bitter Civil War that tore the Carolinas, but
-it was a story that never found dull ears.</p>
-
-<p>“I don’t know,” Neil said. “I was a very little
-boy and the Indians had carried me off. When I was
-exchanged and brought home my mother told me that
-the Tories had killed Sandy. She didn’t say how—she
-never would tell me how. She’d had so much
-trouble that she was—well, queer, and she never would
-tell anything very much. I was so scared and lonesome
-that I ran away to the Indians, and stayed with
-them again a long time. Mother was just the same<span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">[285]</span>
-when I came back. She didn’t need me and I couldn’t
-do anything for her, and that’s why I followed the
-army to fight the Tories in Sandy’s place. And I don’t
-intend to let any Tory live with his name.”</p>
-
-<p>Gillespie had been seasoned in border warfare, yet
-he felt uncomfortable at hearing a mere child use the
-fierce language of the war. “Pshaw, now,” he said,
-“it’s an ugly business to plan to kill men one at a time!
-When a whole army gets up before you and you shoot
-at it, that’s a different matter. And you want to be
-careful; besides, he’s a good deal more likely to get hold
-of you and do what he pleases with you than you are
-with him.”</p>
-
-<p>“I’ll be careful,” Neil agreed—“careful to capture
-him.”</p>
-
-<p>There were so many things to occupy the general’s
-attention that it was nearly daybreak before the messenger
-was despatched; but at last, with his length
-and thinness encased in linsey-woolsey petticoats and
-a sunbonnet on his head, the boy rode off through the
-cold morning chill.</p>
-
-<p>Before Neil started the sunbonnet had been ripped
-open, and Greene had slipped a letter to Colonel Campbell
-in between the lining and one of the slats which
-stiffened its brim. Neil was as conscious of the letter
-as he was of the rattling of the bonnet round his ears
-and of the imprisoned feeling which it gave him to
-wear it. The general had told him to treat the bonnet
-carelessly if he fell into trouble; to swing it by the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">[286]</span>
-strings as a girl might, and to swing it into a fire if
-possible; but for the first hour Neil was in no trouble
-except from the bonnet and the petticoats and the
-necessity of sitting sidewise on his horse.</p>
-
-<p>He was riding through woodland; day began to sift
-slowly down among the dark tree-trunks. The branches
-above him grew astir with wakening birds; the cold air
-was sweet from unseen jasmine flowers.</p>
-
-<p>The world seemed so quiet, and there was such a
-sense of peace abroad, that Neil did one of the few
-imprudent things of his service. His side-saddle continually
-troubled him; he felt insecurely perched on it,
-and his back was twisted in an unfamiliar way. If he
-rode astride for a while, during this secure, peaceful
-time, he reasoned that the rest of the journey would be
-easier for him when in full daylight he was obliged to
-play the girl decorously and be constantly on his guard.</p>
-
-<p>One leg swung over. He pressed his knees into the
-horse’s sides, and gave a suppressed whoop of joy. The
-horse sped forward, and just for practice, he jerked off
-his sunbonnet and swung it round and round his head
-by the strings; the blood danced in him; he leaned forward
-and gave a hissing chirrup to the horse; his petticoats
-flapped in the wind, and the trees fled hastily
-to the rear. Now was his chance for making time. To
-feel himself firmly and naturally seated on the horse
-was glorious. He swung the bonnet round his head
-again. One of the strings slipped from his hand and
-the other tore from the bonnet. The bonnet flew to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">[287]</span>
-the roadside, and before Neil could check his horse it
-was rods behind.</p>
-
-<p>As he rode back for it, a man stepped out of the woods
-and picked it from the bush where it had lodged. At
-sight of him Neil flung his stray leg back where it
-belonged, and blushed to a depth of embarrassment
-which would have done credit to any girl.</p>
-
-<p>“If you please, sir,” he said, “I just lost that bonnet.”</p>
-
-<p>The stranger held the bonnet behind him and laughed.
-He was a tall, broad-shouldered fellow with a face
-which made Neil sure that he was a man to be reckoned
-with. The features were large, yet mobile, and his
-pale, greenish eyes had a spark of mischief in them
-which looked as if it might turn to fire. Neil felt
-sorely perturbed, and he had no need to play a part
-in order to show timidity. Sandy Davidson came
-back into his mind; but if this were Sandy, there would
-be small chance to capture him in such a meeting, and
-the most Neil could hope was to get away.</p>
-
-<p>Whoever the stranger might be, his first object was
-to tease. “What’ll you give me for it, Miss Tomboy?”
-he asked.</p>
-
-<p>“I—I don’t have anything to give you,” Neil stammered.</p>
-
-<p>“Then you’ll not get it,” the other said, slipping the
-bonnet inside his blouse. “You don’t really want it
-you know. Anybody can see from your brown face
-that you’re not used to wearing a bonnet.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">[288]</span>“But I do want it!” Neil declared. He was wild
-with anxiety and had no idea what to do. If the man
-had not slipped it into his tunic, he might have ridden
-closer, snatched it, and galloped off.</p>
-
-<p>The man stood laughing at him. “I’ll swap it for a
-kiss,” he offered.</p>
-
-<p>Neil drew back. “No, you’ll not!” he cried angrily.
-His indignation was for himself rather than for the
-girl he pretended to be. As far as he could remember,
-neither his mother nor the Indians nor the soldiers had
-ever offered him a bargain of this kind. He had never
-been kissed since his babyhood. His face set, his blue
-eyes turned fierce, and he lifted the switch which he
-used as a riding whip.</p>
-
-<p>The stranger fell back a pace and stared with a look
-which was first startled and then keen. “You’re not
-a girl; you’re Neil Davidson!” he said abruptly.</p>
-
-<p>Neil’s hand dropped. He stared back at the stranger.
-Something far away and dimly remembered,
-something which had made the boy tremble from the
-first, was in the man’s features. There was no question
-now. This was Sandy Davidson, and he had not
-only borrowed a name from Neil’s brother, he had
-borrowed a face.</p>
-
-<p>As they stood bewildered a faint sound reached
-them. Although distant, there was no mistaking the
-murmurous trample of many feet.</p>
-
-<p>The man took Neil’s horse by the bridle. “You
-don’t deny that you’re Neil Davidson, and you’re my<span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">[289]</span>
-prisoner,” he said. “That’s Tarleton’s Legion. I was
-waiting here till it came by.”</p>
-
-<p>“Why do you think I’m Neil Davidson?”</p>
-
-<p>“Can’t you guess?” For the first time the man’s
-voice had a troubled sound. “It was when you got so
-mad. Your eyes blazed just as <i>hers</i> always did, and
-then all at once I could see your baby face—changed a
-lot, but looking right out at me. You always looked
-like mother.”</p>
-
-<p>Neil’s hand closed on the horn of the side-saddle.
-The name “Sandy Davidson” had not prepared him;
-the resemblance had seemed only an added insult.</p>
-
-<p>“You needn’t be afraid,” the other said, noticing
-how pale he had grown under his tan. “Since I heard
-of you in Greene’s army I’ve vowed I’d catch you, and
-now I have. Our family has done enough against the
-king. But I’ll see that nobody hurts you.”</p>
-
-<p>Neil straightened himself with a jerk. His timidity
-was gone and his bewilderment was yielding to an understanding
-of what his mother had meant when she
-said that the Tories had killed Sandy. “And since
-I’ve heard of a Tory with my brother’s name, I’ve vowed
-to capture <i>him</i>!” he cried. “I’ve vowed that no Tory
-named Sandy Davidson should live, for mother said
-they’d killed you.”</p>
-
-<p>The other gave an impatient laugh. “Why don’t
-you capture me, then?” he asked. “Here I am. I
-told mother I was on the king’s side, and she said I
-was dead to her. She was growing crazy and driving<span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">[290]</span>
-me crazy begging me to revenge father’s death, when
-father was a rebel and deserved what he got. She drove
-me out of the house when I said I was a king’s man.”
-He shrugged his shoulders as if to put an end to accounting
-for himself. “Of course you’ve got messages on
-you, or you’d not be disguised. Hand them over and
-it will save you trouble. I’m your very affectionate
-brother, though you would like to collect that reward
-for me, but I can tell you Tarleton’s a very affectionate
-brother to nobody!”</p>
-
-<p>The sunbonnet with the letter in it was still in the
-front of Sandy’s hunting-shirt. “You can search me,”
-Neil said. “You’ll find no letters.”</p>
-
-<p>“Then what were you sent for?”</p>
-
-<p>“To practise riding on a side-saddle. You noticed
-that I don’t take very kindly to sitting this way.”</p>
-
-<p>“You’re pretty cool for a prisoner,” Sandy said
-approvingly. “I’ll search you fast enough, but I
-reckon we’ll be as good friends as when you wore
-dresses all the time.”</p>
-
-<p>“Don’t think it!” Neil cried out. “Don’t think I’ll
-ever——” He checked himself, remembering that he
-was absolutely powerless in the hands of a man whose
-name stood for that all was unmerciful. If there was
-any kindly feeling left in such a man, Neil would need
-it. The trample of feet grew louder, and the brothers
-waited in silence, half-concealed by the clump of bushes
-on which the bonnet had caught.</p>
-
-<p>Neil was busy with the possibilities of getting away.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_291">[291]</span>
-He looked at his brother critically, trying to judge
-what might be expected of him. Hard living, hard
-fighting, and cruelty had left strangely slight marks
-upon Sandy. His face was almost noble, suggesting
-possibilities which he was fast outliving.</p>
-
-<p>The boy’s head began to whirl with remembrance
-of the days when he had toddled at Sandy’s heels;
-the two had shunned the house where their mother’s
-half-crazed talk of revenge left them no peace; they had
-stayed in the fields together; sometimes the big boy
-had teased the little one, but sometimes he had snatched
-Neil up and tossed and played with him, making him
-blissfully certain that they were of one age and stature—rough,
-loving mates.</p>
-
-<p>Neil’s only bright memories of home were of Sandy.
-It was because they were so bright that he had hated
-the Tory Sandy so much more than any other Tory;
-and yet this man, this bushwhacker and marauder,
-had spoken of the old days.</p>
-
-<p>Once Neil leaned forward to ask him if he recalled
-some trifling circumstance which stood out with special
-plainness in his own recollection, but he could not form
-the words. Relive the past with a Tory? He shook
-his head savagely and looked in the direction of the
-approaching troops.</p>
-
-<p>The soldiers were coming into view round a curve in
-the road—not Tarleton’s Legion, but a body of plainly
-dressed militia such as might be found in either army,
-such as might have reinforced Tarleton. For the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_292">[292]</span>
-space of a breath Sandy and Neil watched them. Then
-an officer galloped forward. The brightening daylight
-struck across his red hair and large, high-boned face.
-It was Col. William Campbell leading his riflemen to
-Greene.</p>
-
-<p>Before Sandy could stir Neil caught him by the arm.
-In their partial shelter they had not yet been seen.
-“If you run, I’ll call out your name and you’ll be a
-dead man!” he whispered. “That’s Campbell’s regiment,
-and you’re my prisoner! Give me back that bonnet.
-There’s a message in it to Colonel Campbell from General
-Greene!” His words grew swifter with triumph.
-“Oh, you laughed when I said I’d vowed to capture you.
-You were sure it was Tarleton’s regiment——”</p>
-
-<p>Sandy nodded. For once a surprise had dazed him
-and he stood quiescent, realizing that if Neil gave the
-alarm those grim-faced men would scour the woods
-and hunt him down. “Oh, I’m caught!” he acknowledged
-grimly. “You’ll have the pleasure of seeing me
-shot or hanged.”</p>
-
-<p>“I said I’d capture you,” Neil repeated. “I said no
-Tory should live——” Something unexpected choked
-his words. The vision of deaths he had seen in the
-army passed before him, and then of two boys romping
-together in a field. It was only an instant, but the
-love and the hate of his life struggled together. He
-began to tremble.</p>
-
-<p>“The bonnet!” he begged. “If I have the bonnet
-I can hold their notice.”</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">[293]</span>“You mean you’ll help me off?” Sandy’s voice broke
-huskily. “Little Neil—I’ll remember this, I’ll——”
-But there was no time for words. He pulled the bonnet
-from his tunic, turned and walked coolly into the woods,
-just as the soldiers caught sight of Neil’s higher figure
-on the horse.</p>
-
-<p>Neil rode to meet the regiment, holding his bonnet in
-his hands. He forgot his disguise and saluted like a
-soldier.</p>
-
-<p>“Colonel Campbell, I’m not a girl. I’m Neil
-Davidson, and I’ve brought you a message from
-General Greene,” he said. “It’s sewed inside the bonnet.”</p>
-
-<p>But the colonel had caught a motion between the
-trees. “Who’s that moving off there?” he asked
-sharply.</p>
-
-<p>“A man I was talking to,” Neil said. “I was riding
-fast and my bonnet flew off. A stranger stepped out
-of the woods and picked it up for me. He thought I
-was a girl, of course, and teased me at first. He wanted
-me to kiss him before he’d give it back. I was nearly
-wild on account of the message. Then we heard you
-coming. He stopped teasing and waited with me until
-I told him you were my friends.”</p>
-
-<p>“Humph! It’s pretty evident we weren’t his friends;
-but I reckon he’s not worth following!” the colonel
-commented. He tore open the bonnet, found the
-message in it, and troubled himself no more about the
-man in the woods.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">[294]</span>“Ah, Neil, you brought them in!” the general said,
-when Neil reported to him. As it chanced, the regiment
-would have arrived just as safely without the
-message, yet he let his grave, tired eyes rest approvingly
-on the boy.</p>
-
-<p>Neil had on his own tattered clothes again. His
-head was as shaggy and bare as usual, and his brown
-legs nearly as bare, but there was something unfamiliar
-in his face. “Yes, sir,” he answered impetuously.
-“I brought them in, but I let the worst Tory in the
-country go free.”</p>
-
-<p>Greene smiled half-incredulously. “Why was that?”
-he asked.</p>
-
-<p>Neil was silent a moment, and the general saw tears
-rising in the blue eyes that he had supposed were always
-shrewd or fierce.</p>
-
-<p>“He was my brother!” Neil broke out at last, and
-because his heart was so full that he had to tell some
-one, he told the big, considerate general the whole
-story. “And you may do what you please with me,
-general,” he ended. “I had to let him go free.”</p>
-
-<p>The general took the boy’s small, shaking hand.
-“I don’t think you let him go <i>free</i>, exactly, Neil,” he
-said. “That minute of mercy will make him more or
-less your captive all his life.”</p>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">[295]</span>
-
-<h2 class="nobreak">JOHN PAUL JONES: THE BOY OF THE
-ATLANTIC<a id="FNanchor_25" href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">[Y]</a></h2>
-
-<p class="center">By <span class="smcap">Rupert S. Holland</span></p>
-</div>
-<div class="blockquot">
-
-<p>A little Scottish lad dreamed of a great sea fight—of a flag with red
-and white stripes, and white stars on a blue field. This story tells
-how his dream came true.</p>
-</div>
-
-<p class="drop-cap">THE summer afternoon was fair, and the waves
-that rolled upon the north shore of Solway Firth
-in the western Lowlands of Scotland were calm and
-even. But the tide was coming in, and inch by inch
-was covering the causeway that led from shore to a
-high rock some hundred yards away. The rock was
-bare of vegetation, and sheer on the landward side,
-but on the face toward the sea, were rough jutting
-points that would give a climber certain footholds,
-and near the top smooth ledges.</p>
-
-<p>On one or two of these ledges sea-gulls had built
-their nests, tucked in under projecting points where
-they would be sheltered from wind and rain. Now the
-gulls would sweep in from sea, curving in great circles
-until they reached their homes, and then would sit
-on the ledge calling to their mates across the water.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">[296]</span>
-Except for the cries of the gulls, however, the rock was
-very quiet. The lazy, regular beat of the waves about
-its base was very soothing. On the longest ledge,
-below the sea-gulls’ nests, lay a boy about twelve years
-old, sound asleep, his face turned toward the ocean.</p>
-
-<p>Either the gulls’ cries or the sun, now slanting in the
-west, disturbed him. He did not open his eyes, but he
-clenched his fists, and muttered incoherently. Presently
-with a start he awoke. He rubbed his eyes, and
-then sat up. “What a queer dream!” he said aloud.</p>
-
-<p>The ledge where he sat was not a very safe place.
-There was scarcely room for him to move, and directly
-below him was the sea. But this boy was quite as
-much at home on high rocks or in the water as he was
-on land, and he was very fond of looking out for distant
-sailing-vessels and wondering where they might
-be bound.</p>
-
-<p>He glanced along the north shore to the little fishing
-hamlet of Arbigland where he lived. He saw that the
-tide had come in rapidly while he slept, and that the
-path to the shore was now covered. He stood up and
-stretched his bare arms, brown with sunburn, high
-over his head. Then he started to climb down from
-the ledge by the jutting points of rock.</p>
-
-<p>He was as sure-footed as any mountaineer. His
-clothes were old, so neither rock nor sea could do them
-much harm; his feet were bare. He was short but
-very broad, and his muscles were strong and supple.
-When he came to the foot of the rock he stood a moment,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">[297]</span>
-hunting for the deepest pool at its base, then,
-loosing his hold, he dove into the water.</p>
-
-<p>In a few seconds he was up again, floating on his
-back; and a little later he struck out, swimming hand
-over hand, toward a sandy beach to the south.</p>
-
-<p>A young man, wearing the uniform of a lieutenant
-in the British navy, stood on the beach, watching the
-boy swim. When the latter had landed and shaken
-the water from him much as a dog would, the man approached
-him. “Where on earth did you come from,
-John Paul?” he asked with a laugh. “The first thing
-I knew I saw you swimming in from sea.”</p>
-
-<p>“I was out on the rock asleep,” said the boy. “The
-tide came up and cut me off. And oh, Lieutenant
-Pearson, I had the strangest dream! I dreamt I was
-in the middle of a great sea fight. I was captain of a
-ship, and her yard-arms were on fire, and we were
-pouring broadsides into the enemy, afraid any minute
-that we’d sink. How we did fight that ship.”</p>
-
-<p>The young officer’s eyes glowed. “And I hope you
-may some day, John!” he exclaimed.</p>
-
-<p>“But the strangest part was that our ship didn’t
-fly the English flag,” said the boy. “At the masthead
-was a flag I’d never seen, red and white with a blue
-field filled with stars in the corner. What country’s
-flag is that?”</p>
-
-<p>Pearson thought for a moment. “There’s no such
-flag,” he said finally. “I know them all, and there’s
-none like that. The rest of your dream may come<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">[298]</span>
-true, but not that about the flag. Come, let’s be walking
-back to Arbigland.”</p>
-
-<p>Although John Paul’s father came of peaceful farmer
-and fisher folk who lived about Solway Firth, his
-mother had been a “Highland lassie,” descended from
-one of the fighting clans in the Grampian Hills. The
-boy had much of the Highlander’s love of wild adventure,
-and found it hard to live the simple life of the
-fishing village. The sea appealed to him, and he much
-preferred it to the small Scotch parish school. His
-family were poor, and as soon as he was able he was
-set to steering fishing yawls and hauling lines. At
-twelve he was as sturdy and capable as most boys at
-twenty.</p>
-
-<p>Many men in Arbigland had heard John Paul beg
-his father to let him cross the Solway to the port of
-Whitehaven and ship on some vessel bound for America,
-where his older brother William had found a new home.
-But his father saw no opening for his younger son in
-such a life. All the way back to town that afternoon
-the boy told Lieutenant Pearson of his great desire,
-and the young officer said he would try to help him.</p>
-
-<p>The boy’s chance, however, came in another way. A
-few days later it chanced that Mr. James Younger, a
-big ship-owner, was on the landing-place of Arbigland
-when some of the villagers caught sight of a small
-fishing yawl beating up against a stiff northeast squall,
-trying to gain the shelter of the little tidal creek that
-formed the harbor of the town.</p>
-
-<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">[299]</span>Mr. Younger looked long at the boat and then shook
-his head. “I don’t think she’ll do it,” he said dubiously.</p>
-
-<p>Yet the boat came on, and he could soon see that the
-only crew were a man and a boy. The boy was steering,
-handling the sheets and giving orders, while the
-man simply sat on the gunwale to trim the boat.</p>
-
-<p>“Who’s the boy?” asked the ship-owner.</p>
-
-<p>“John Paul,” said a bystander. “That’s his father
-there.”</p>
-
-<p>Mr. Younger looked at the man pointed out, who was
-standing near, and who did not seem to be in the least
-alarmed. “Are you the lad’s father?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p>The man looked up and nodded. “Yes, that’s my
-boy John conning the boat,” said he. “He’ll fetch
-her in. This isn’t much of a squall for him!”</p>
-
-<p>The father spoke with truth. The boy handled his
-small craft with such skill that he soon had her alongside
-the wharf. As soon as John Paul had landed Mr.
-Younger stepped up to the father and asked to be
-introduced to the son. Then the ship-owner told him
-how much he had admired his seamanship, and asked
-if he would care to sail as master’s apprentice in a new
-vessel he owned, which was fitting out for a voyage to
-Virginia and the West Indies. The boy’s eyes danced
-with delight; he begged his father to let him go, and
-finally Mr. Paul consented. The twelve-year-old boy
-had won his wish to go to sea.</p>
-
-<p>A few days later the brig <i>Friendship</i> sailed from Whitehaven,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">[300]</span>
-with small John Paul on board, and after a
-slow voyage which lasted thirty-two days dropped
-anchor in the Rappahannock River of Virginia.</p>
-
-<p>The life of a colonial trader was very pleasant in
-1760. The sailing-vessels usually made a triangular
-voyage, taking some six months to go from England to
-the colonies, then to the West Indies, and so east again.
-About three of the six months were spent at the small
-settlements on shore, discharging goods from England,
-taking on board cotton and tobacco, and bartering
-with the merchants.</p>
-
-<p>The Virginians who lived on their great plantations
-with many servants were the most hospitable people
-in the world, always eager to entertain a stranger,
-and the English sailors were given the freedom of the
-shore. The <i>Friendship</i> anchored a short distance down
-the river from where John Paul’s older brother lived,
-and the boy immediately went to see him and stayed
-as his guest for some time.</p>
-
-<p>This brother William had been adopted by a wealthy
-planter named Jones, and the latter was delighted with
-the young John Paul, and tried to get him to leave the
-sailor’s life and settle on the Rappahannock. But much
-as John liked the easy life of the plantation, the fine
-riding horses, the wide fields and splendid rivers, the
-call of the sea was dearer to him, and when the <i>Friendship</i>
-dropped down the Rappahannock bound for Tobago
-and the Barbadoes he was on board of her.</p>
-
-<p>Those were adventurous days for sailors and merchants.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">[301]</span>
-Money was to be made in many ways, and
-consciences were not overcareful as to the ways. The
-prosperous traders of Virginia did not mind taking
-an interest in some ocean rover bound on pirates’
-business, or in the more lawful slave-trade with the
-west coast of Africa. For a time, however, young
-John Paul sailed for Mr. Younger, and was finally
-paid by being given a one-sixth interest in a ship called
-<i>King George’s Packet</i>.</p>
-
-<p>The boy was now first mate, and trade with England
-being dull, he and the captain decided to try the
-slave-trade. They made prosperous voyages between
-Jamaica and the coast of Guinea, helping to found
-the fortunes of some of the best-known families of
-America by importing slaves.</p>
-
-<p>After a year, however, John Paul tired of the business,
-and sold his share of the ship to the captain for
-about one thousand guineas. He was not yet twenty-one,
-but his seafaring life had already made him fairly
-well-to-do. He planned to go home and see his family
-in Scotland, and took passage in the brig <i>John o’ Gaunt</i>.</p>
-
-<p>Life on shipboard was full of perils then, and very
-soon after the brig had cleared the Windward Islands
-the terrible scourge of yellow fever was found to be on
-the vessel. Within a few days the captain, the mate,
-and all of the crew but five had died of the disease.
-John Paul was fully exposed to it, but he and the five
-men escaped it. He was the only one of those left
-who knew anything about navigation, so he took command,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">[302]</span>
-and after a stormy passage, with a crew much
-too small to handle the brig, he managed to bring her
-safely to Whitehaven with all her cargo. He handled
-her as skilfully as he had the small yawl in Solway Firth.</p>
-
-<p>The owners of the <i>John o’ Gaunt</i> were delighted and
-gave John Paul and his five sailors the ten per cent.
-share of the cargo which the salvage laws entitled them
-to. In addition they offered him the command of a
-splendid full-rigged new merchantman which was to
-sail between England and America, and a tenth share
-of all profits. It was a very fine offer to a man who
-had barely come of age, but the youth had shown that
-he had few equals as a mariner.</p>
-
-<p>Good fortune shone upon him. He had no sooner
-sailed up the Rappahannock again and landed at the
-plantation where his brother lived than he learned
-that the rich old Virginian, William Jones, had recently
-died and in his will had named him as one of his heirs.
-He had always cherished a fancy for the sturdy, black-haired
-boy who had made him that visit. The will
-provided that John Paul should add the planter’s
-name to his own. The young captain did not object
-to this, and so henceforth he was known as John Paul
-Jones.</p>
-
-<p>Scores of stories are told of the young captain’s
-adventures. He loved danger, and it was his nature
-to enjoy a fight with men or with the elements. On
-a voyage to Jamaica he met with serious trouble.
-Fever again reduced the crew to six men, and Jones<span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">[303]</span>
-was the only officer able to be on deck. A huge negro
-named Maxwell tried to start a mutiny and capture
-the ship for his own uses. He rushed at Jones, and the
-latter had to seize a belaying-pin and hit him over the
-head. The man fell, badly hurt, and soon after reaching
-Jamaica died.</p>
-
-<p>Jones gave himself up to the authorities and was
-tried for murder on the high seas. He said to the court:
-“I had two brace of loaded pistols in my belt, and could
-easily have shot him. I struck with a belaying-pin
-in preference, because I hoped that I might subdue
-him without killing him.” He was acquitted, and soon
-after offered command of a new ship built to trade with
-India.</p>
-
-<p>The charm of life in Virginia appealed more and more
-strongly to the sailor. He liked the new country, the
-society of the young cities along the Atlantic Coast,
-and he spent less time on the high seas and more time
-fishing and hunting on his own land and in Chesapeake
-Bay. He might have settled quietly into such prosperous
-retirement had not the minute-men of Concord
-startled the new world into stirring action.</p>
-
-<p>John Paul Jones loved America and he loved ships.
-Consequently he was one of the very first to offer his
-services in building a new navy. Congress was glad
-to have him; he was known as a man of the greatest
-courage and of supreme nautical skill.</p>
-
-<p>On September 23, 1779, Paul Jones, on board the
-American ship <i>Bon Homme Richard</i>, met the British<span class="pagenum" id="Page_304">[304]</span>
-frigate <i>Serapis</i> off the English coast. A battle of giants
-followed, for both ships were manned by brave crews
-and commanded by extraordinarily skilful officers.
-The short, black-haired, agile American commander
-saw his ship catch fire, stood on his quarter-deck while
-the blazing spars, sails, and rigging fell about him, while
-his men were mowed down by the terrific broadsides of
-the <i>Serapis</i>, and calmly directed the fire of shot at the
-enemy.</p>
-
-<p>Terribly as the <i>Bon Homme Richard</i> suffered, the
-<i>Serapis</i> was in still worse plight. Two thirds of her
-men were killed or wounded when Paul Jones gave the
-signal to board her. The Americans swarmed over
-the enemy’s bulwarks, and, armed with pistol and cutlass,
-cleared the deck.</p>
-
-<p>The captain of the <i>Serapis</i> fought his ship to the last,
-but when he saw the Americans sweeping everything
-before them and already heading for the quarter-deck,
-he himself seized the ensign halyards and struck his
-flag. Both ships were in flames, and the smoke was so
-thick that it was some minutes before the men realized
-his surrender. There was little to choose between the
-two vessels; each was a floating mass of wreckage.</p>
-
-<p>A little later the English captain went on board the
-<i>Bon Homme Richard</i> and tendered his sword to the
-young American. The latter looked hard at the English
-officer. “Captain Pearson?” he asked questioningly.
-The other bowed.</p>
-
-<p>“Ah, I thought so. I am John Paul Jones, once<span class="pagenum" id="Page_305">[305]</span>
-small John Paul of Arbigland in the Firth. Do you
-remember me?”</p>
-
-<p>Pearson looked at the smoke-grimed face, the keen
-black eyes, the fine figure. “I shouldn’t have known
-you. Yes, I remember now.”</p>
-
-<p>Paul Jones took the sword that was held out to him,
-and asked one of his midshipmen to escort the British
-captain to his cabin. He could not help smiling as a
-curious recollection came to him. He looked up at
-the masthead above him. There floated a flag bearing
-thirteen red and white stripes and a blue corner
-filled with stars. It was the very flag of his dream as a
-boy.</p>
-
-<p>Thus it was that the sturdy Scotch boy, full of the
-daring spirit of his Highland ancestors, became the
-great sea-fighter of a new country, and ultimately wrote
-his name in history as the Father of the American
-Navy.</p>
-
-<p class="center">THE END</p>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="figcenter"><img src="images/i_306.jpg" alt=""></div>
-
-<p class="center">
-THE COUNTRY LIFE PRESS<br>
-GARDEN CITY, N. Y.</p>
-</div>
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<h2 class="nobreak" id="FOOTNOTES">FOOTNOTES:</h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="label">[A]</a> From the <i>Youth’s Companion</i>, November 1, 1906.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="label">[B]</a> From “Chivalric Days,” copyright, 1886, G. P. Putnam’s Sons.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="label">[C]</a> Reprinted from “Twice Told Tales,” by permission of the Houghton
-Mifflin Company.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="label">[D]</a> From <i>Harper’s Round Table</i>, June 25, 1895.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="label">[E]</a> From <span class="smcap">Wide Awake</span>, July, 1886.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="label">[F]</a> From the “Life of George Washington.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="label">[G]</a> From the <i>Youth’s Companion</i>, February 21, 1907.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_8" href="#FNanchor_8" class="label">[H]</a> From <i>Wide Awake</i>, July, 1890.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_9" href="#FNanchor_9" class="label">[I]</a> From the “Life of George Washington.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_10" href="#FNanchor_10" class="label">[J]</a> From <i>Wide Awake</i>, July, 1886.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_11" href="#FNanchor_11" class="label">[K]</a> Reprinted by permission of the Houghton, Mifflin Company.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_12" href="#FNanchor_12" class="label">[L]</a> From <i>Harper’s Young People</i>. February 21, 1882.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_13" href="#FNanchor_13" class="label">[M]</a> Copyright by George W. Jacobs &amp; Co.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_14" href="#FNanchor_14" class="label">[N]</a> From “Around the Hub,” copyright, 1881, by Samuel Adams Drake.
-Reprinted by permission of Little, Brown &amp; Company.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_15" href="#FNanchor_15" class="label">[O]</a> From the <i>Youth’s Companion</i>, March 23, 1899.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_16" href="#FNanchor_16" class="label">[P]</a> From the <i>Youth’s Companion</i>, April 20, 1899.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_17" href="#FNanchor_17" class="label">[Q]</a> From <i>Harper’s Round Table</i>, July 9, 1895.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_18" href="#FNanchor_18" class="label">[R]</a> From “Around the Hub,” copyright, 1881, by Samuel Adams Drake.
-Reprinted by permission of Little, Brown &amp; Company.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_19" href="#FNanchor_19" class="label">[S]</a> From “The Spy.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_20" href="#FNanchor_20" class="label">[T]</a> From <i>Wide Awake</i>, July, 1886.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_21" href="#FNanchor_21" class="label">[U]</a> From the <i>Youth’s Companion</i>, June 11, 1908.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_22" href="#FNanchor_22" class="label">[V]</a> From “Stories of the War for Independence.”</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_23" href="#FNanchor_23" class="label">[W]</a> From the <i>Youth’s Companion</i>, September 6, 1900.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_24" href="#FNanchor_24" class="label">[X]</a> From the <i>Youth’s Companion</i>, November 22, 1900.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class="footnote">
-
-<p><a id="Footnote_25" href="#FNanchor_25" class="label">[Y]</a> From “Historic Boyhoods,” copyright, 1900, by George W. Jacobs &amp;
-Company.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class="chap x-ebookmaker-drop">
-
-<div class="chapter">
-<div class="transnote">
-<p class="ph1">TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES:</p>
-
-<p>Obvious typographical errors have been corrected.</p>
-
-<p>Inconsistencies in hyphenation have been standardized.</p>
-
-<p>Archaic or variant spelling has been retained.</p>
-</div></div>
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK CHILDREN&#039;S BOOK OF PATRIOTIC STORIES ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
-</body>
-</html>
diff --git a/old/69235-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/69235-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index e4608c9..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h/images/coversmall.jpg b/old/69235-h/images/coversmall.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 3e633e7..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/images/coversmall.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h/images/i_306.jpg b/old/69235-h/images/i_306.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 4ea8168..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/images/i_306.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg b/old/69235-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 9e6a61c..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/images/i_frontispiece.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h/images/i_ii.jpg b/old/69235-h/images/i_ii.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index a173144..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/images/i_ii.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/69235-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 6eabf25..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69235-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpg b/old/69235-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 705209b..0000000
--- a/old/69235-h/images/i_titlelogo.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ